This is a modern-English version of The iron heel, originally written by London, Jack. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.

[Illustration]

The Iron Heel

by Jack London


Contents

FOREWORD
I. MY EAGLE
II. CHALLENGES
III. JACKSON’S ARM
IV. SLAVES OF THE MACHINE
V. THE PHILOMATHS
VI. ADUMBRATIONS
VII. THE BISHOP’S VISION
VIII. THE MACHINE BREAKERS
IX. THE MATHEMATICS OF A DREAM
X. THE VORTEX
XI. THE GREAT ADVENTURE
XII. THE BISHOP
XIII. THE GENERAL STRIKE
XIV. THE BEGINNING OF THE END
XV. LAST DAYS
XVI. THE END
XVII. THE SCARLET LIVERY
XVIII. IN THE SHADOW OF SONOMA
XIX. TRANSFORMATION
XX. A LOST OLIGARCH
XXI. THE ROARING ABYSMAL BEAST
XXII. THE CHICAGO COMMUNE
XXIII. THE PEOPLE OF THE ABYSS
XXIV. NIGHTMARE
XXV. THE TERRORISTS

“At first, this Earth, a stage so gloomed with woe
    You almost sicken at the shifting of the scenes.
And yet be patient. Our Playwright may show
    In some fifth act what this Wild Drama means.”

“At first, this Earth, a stage so filled with sorrow
    You almost feel nauseous at the changing scenes.
But hang in there. Our Playwright might reveal
    In some fifth act what this Wild Drama is all about.”

THE IRON HEEL

FOREWORD

It cannot be said that the Everhard Manuscript is an important historical document. To the historian it bristles with errors—not errors of fact, but errors of interpretation. Looking back across the seven centuries that have lapsed since Avis Everhard completed her manuscript, events, and the bearings of events, that were confused and veiled to her, are clear to us. She lacked perspective. She was too close to the events she writes about. Nay, she was merged in the events she has described.

It can't be said that the Everhard Manuscript is an important historical document. To historians, it's full of mistakes—not mistakes of fact, but mistakes in interpretation. Looking back over the seven centuries since Avis Everhard wrote her manuscript, events and their implications that were confusing and obscured to her are clear to us now. She lacked perspective. She was too close to the events she writes about. In fact, she was completely immersed in the events she described.

Nevertheless, as a personal document, the Everhard Manuscript is of inestimable value. But here again enter error of perspective, and vitiation due to the bias of love. Yet we smile, indeed, and forgive Avis Everhard for the heroic lines upon which she modelled her husband. We know to-day that he was not so colossal, and that he loomed among the events of his times less largely than the Manuscript would lead us to believe.

Nevertheless, as a personal document, the Everhard Manuscript is incredibly valuable. But once again, there's a distortion due to personal perspective and the influence of love. Still, we smile and forgive Avis Everhard for the grand portrayal she gave her husband. We know today that he wasn’t as monumental as depicted, and he wasn’t as influential in the events of his time as the Manuscript suggests.

We know that Ernest Everhard was an exceptionally strong man, but not so exceptional as his wife thought him to be. He was, after all, but one of a large number of heroes who, throughout the world, devoted their lives to the Revolution; though it must be conceded that he did unusual work, especially in his elaboration and interpretation of working-class philosophy. “Proletarian science” and “proletarian philosophy” were his phrases for it, and therein he shows the provincialism of his mind—a defect, however, that was due to the times and that none in that day could escape.

We know that Ernest Everhard was a remarkably strong man, but he wasn't as extraordinary as his wife believed. After all, he was just one of many heroes around the world who dedicated their lives to the Revolution; though it’s true that he did remarkable work, especially in developing and explaining working-class philosophy. He referred to it as “proletarian science” and “proletarian philosophy,” which reveals a certain narrow-mindedness in his thinking—a flaw that was a product of his time and one that nobody could really avoid back then.

But to return to the Manuscript. Especially valuable is it in communicating to us the feel of those terrible times. Nowhere do we find more vividly portrayed the psychology of the persons that lived in that turbulent period embraced between the years 1912 and 1932—their mistakes and ignorance, their doubts and fears and misapprehensions, their ethical delusions, their violent passions, their inconceivable sordidness and selfishness. These are the things that are so hard for us of this enlightened age to understand. History tells us that these things were, and biology and psychology tell us why they were; but history and biology and psychology do not make these things alive. We accept them as facts, but we are left without sympathetic comprehension of them.

But to get back to the Manuscript. It's especially valuable in showing us the feel of those terrible times. Nowhere else do we find a more vivid depiction of the mindset of the people who lived through that turbulent period from 1912 to 1932—their mistakes and ignorance, their doubts and fears and misunderstandings, their ethical illusions, their intense passions, their unimaginable greed and selfishness. These are the things that are so difficult for us in this enlightened age to grasp. History tells us that these things happened, and biology and psychology explain why they did; but history, biology, and psychology don't make these things come alive. We accept them as facts, but we're left without a sympathetic understanding of them.

This sympathy comes to us, however, as we peruse the Everhard Manuscript. We enter into the minds of the actors in that long-ago world-drama, and for the time being their mental processes are our mental processes. Not alone do we understand Avis Everhard’s love for her hero-husband, but we feel, as he felt, in those first days, the vague and terrible loom of the Oligarchy. The Iron Heel (well named) we feel descending upon and crushing mankind.

This sympathy reaches us as we read the Everhard Manuscript. We get inside the heads of the characters in that long-ago world drama, and for a moment, their thoughts become ours. We don’t just understand Avis Everhard’s love for her heroic husband; we also feel, as he did in those early days, the ominous and terrifying presence of the Oligarchy. The Iron Heel (an apt name) presses down on and crushes humanity.

And in passing we note that that historic phrase, the Iron Heel, originated in Ernest Everhard’s mind. This, we may say, is the one moot question that this new-found document clears up. Previous to this, the earliest-known use of the phrase occurred in the pamphlet, “Ye Slaves,” written by George Milford and published in December, 1912. This George Milford was an obscure agitator about whom nothing is known, save the one additional bit of information gained from the Manuscript, which mentions that he was shot in the Chicago Commune. Evidently he had heard Ernest Everhard make use of the phrase in some public speech, most probably when he was running for Congress in the fall of 1912. From the Manuscript we learn that Everhard used the phrase at a private dinner in the spring of 1912. This is, without discussion, the earliest-known occasion on which the Oligarchy was so designated.

And just to note, the historic phrase "the Iron Heel" originated in Ernest Everhard's mind. This is the one question that this new document answers. Before this, the earliest known use of the phrase was in the pamphlet “Ye Slaves,” written by George Milford and published in December 1912. This George Milford was an unknown activist about whom we know little, except for one more detail from the Manuscript, which states that he was shot during the Chicago Commune. Clearly, he had heard Ernest Everhard use the phrase in some public speech, likely when he was running for Congress in the fall of 1912. The Manuscript reveals that Everhard first used the phrase at a private dinner in the spring of 1912. This is, without a doubt, the earliest known instance where the Oligarchy was referred to in this way.

The rise of the Oligarchy will always remain a cause of secret wonder to the historian and the philosopher. Other great historical events have their place in social evolution. They were inevitable. Their coming could have been predicted with the same certitude that astronomers to-day predict the outcome of the movements of stars. Without these other great historical events, social evolution could not have proceeded. Primitive communism, chattel slavery, serf slavery, and wage slavery were necessary stepping-stones in the evolution of society. But it were ridiculous to assert that the Iron Heel was a necessary stepping-stone. Rather, to-day, is it adjudged a step aside, or a step backward, to the social tyrannies that made the early world a hell, but that were as necessary as the Iron Heel was unnecessary.

The rise of the Oligarchy will always be a source of secret amazement for historians and philosophers. Other major historical events have their place in social progress. They were unavoidable. Their arrival could have been forecasted with the same certainty that astronomers today predict the movements of stars. Without these other significant historical events, social development couldn't have moved forward. Primitive communism, chattel slavery, serfdom, and wage slavery were essential steps in the evolution of society. However, it would be absurd to claim that the Iron Heel was a necessary step. Rather, today it's seen as a step aside or a step backward into the social tyrannies that made the early world unbearable, which, though terrible, were as necessary as the Iron Heel was unnecessary.

Black as Feudalism was, yet the coming of it was inevitable. What else than Feudalism could have followed upon the breakdown of that great centralized governmental machine known as the Roman Empire? Not so, however, with the Iron Heel. In the orderly procedure of social evolution there was no place for it. It was not necessary, and it was not inevitable. It must always remain the great curiosity of history—a whim, a fantasy, an apparition, a thing unexpected and undreamed; and it should serve as a warning to those rash political theorists of to-day who speak with certitude of social processes.

Feudalism was dark, but its emergence was unavoidable. What else could have emerged after the collapse of the vast centralized government called the Roman Empire? However, that was not the case with the Iron Heel. In the natural progression of social evolution, it had no place. It wasn't necessary, and it wasn't destined to happen. It will always be one of history's great curiosities—a whim, a fantasy, a ghost, something unexpected and unimagined; and it should serve as a warning to today's reckless political theorists who speak confidently about social processes.

Capitalism was adjudged by the sociologists of the time to be the culmination of bourgeois rule, the ripened fruit of the bourgeois revolution. And we of to-day can but applaud that judgment. Following upon Capitalism, it was held, even by such intellectual and antagonistic giants as Herbert Spencer, that Socialism would come. Out of the decay of self-seeking capitalism, it was held, would arise that flower of the ages, the Brotherhood of Man. Instead of which, appalling alike to us who look back and to those that lived at the time, capitalism, rotten-ripe, sent forth that monstrous offshoot, the Oligarchy.

Capitalism was seen by the sociologists of the day as the peak of bourgeois control, the end result of the bourgeois revolution. And we today can only agree with that view. It was believed, even by influential thinkers like Herbert Spencer, that after Capitalism would come Socialism. From the decline of self-serving capitalism, it was thought, would emerge the ideal of the Brotherhood of Man. Instead, shocking to both us who reflect on it and to those who experienced it, capitalism, thoroughly corrupt, gave rise to a horrific offshoot, the Oligarchy.

Too late did the socialist movement of the early twentieth century divine the coming of the Oligarchy. Even as it was divined, the Oligarchy was there—a fact established in blood, a stupendous and awful reality. Nor even then, as the Everhard Manuscript well shows, was any permanence attributed to the Iron Heel. Its overthrow was a matter of a few short years, was the judgment of the revolutionists. It is true, they realized that the Peasant Revolt was unplanned, and that the First Revolt was premature; but they little realized that the Second Revolt, planned and mature, was doomed to equal futility and more terrible punishment.

The early twentieth-century socialist movement was too late in recognizing the rise of the Oligarchy. Even as they started to realize it, the Oligarchy was already a reality—something established through violence and a terrifying truth. Even then, as shown in the Everhard Manuscript, no lasting power was expected of the Iron Heel. The revolutionaries believed that its downfall was only a few years away. It's true that they understood the Peasant Revolt was spontaneous and that the First Revolt came too soon; however, they were unaware that the planned and mature Second Revolt was also doomed to failure and would face even harsher consequences.

It is apparent that Avis Everhard completed the Manuscript during the last days of preparation for the Second Revolt; hence the fact that there is no mention of the disastrous outcome of the Second Revolt. It is quite clear that she intended the Manuscript for immediate publication, as soon as the Iron Heel was overthrown, so that her husband, so recently dead, should receive full credit for all that he had ventured and accomplished. Then came the frightful crushing of the Second Revolt, and it is probable that in the moment of danger, ere she fled or was captured by the Mercenaries, she hid the Manuscript in the hollow oak at Wake Robin Lodge.

It’s clear that Avis Everhard finished the Manuscript in the last days leading up to the Second Revolt, which is why there’s no reference to the disastrous outcome of that revolt. She clearly intended for the Manuscript to be published right away, as soon as the Iron Heel was defeated, so her recently deceased husband would get full credit for everything he had risked and achieved. Then came the terrible defeat of the Second Revolt, and it’s likely that in the moment of crisis, just before she escaped or was captured by the Mercenaries, she hid the Manuscript in the hollow oak at Wake Robin Lodge.

Of Avis Everhard there is no further record. Undoubtedly she was executed by the Mercenaries; and, as is well known, no record of such executions was kept by the Iron Heel. But little did she realize, even then, as she hid the Manuscript and prepared to flee, how terrible had been the breakdown of the Second Revolt. Little did she realize that the tortuous and distorted evolution of the next three centuries would compel a Third Revolt and a Fourth Revolt, and many Revolts, all drowned in seas of blood, ere the world-movement of labor should come into its own. And little did she dream that for seven long centuries the tribute of her love to Ernest Everhard would repose undisturbed in the heart of the ancient oak of Wake Robin Lodge.

Of Avis Everhard, there’s no further record. She was definitely executed by the Mercenaries, and, as everyone knows, the Iron Heel didn’t keep any records of such executions. She had no idea, even then, as she hid the Manuscript and got ready to escape, how devastating the collapse of the Second Revolt had been. She couldn’t foresee that the twisted and painful developments of the next three centuries would lead to a Third Revolt and a Fourth Revolt, and many other Revolts, all soaked in blood, before the labor movement would finally take shape. And she had no inkling that for seven long centuries, the love she felt for Ernest Everhard would remain undisturbed in the heart of the ancient oak at Wake Robin Lodge.

ANTHONY MEREDITH

ANTHONY MEREDITH

ARDIS,

ARDIS,

November 27, 419 B.O.M.

November 27, 419 B.O.M.

THE IRON HEEL

CHAPTER I.
MY EAGLE

The soft summer wind stirs the redwoods, and Wild-Water ripples sweet cadences over its mossy stones. There are butterflies in the sunshine, and from everywhere arises the drowsy hum of bees. It is so quiet and peaceful, and I sit here, and ponder, and am restless. It is the quiet that makes me restless. It seems unreal. All the world is quiet, but it is the quiet before the storm. I strain my ears, and all my senses, for some betrayal of that impending storm. Oh, that it may not be premature! That it may not be premature![1]

The gentle summer breeze moves through the redwoods, and Wild-Water flows softly over its mossy stones. Butterflies dance in the sunlight, and everywhere I hear the lazy buzz of bees. It's so calm and peaceful here, yet I'm sitting, thinking, and feeling restless. It's the stillness that makes me uneasy. It feels surreal. The whole world is quiet, but it’s the calm before the storm. I listen intently, using all my senses, waiting for any sign of that coming storm. Oh, I hope it’s not too soon! I hope it’s not too soon![1]

[1] The Second Revolt was largely the work of Ernest Everhard, though he coöperated, of course, with the European leaders. The capture and secret execution of Everhard was the great event of the spring of 1932 A.D. Yet so thoroughly had he prepared for the revolt, that his fellow-conspirators were able, with little confusion or delay, to carry out his plans. It was after Everhard’s execution that his wife went to Wake Robin Lodge, a small bungalow in the Sonoma Hills of California.

[1] The Second Revolt was mainly driven by Ernest Everhard, although he worked closely with the European leaders. The capture and secret execution of Everhard was the major event of spring 1932. However, he had prepared for the revolt so well that his fellow conspirators were able to execute his plans with minimal confusion or delay. After Everhard's execution, his wife went to Wake Robin Lodge, a small bungalow in the Sonoma Hills of California.

Small wonder that I am restless. I think, and think, and I cannot cease from thinking. I have been in the thick of life so long that I am oppressed by the peace and quiet, and I cannot forbear from dwelling upon that mad maelstrom of death and destruction so soon to burst forth. In my ears are the cries of the stricken; and I can see, as I have seen in the past,[2] all the marring and mangling of the sweet, beautiful flesh, and the souls torn with violence from proud bodies and hurled to God. Thus do we poor humans attain our ends, striving through carnage and destruction to bring lasting peace and happiness upon the earth.

Small wonder that I feel restless. I think and think, and I can't stop thinking. I've been caught up in life for so long that the peace and quiet overwhelm me, and I can't help but focus on that crazy whirlwind of death and destruction that's about to erupt. In my ears are the cries of the wounded, and I can see, as I have seen before, all the damage done to the sweet, beautiful flesh, and the souls violently ripped from proud bodies and thrown to God. This is how we poor humans reach our goals, struggling through bloodshed and chaos to bring lasting peace and happiness to the earth.

[2] Without doubt she here refers to the Chicago Commune.

[2] Without a doubt, she is referring to the Chicago Commune.

And then I am lonely. When I do not think of what is to come, I think of what has been and is no more—my Eagle, beating with tireless wings the void, soaring toward what was ever his sun, the flaming ideal of human freedom. I cannot sit idly by and wait the great event that is his making, though he is not here to see. He devoted all the years of his manhood to it, and for it he gave his life. It is his handiwork. He made it.[3]

And then I feel lonely. When I'm not thinking about what’s coming next, I think about what has happened and is no more—my Eagle, tirelessly beating his wings against the emptiness, soaring toward what was always his sun, the blazing ideal of human freedom. I can’t just sit back and wait for the big event that he created, even though he’s not here to witness it. He dedicated all the years of his adulthood to it, and he gave his life for it. It’s his work. He made it.[3]

[3] With all respect to Avis Everhard, it must be pointed out that Everhard was but one of many able leaders who planned the Second Revolt. And we to-day, looking back across the centuries, can safely say that even had he lived, the Second Revolt would not have been less calamitous in its outcome than it was.

[3] With all due respect to Avis Everhard, it should be noted that Everhard was just one of many capable leaders who orchestrated the Second Revolt. And we today, reflecting on the centuries, can confidently say that even if he had lived, the Second Revolt would not have had a less disastrous outcome than it did.

And so it is, in this anxious time of waiting, that I shall write of my husband. There is much light that I alone of all persons living can throw upon his character, and so noble a character cannot be blazoned forth too brightly. His was a great soul, and, when my love grows unselfish, my chiefest regret is that he is not here to witness to-morrow’s dawn. We cannot fail. He has built too stoutly and too surely for that. Woe to the Iron Heel! Soon shall it be thrust back from off prostrate humanity. When the word goes forth, the labor hosts of all the world shall rise. There has been nothing like it in the history of the world. The solidarity of labor is assured, and for the first time will there be an international revolution wide as the world is wide.[4]

And so it is, in this anxious time of waiting, that I will write about my husband. I can shed light on his character like no one else can, and such a noble character deserves to be celebrated brightly. He had a great soul, and as my love becomes more selfless, my biggest regret is that he isn’t here to see tomorrow’s dawn. We cannot fail. He has built too strongly and too reliably for that. Woe to the Iron Heel! Soon it will be pushed back from the fallen humanity. When the word goes out, the labor movements of the entire world will rise. There has never been anything like it in history. The unity of labor is guaranteed, and for the first time there will be an international revolution as vast as the world itself.[4]

[4] The Second Revolt was truly international. It was a colossal plan—too colossal to be wrought by the genius of one man alone. Labor, in all the oligarchies of the world, was prepared to rise at the signal. Germany, Italy, France, and all Australasia were labor countries—socialist states. They were ready to lend aid to the revolution. Gallantly they did; and it was for this reason, when the Second Revolt was crushed, that they, too, were crushed by the united oligarchies of the world, their socialist governments being replaced by oligarchical governments.

[4] The Second Revolt was genuinely global. It was an enormous plan—too massive to be executed by the brilliance of a single individual. Workers, in every oligarchy around the world, were ready to rise at the call. Germany, Italy, France, and all of Australasia were labor countries—socialist states. They were prepared to support the revolution. They did so courageously; and that’s why, when the Second Revolt was defeated, they were also crushed by the united oligarchies of the world, and their socialist governments were replaced by oligarchical ones.

You see, I am full of what is impending. I have lived it day and night utterly and for so long that it is ever present in my mind. For that matter, I cannot think of my husband without thinking of it. He was the soul of it, and how can I possibly separate the two in thought?

You see, I am overwhelmed by what’s coming. I’ve experienced it day and night for so long that it’s constantly on my mind. Because of that, I can’t think of my husband without thinking of it. He was the essence of it, and how can I possibly separate the two in my thoughts?

As I have said, there is much light that I alone can throw upon his character. It is well known that he toiled hard for liberty and suffered sore. How hard he toiled and how greatly he suffered, I well know; for I have been with him during these twenty anxious years and I know his patience, his untiring effort, his infinite devotion to the Cause for which, only two months gone, he laid down his life.

As I mentioned, I can shed a lot of light on his character. It's widely recognized that he worked extremely hard for freedom and endured a lot of pain. I know just how hard he worked and how much he suffered because I’ve been with him for the past twenty anxious years. I can attest to his patience, his relentless effort, and his unwavering dedication to the Cause for which, just two months ago, he sacrificed his life.

I shall try to write simply and to tell here how Ernest Everhard entered my life—how I first met him, how he grew until I became a part of him, and the tremendous changes he wrought in my life. In this way may you look at him through my eyes and learn him as I learned him—in all save the things too secret and sweet for me to tell.

I will try to write clearly and share how Ernest Everhard came into my life—how I first met him, how he developed until I became a part of him, and the significant changes he brought to my life. In this way, you can see him through my perspective and understand him as I did—except for the things that are too personal and precious for me to share.

It was in February, 1912, that I first met him, when, as a guest of my father’s[5] at dinner, he came to our house in Berkeley. I cannot say that my very first impression of him was favorable. He was one of many at dinner, and in the drawing-room where we gathered and waited for all to arrive, he made a rather incongruous appearance. It was “preacher’s night,” as my father privately called it, and Ernest was certainly out of place in the midst of the churchmen.

It was in February 1912 when I first met him. He came to our house in Berkeley as a guest of my father at dinner. I can't say my first impression of him was positive. He was just one of many at dinner, and in the drawing room where we all gathered and waited for everyone to arrive, he looked quite out of place. My father called it "preacher's night" in private, and Ernest definitely didn’t fit in with the churchmen.

[5] John Cunningham, Avis Everhard’s father, was a professor at the State University at Berkeley, California. His chosen field was physics, and in addition he did much original research and was greatly distinguished as a scientist. His chief contribution to science was his studies of the electron and his monumental work on the “Identification of Matter and Energy,” wherein he established, beyond cavil and for all time, that the ultimate unit of matter and the ultimate unit of force were identical. This idea had been earlier advanced, but not demonstrated, by Sir Oliver Lodge and other students in the new field of radio-activity.

[5] John Cunningham, Avis Everhard’s father, was a professor at the State University in Berkeley, California. He specialized in physics and also conducted a lot of original research, earning great distinction as a scientist. His most significant contribution to science was his research on the electron and his groundbreaking work on the “Identification of Matter and Energy,” where he definitively established that the fundamental unit of matter and the fundamental unit of force are the same. This concept had been suggested earlier but not proven by Sir Oliver Lodge and others studying the emerging field of radioactivity.

In the first place, his clothes did not fit him. He wore a ready-made suit of dark cloth that was ill adjusted to his body. In fact, no ready-made suit of clothes ever could fit his body. And on this night, as always, the cloth bulged with his muscles, while the coat between the shoulders, what of the heavy shoulder-development, was a maze of wrinkles. His neck was the neck of a prize-fighter,[6] thick and strong. So this was the social philosopher and ex-horseshoer my father had discovered, was my thought. And he certainly looked it with those bulging muscles and that bull-throat. Immediately I classified him—a sort of prodigy, I thought, a Blind Tom[7] of the working class.

In the first place, his clothes didn’t fit him. He wore a ready-made suit of dark fabric that was poorly tailored to his body. In fact, no ready-made suit could ever fit him well. And on this night, like always, the fabric strained against his muscles, while the coat across his shoulders, due to his broad physique, was a mess of wrinkles. His neck was like that of a prizefighter, thick and strong. So, this was the social philosopher and ex-horseshoer my father had found, I thought. And he definitely looked the part with those bulging muscles and that bull-like neck. Immediately, I categorized him—a sort of prodigy, I figured, a Blind Tom of the working class.

[6] In that day it was the custom of men to compete for purses of money. They fought with their hands. When one was beaten into insensibility or killed, the survivor took the money.

[6] Back then, it was common for men to compete for cash prizes. They fought using their fists. When one was knocked unconscious or killed, the victor took the money.

[7] This obscure reference applies to a blind negro musician who took the world by storm in the latter half of the nineteenth century of the Christian Era.

[7] This little-known reference refers to a blind Black musician who captivated the world in the second half of the 19th century.

And then, when he shook hands with me! His handshake was firm and strong, but he looked at me boldly with his black eyes—too boldly, I thought. You see, I was a creature of environment, and at that time had strong class instincts. Such boldness on the part of a man of my own class would have been almost unforgivable. I know that I could not avoid dropping my eyes, and I was quite relieved when I passed him on and turned to greet Bishop Morehouse—a favorite of mine, a sweet and serious man of middle age, Christ-like in appearance and goodness, and a scholar as well.

And then, when he shook my hand! His handshake was firm and strong, but he looked at me directly with his black eyes—too directly, I thought. You see, I was shaped by my surroundings and at that time had strong class instincts. Such boldness from a guy from my own class would have been nearly unacceptable. I know I couldn't help but look away, and I was pretty relieved when I walked past him and turned to greet Bishop Morehouse—a favorite of mine, a kind and serious middle-aged man, Christ-like in appearance and goodness, and a scholar as well.

But this boldness that I took to be presumption was a vital clew to the nature of Ernest Everhard. He was simple, direct, afraid of nothing, and he refused to waste time on conventional mannerisms. “You pleased me,” he explained long afterward; “and why should I not fill my eyes with that which pleases me?” I have said that he was afraid of nothing. He was a natural aristocrat—and this in spite of the fact that he was in the camp of the non-aristocrats. He was a superman, a blond beast such as Nietzsche[8] has described, and in addition he was aflame with democracy.

But this confidence that I initially thought was arrogance turned out to be a crucial insight into who Ernest Everhard really was. He was straightforward, honest, unafraid, and he didn’t waste time on social niceties. “You made me happy,” he explained much later; “and why shouldn’t I take in what makes me happy?” I’ve mentioned that he was unafraid. He was a natural leader—and this was true even though he aligned with the non-aristocrats. He was extraordinary, a strong individual like Nietzsche has described, and on top of that, he was passionate about democracy.

[8] Friederich Nietzsche, the mad philosopher of the nineteenth century of the Christian Era, who caught wild glimpses of truth, but who, before he was done, reasoned himself around the great circle of human thought and off into madness.

[8] Friedrich Nietzsche, the eccentric philosopher of the 19th century, who briefly glimpsed profound truths but ultimately reasoned himself into a full circle of human thought and ended up in madness.

In the interest of meeting the other guests, and what of my unfavorable impression, I forgot all about the working-class philosopher, though once or twice at table I noticed him—especially the twinkle in his eye as he listened to the talk first of one minister and then of another. He has humor, I thought, and I almost forgave him his clothes. But the time went by, and the dinner went by, and he never opened his mouth to speak, while the ministers talked interminably about the working class and its relation to the church, and what the church had done and was doing for it. I noticed that my father was annoyed because Ernest did not talk. Once father took advantage of a lull and asked him to say something; but Ernest shrugged his shoulders and with an “I have nothing to say” went on eating salted almonds.

In an effort to meet the other guests, and despite the negative impression I had, I completely forgot about the working-class philosopher. However, once or twice at the table, I noticed him—especially the spark in his eye as he listened to one minister after another. I thought he had a sense of humor, and I almost let the fact that he was poorly dressed slide. But as time passed and dinner continued, he never spoke a word while the ministers droned on about the working class and its relationship with the church, discussing what the church had done and was doing for them. I could see my father was irritated because Ernest wasn’t talking. At one point, my father seized a pause and asked him to say something; but Ernest just shrugged and replied with an “I have nothing to say” as he kept eating salted almonds.

But father was not to be denied. After a while he said:

But Dad wouldn't take no for an answer. After a bit, he said:

“We have with us a member of the working class. I am sure that he can present things from a new point of view that will be interesting and refreshing. I refer to Mr. Everhard.”

“We have a member of the working class with us. I'm sure he can share insights from a new perspective that will be interesting and refreshing. I’m talking about Mr. Everhard.”

The others betrayed a well-mannered interest, and urged Ernest for a statement of his views. Their attitude toward him was so broadly tolerant and kindly that it was really patronizing. And I saw that Ernest noted it and was amused. He looked slowly about him, and I saw the glint of laughter in his eyes.

The others showed a polite interest and encouraged Ernest to share his thoughts. Their approach to him felt broadly accepting and friendly, but it was actually a bit condescending. I noticed that Ernest picked up on this and found it amusing. He glanced around slowly, and I could see a spark of laughter in his eyes.

“I am not versed in the courtesies of ecclesiastical controversy,” he began, and then hesitated with modesty and indecision.

“I’m not familiar with the niceties of church-related debates,” he started, then paused with shyness and uncertainty.

“Go on,” they urged, and Dr. Hammerfield said: “We do not mind the truth that is in any man. If it is sincere,” he amended.

“Go ahead,” they encouraged, and Dr. Hammerfield replied, “We don’t mind the truth in anyone. As long as it’s genuine,” he added.

“Then you separate sincerity from truth?” Ernest laughed quickly.

“Then you’re saying sincerity is different from truth?” Ernest laughed quickly.

Dr. Hammerfield gasped, and managed to answer, “The best of us may be mistaken, young man, the best of us.”

Dr. Hammerfield gasped and managed to reply, “Even the best of us can be wrong, young man, even the best of us.”

Ernest’s manner changed on the instant. He became another man.

Ernest's demeanor changed immediately. He turned into a different person.

“All right, then,” he answered; “and let me begin by saying that you are all mistaken. You know nothing, and worse than nothing, about the working class. Your sociology is as vicious and worthless as is your method of thinking.”

“All right, then,” he replied, “and let me start by saying that you’re all wrong. You know nothing, and even less than that, about the working class. Your sociology is as harmful and useless as your way of thinking.”

It was not so much what he said as how he said it. I roused at the first sound of his voice. It was as bold as his eyes. It was a clarion-call that thrilled me. And the whole table was aroused, shaken alive from monotony and drowsiness.

It wasn't just what he said, but how he said it. I woke up at the first sound of his voice. It was as confident as his eyes. It was a powerful call that excited me. And the whole table came alive, jolted from its boredom and sleepiness.

“What is so dreadfully vicious and worthless in our method of thinking, young man?” Dr. Hammerfield demanded, and already there was something unpleasant in his voice and manner of utterance.

“What is so terribly cruel and pointless in the way we think, young man?” Dr. Hammerfield asked, and there was already something off-putting in his voice and tone.

“You are metaphysicians. You can prove anything by metaphysics; and having done so, every metaphysician can prove every other metaphysician wrong—to his own satisfaction. You are anarchists in the realm of thought. And you are mad cosmos-makers. Each of you dwells in a cosmos of his own making, created out of his own fancies and desires. You do not know the real world in which you live, and your thinking has no place in the real world except in so far as it is phenomena of mental aberration.

“You're all metaphysicians. You can explain anything through metaphysics, and once you do, every metaphysician can convince themselves that every other metaphysician is wrong. You're anarchists in the world of thought. And you're crazy creators of your own universes. Each of you lives in a reality that you've crafted from your own fantasies and desires. You don't understand the real world around you, and your thinking only relates to the real world to the extent that it reflects mental distortion.”

“Do you know what I was reminded of as I sat at table and listened to you talk and talk? You reminded me for all the world of the scholastics of the Middle Ages who gravely and learnedly debated the absorbing question of how many angels could dance on the point of a needle. Why, my dear sirs, you are as remote from the intellectual life of the twentieth century as an Indian medicine-man making incantation in the primeval forest ten thousand years ago.”

“Do you know what I thought of while I sat at the table listening to you go on and on? You reminded me of the scholastics from the Middle Ages who solemnly and seriously debated the fascinating question of how many angels could dance on the point of a needle. Honestly, my dear sirs, you are as far removed from the intellectual life of the twentieth century as an Indian medicine man chanting in the ancient forest ten thousand years ago.”

As Ernest talked he seemed in a fine passion; his face glowed, his eyes snapped and flashed, and his chin and jaw were eloquent with aggressiveness. But it was only a way he had. It always aroused people. His smashing, sledge-hammer manner of attack invariably made them forget themselves. And they were forgetting themselves now. Bishop Morehouse was leaning forward and listening intently. Exasperation and anger were flushing the face of Dr. Hammerfield. And others were exasperated, too, and some were smiling in an amused and superior way. As for myself, I found it most enjoyable. I glanced at father, and I was afraid he was going to giggle at the effect of this human bombshell he had been guilty of launching amongst us.

As Ernest spoke, he seemed really fired up; his face was bright, his eyes sparkled, and his chin and jaw were full of intensity. But that was just his style. It always got a reaction from people. His forceful, no-nonsense approach always made them lose their composure. And they were losing it now. Bishop Morehouse was leaning in and paying close attention. Dr. Hammerfield's face was flushed with frustration and anger. Others were frustrated too, and some wore amused, condescending smiles. As for me, I found it really amusing. I glanced at my dad, worried he might start laughing at the chaos this human tornado he had set loose among us was causing.

“Your terms are rather vague,” Dr. Hammerfield interrupted. “Just precisely what do you mean when you call us metaphysicians?”

“Your terms are a bit unclear,” Dr. Hammerfield interrupted. “What exactly do you mean when you refer to us as metaphysicians?”

“I call you metaphysicians because you reason metaphysically,” Ernest went on. “Your method of reasoning is the opposite to that of science. There is no validity to your conclusions. You can prove everything and nothing, and no two of you can agree upon anything. Each of you goes into his own consciousness to explain himself and the universe. As well may you lift yourselves by your own bootstraps as to explain consciousness by consciousness.”

“I call you metaphysicians because you think in abstract terms,” Ernest continued. “Your way of thinking is the opposite of how science works. Your conclusions have no real validity. You can prove anything and nothing at the same time, and none of you can agree on anything. Each of you turns inward to explain yourselves and the universe. You might as well try to pull yourselves up by your own bootstraps as to explain consciousness with more consciousness.”

“I do not understand,” Bishop Morehouse said. “It seems to me that all things of the mind are metaphysical. That most exact and convincing of all sciences, mathematics, is sheerly metaphysical. Each and every thought-process of the scientific reasoner is metaphysical. Surely you will agree with me?”

“I don’t understand,” Bishop Morehouse said. “To me, everything related to the mind is metaphysical. The most precise and convincing of all sciences, mathematics, is purely metaphysical. Every single thought process of the scientific thinker is metaphysical. Surely, you agree with me?”

“As you say, you do not understand,” Ernest replied. “The metaphysician reasons deductively out of his own subjectivity. The scientist reasons inductively from the facts of experience. The metaphysician reasons from theory to facts, the scientist reasons from facts to theory. The metaphysician explains the universe by himself, the scientist explains himself by the universe.”

“As you say, you don’t understand,” Ernest replied. “The metaphysician reasons deductively from his own perspective. The scientist reasons inductively from the facts of experience. The metaphysician moves from theory to facts, while the scientist moves from facts to theory. The metaphysician explains the universe through his own understanding, while the scientist understands himself through the universe.”

“Thank God we are not scientists,” Dr. Hammerfield murmured complacently.

“Thank God we’re not scientists,” Dr. Hammerfield said with a sense of satisfaction.

“What are you then?” Ernest demanded.

“What are you then?” Ernest asked.

“Philosophers.”

"Philosophers."

“There you go,” Ernest laughed. “You have left the real and solid earth and are up in the air with a word for a flying machine. Pray come down to earth and tell me precisely what you do mean by philosophy.”

“There you go,” Ernest laughed. “You’ve left the real, solid ground and are floating in the air with a term for a flying machine. Please come back to reality and tell me exactly what you mean by philosophy.”

“Philosophy is—” (Dr. Hammerfield paused and cleared his throat)—“something that cannot be defined comprehensively except to such minds and temperaments as are philosophical. The narrow scientist with his nose in a test-tube cannot understand philosophy.”

“Philosophy is—” (Dr. Hammerfield paused and cleared his throat)—“something that can’t be fully defined except for those minds and temperaments that are philosophical. The narrow-minded scientist with his nose in a test tube can’t grasp philosophy.”

Ernest ignored the thrust. It was always his way to turn the point back upon an opponent, and he did it now, with a beaming brotherliness of face and utterance.

Ernest ignored the jab. It was always his style to turn the point back on his opponent, and he did just that now, wearing a big friendly smile and speaking warmly.

“Then you will undoubtedly understand the definition I shall now make of philosophy. But before I make it, I shall challenge you to point out error in it or to remain a silent metaphysician. Philosophy is merely the widest science of all. Its reasoning method is the same as that of any particular science and of all particular sciences. And by that same method of reasoning, the inductive method, philosophy fuses all particular sciences into one great science. As Spencer says, the data of any particular science are partially unified knowledge. Philosophy unifies the knowledge that is contributed by all the sciences. Philosophy is the science of science, the master science, if you please. How do you like my definition?”

"Then you'll definitely understand the definition of philosophy that I'm about to give. But before I do, I challenge you to point out any mistakes in it, or to stay quiet as a metaphysician. Philosophy is simply the broadest science of all. Its method of reasoning is the same as that of any specific science and all specific sciences. Using that same inductive reasoning method, philosophy combines all specific sciences into one comprehensive science. As Spencer says, the data from any specific science is a kind of unified knowledge. Philosophy brings together the knowledge contributed by all the sciences. Philosophy is the science of science, the master science, if you will. What do you think of my definition?"

“Very creditable, very creditable,” Dr. Hammerfield muttered lamely.

“Very commendable, very commendable,” Dr. Hammerfield mumbled weakly.

But Ernest was merciless.

But Ernest was ruthless.

“Remember,” he warned, “my definition is fatal to metaphysics. If you do not now point out a flaw in my definition, you are disqualified later on from advancing metaphysical arguments. You must go through life seeking that flaw and remaining metaphysically silent until you have found it.”

“Remember,” he cautioned, “my definition is deadly to metaphysics. If you don’t point out a flaw in my definition right now, you can’t later argue for metaphysics. You need to go through life looking for that flaw and stay silent about metaphysics until you find it.”

Ernest waited. The silence was painful. Dr. Hammerfield was pained. He was also puzzled. Ernest’s sledge-hammer attack disconcerted him. He was not used to the simple and direct method of controversy. He looked appealingly around the table, but no one answered for him. I caught father grinning into his napkin.

Ernest waited. The silence was uncomfortable. Dr. Hammerfield was upset. He was also confused. Ernest’s blunt approach threw him off. He wasn’t accustomed to such a straightforward and direct way of arguing. He glanced around the table, hoping for support, but no one responded. I saw Dad smiling into his napkin.

“There is another way of disqualifying the metaphysicians,” Ernest said, when he had rendered Dr. Hammerfield’s discomfiture complete. “Judge them by their works. What have they done for mankind beyond the spinning of airy fancies and the mistaking of their own shadows for gods? They have added to the gayety of mankind, I grant; but what tangible good have they wrought for mankind? They philosophized, if you will pardon my misuse of the word, about the heart as the seat of the emotions, while the scientists were formulating the circulation of the blood. They declaimed about famine and pestilence as being scourges of God, while the scientists were building granaries and draining cities. They builded gods in their own shapes and out of their own desires, while the scientists were building roads and bridges. They were describing the earth as the centre of the universe, while the scientists were discovering America and probing space for the stars and the laws of the stars. In short, the metaphysicians have done nothing, absolutely nothing, for mankind. Step by step, before the advance of science, they have been driven back. As fast as the ascertained facts of science have overthrown their subjective explanations of things, they have made new subjective explanations of things, including explanations of the latest ascertained facts. And this, I doubt not, they will go on doing to the end of time. Gentlemen, a metaphysician is a medicine man. The difference between you and the Eskimo who makes a fur-clad blubber-eating god is merely a difference of several thousand years of ascertained facts. That is all.”

“There’s another way to discredit the metaphysicians,” Ernest said, after he had completely embarrassed Dr. Hammerfield. “Judge them by their results. What have they done for humanity other than creating fanciful ideas and mistaking their own shadows for deities? I admit they’ve contributed to the enjoyment of life, but what real benefit have they provided? They theorized, if you’ll excuse my misusing the term, about the heart being the center of emotions, while scientists were figuring out blood circulation. They spoke about famine and disease as punishments from God, while scientists were constructing granaries and improving sanitation in cities. They created gods in their own images and from their own desires, while scientists built roads and bridges. They claimed the earth was the center of the universe, while scientists were discovering America and exploring the cosmos for stars and the laws governing them. In short, the metaphysicians have contributed nothing, absolutely nothing, to humanity. Step by step, they’ve been pushed back by the progress of science. As fast as scientific facts have disproven their subjective theories, they’ve concocted new subjective explanations, even for the latest verified facts. And I have no doubt they will continue doing this until the end of time. Gentlemen, a metaphysician is like a shaman. The difference between you and an Eskimo who crafts a fur-clad god that eats blubber is just a difference of several thousand years of established knowledge. That’s all.”

“Yet the thought of Aristotle ruled Europe for twelve centuries,” Dr. Ballingford announced pompously. “And Aristotle was a metaphysician.”

“Yet the ideas of Aristotle dominated Europe for twelve centuries,” Dr. Ballingford declared grandly. “And Aristotle was a metaphysician.”

Dr. Ballingford glanced around the table and was rewarded by nods and smiles of approval.

Dr. Ballingford looked around the table and received nods and smiles of approval.

“Your illustration is most unfortunate,” Ernest replied. “You refer to a very dark period in human history. In fact, we call that period the Dark Ages. A period wherein science was raped by the metaphysicians, wherein physics became a search for the Philosopher’s Stone, wherein chemistry became alchemy, and astronomy became astrology. Sorry the domination of Aristotle’s thought!”

“Your example is quite unfortunate,” Ernest replied. “You’re referring to a very dark time in human history. In fact, we call that time the Dark Ages. It was a time when science was distorted by metaphysicians, when physics turned into a quest for the Philosopher’s Stone, when chemistry became alchemy, and when astronomy became astrology. Sorry about the dominance of Aristotle’s ideas!”

Dr. Ballingford looked pained, then he brightened up and said:

Dr. Ballingford looked distressed, then he perked up and said:

“Granted this horrible picture you have drawn, yet you must confess that metaphysics was inherently potent in so far as it drew humanity out of this dark period and on into the illumination of the succeeding centuries.”

“Given this terrible image you've created, you have to admit that metaphysics was fundamentally powerful because it helped humanity move out of this dark time and into the enlightenment of the following centuries.”

“Metaphysics had nothing to do with it,” Ernest retorted.

“Metaphysics had nothing to do with it,” Ernest shot back.

“What?” Dr. Hammerfield cried. “It was not the thinking and the speculation that led to the voyages of discovery?”

“What?” Dr. Hammerfield exclaimed. “It wasn’t the thinking and speculation that led to the voyages of discovery?”

“Ah, my dear sir,” Ernest smiled, “I thought you were disqualified. You have not yet picked out the flaw in my definition of philosophy. You are now on an unsubstantial basis. But it is the way of the metaphysicians, and I forgive you. No, I repeat, metaphysics had nothing to do with it. Bread and butter, silks and jewels, dollars and cents, and, incidentally, the closing up of the overland trade-routes to India, were the things that caused the voyages of discovery. With the fall of Constantinople, in 1453, the Turks blocked the way of the caravans to India. The traders of Europe had to find another route. Here was the original cause for the voyages of discovery. Columbus sailed to find a new route to the Indies. It is so stated in all the history books. Incidentally, new facts were learned about the nature, size, and form of the earth, and the Ptolemaic system went glimmering.”

"Ah, my dear sir," Ernest smiled, "I thought you were disqualified. You haven't yet pointed out the flaw in my definition of philosophy. Right now, you're on shaky ground. But that's typical for metaphysicians, and I forgive you. No, I reiterate, metaphysics had nothing to do with it. Bread and butter, silks and jewels, dollars and cents, and, by the way, the shutdown of overland trade routes to India, were what prompted the voyages of discovery. After the fall of Constantinople in 1453, the Turks blocked the caravan routes to India. European traders had to find a different route. That was the original reason for the voyages of discovery. Columbus sailed to find a new path to the Indies. That's in all the history books. By the way, new facts were uncovered about the nature, size, and shape of the earth, and the Ptolemaic system went out the window."

Dr. Hammerfield snorted.

Dr. Hammerfield scoffed.

“You do not agree with me?” Ernest queried. “Then wherein am I wrong?”

“You don’t agree with me?” Ernest asked. “So where am I wrong?”

“I can only reaffirm my position,” Dr. Hammerfield retorted tartly. “It is too long a story to enter into now.”

“I can only reaffirm my position,” Dr. Hammerfield replied sharply. “It's too long a story to get into right now.”

“No story is too long for the scientist,” Ernest said sweetly. “That is why the scientist gets to places. That is why he got to America.”

“No story is too long for the scientist,” Ernest said kindly. “That’s why the scientist reaches his goals. That’s why he made it to America.”

I shall not describe the whole evening, though it is a joy to me to recall every moment, every detail, of those first hours of my coming to know Ernest Everhard.

I won’t describe the entire evening, even though I love remembering every moment and detail of those first hours getting to know Ernest Everhard.

Battle royal raged, and the ministers grew red-faced and excited, especially at the moments when Ernest called them romantic philosophers, shadow-projectors, and similar things. And always he checked them back to facts. “The fact, man, the irrefragable fact!” he would proclaim triumphantly, when he had brought one of them a cropper. He bristled with facts. He tripped them up with facts, ambuscaded them with facts, bombarded them with broadsides of facts.

The battle was intense, and the ministers became increasingly agitated and flushed, especially when Ernest referred to them as romantic philosophers, shadow-projectors, and similar terms. He consistently brought them back to reality. “The fact, man, the undeniable fact!” he would exclaim victoriously when he caught one of them off guard. He was loaded with facts. He caught them off balance with facts, set traps for them with facts, and bombarded them with an onslaught of facts.

“You seem to worship at the shrine of fact,” Dr. Hammerfield taunted him.

“You seem to be a devoted follower of facts,” Dr. Hammerfield mocked him.

“There is no God but Fact, and Mr. Everhard is its prophet,” Dr. Ballingford paraphrased.

“There is no God but Fact, and Mr. Everhard is its prophet,” Dr. Ballingford rephrased.

Ernest smilingly acquiesced.

Ernest smiled and agreed.

“I’m like the man from Texas,” he said. And, on being solicited, he explained. “You see, the man from Missouri always says, ‘You’ve got to show me.’ But the man from Texas says, ‘You’ve got to put it in my hand.’ From which it is apparent that he is no metaphysician.”

“I’m like the guy from Texas,” he said. And, when asked, he explained. “You see, the guy from Missouri always says, ‘You need to show me.’ But the guy from Texas says, ‘You need to put it in my hand.’ From which it’s clear that he isn’t a deep thinker.”

Another time, when Ernest had just said that the metaphysical philosophers could never stand the test of truth, Dr. Hammerfield suddenly demanded:

Another time, when Ernest had just said that the metaphysical philosophers could never pass the truth test, Dr. Hammerfield suddenly asked:

“What is the test of truth, young man? Will you kindly explain what has so long puzzled wiser heads than yours?”

“What’s the test of truth, young man? Can you please explain what has confused smarter people than you for so long?”

“Certainly,” Ernest answered. His cocksureness irritated them. “The wise heads have puzzled so sorely over truth because they went up into the air after it. Had they remained on the solid earth, they would have found it easily enough—ay, they would have found that they themselves were precisely testing truth with every practical act and thought of their lives.”

“Of course,” Ernest replied. His overconfidence annoyed them. “The smart thinkers have struggled so much to find the truth because they looked for it in the clouds. If they had stayed grounded, they would have discovered it easily enough—they would have realized that they were actually testing truth with every practical action and thought in their lives.”

“The test, the test,” Dr. Hammerfield repeated impatiently. “Never mind the preamble. Give us that which we have sought so long—the test of truth. Give it us, and we will be as gods.”

“The test, the test,” Dr. Hammerfield said, clearly annoyed. “Skip the introduction. Just give us what we've been searching for all this time—the test of truth. Give it to us, and we will be like gods.”

There was an impolite and sneering scepticism in his words and manner that secretly pleased most of them at the table, though it seemed to bother Bishop Morehouse.

There was a rude and mocking disbelief in his words and attitude that secretly delighted most of the people at the table, though it seemed to annoy Bishop Morehouse.

“Dr. Jordan[9] has stated it very clearly,” Ernest said. “His test of truth is: ‘Will it work? Will you trust your life to it?’”

“Dr. Jordan[9] has said it clearly,” Ernest said. “His test of truth is: ‘Will it work? Will you trust your life to it?’”

[9] A noted educator of the late nineteenth and early twentieth centuries of the Christian Era. He was president of the Stanford University, a private benefaction of the times.

[9] A well-known educator from the late 1800s and early 1900s. He was the president of Stanford University, a private institution funded during that era.

“Pish!” Dr. Hammerfield sneered. “You have not taken Bishop Berkeley[10] into account. He has never been answered.”

“Pish!” Dr. Hammerfield sneered. “You haven’t considered Bishop Berkeley[10]. He’s never been answered.”

[10] An idealistic monist who long puzzled the philosophers of that time with his denial of the existence of matter, but whose clever argument was finally demolished when the new empiric facts of science were philosophically generalized.

[10] A hopeful monist who confused philosophers of his time by rejecting the existence of matter, but whose clever argument was ultimately dismantled when the new empirical findings of science were philosophically understood.

“The noblest metaphysician of them all,” Ernest laughed. “But your example is unfortunate. As Berkeley himself attested, his metaphysics didn’t work.”

“The greatest metaphysician of them all,” Ernest laughed. “But your example is unfortunate. As Berkeley himself acknowledged, his metaphysics didn’t hold up.”

Dr. Hammerfield was angry, righteously angry. It was as though he had caught Ernest in a theft or a lie.

Dr. Hammerfield was furious, justifiably furious. It was like he had caught Ernest in the act of stealing or lying.

“Young man,” he trumpeted, “that statement is on a par with all you have uttered to-night. It is a base and unwarranted assumption.”

“Young man,” he exclaimed, “that statement is on the same level as everything you’ve said tonight. It’s a low and unjustified assumption.”

“I am quite crushed,” Ernest murmured meekly. “Only I don’t know what hit me. You’ll have to put it in my hand, Doctor.”

“I feel totally crushed,” Ernest said softly. “I just don’t know what hit me. You’ll have to put it in my hand, Doctor.”

“I will, I will,” Dr. Hammerfield spluttered. “How do you know? You do not know that Bishop Berkeley attested that his metaphysics did not work. You have no proof. Young man, they have always worked.”

“I will, I will,” Dr. Hammerfield sputtered. “How do you know? You don’t know that Bishop Berkeley said his metaphysics didn’t work. You have no proof. Young man, they have always worked.”

“I take it as proof that Berkeley’s metaphysics did not work, because—” Ernest paused calmly for a moment. “Because Berkeley made an invariable practice of going through doors instead of walls. Because he trusted his life to solid bread and butter and roast beef. Because he shaved himself with a razor that worked when it removed the hair from his face.”

“I see it as evidence that Berkeley’s metaphysics failed, because—” Ernest paused calmly for a moment. “Because Berkeley always chose to go through doors instead of walls. Because he depended on solid food like bread and butter and roast beef. Because he used a razor that actually worked when it removed the hair from his face.”

“But those are actual things!” Dr. Hammerfield cried. “Metaphysics is of the mind.”

“But those are real things!” Dr. Hammerfield exclaimed. “Metaphysics is all in the mind.”

“And they work—in the mind?” Ernest queried softly.

“And they work—in the mind?” Ernest asked softly.

The other nodded.

The other person nodded.

“And even a multitude of angels can dance on the point of a needle—in the mind,” Ernest went on reflectively. “And a blubber-eating, fur-clad god can exist and work—in the mind; and there are no proofs to the contrary—in the mind. I suppose, Doctor, you live in the mind?”

“And even a bunch of angels can dance on the tip of a needle—in the mind,” Ernest continued thoughtfully. “And a blubber-eating, fur-wearing god can exist and act—in the mind; and there are no proofs to the contrary—in the mind. I guess, Doctor, you live in the mind?”

“My mind to me a kingdom is,” was the answer.

"My mind is a kingdom to me," was the answer.

“That’s another way of saying that you live up in the air. But you come back to earth at meal-time, I am sure, or when an earthquake happens along. Or, tell me, Doctor, do you have no apprehension in an earthquake that that incorporeal body of yours will be hit by an immaterial brick?”

"That's another way of saying you’re a bit spaced out. But I’m sure you come back down to reality at mealtime, or when an earthquake hits. Seriously, Doctor, don't you worry that your ghostly body might get hit by an invisible brick during an earthquake?"

Instantly, and quite unconsciously, Dr. Hammerfield’s hand shot up to his head, where a scar disappeared under the hair. It happened that Ernest had blundered on an apposite illustration. Dr. Hammerfield had been nearly killed in the Great Earthquake[11] by a falling chimney. Everybody broke out into roars of laughter.

Instantly, and without thinking, Dr. Hammerfield’s hand went to his head, where a scar was hidden under his hair. It turned out that Ernest had stumbled upon a fitting example. Dr. Hammerfield had come close to dying in the Great Earthquake[11] when a chimney fell on him. Everyone burst out laughing.

[11] The Great Earthquake of 1906 A.D. that destroyed San Francisco.

[11] The Great Earthquake of 1906 that devastated San Francisco.

“Well?” Ernest asked, when the merriment had subsided. “Proofs to the contrary?”

“Well?” Ernest asked, when the laughter had died down. “Any evidence to the contrary?”

And in the silence he asked again, “Well?” Then he added, “Still well, but not so well, that argument of yours.”

And in the silence, he asked again, “Well?” Then he added, “Still good, but not so good, that argument of yours.”

But Dr. Hammerfield was temporarily crushed, and the battle raged on in new directions. On point after point, Ernest challenged the ministers. When they affirmed that they knew the working class, he told them fundamental truths about the working class that they did not know, and challenged them for disproofs. He gave them facts, always facts, checked their excursions into the air, and brought them back to the solid earth and its facts.

But Dr. Hammerfield was momentarily defeated, and the fight continued in new directions. Point after point, Ernest challenged the ministers. When they claimed to understand the working class, he revealed essential truths about them that they were unaware of and demanded proof to the contrary. He presented them with facts, always facts, kept their imaginative ideas grounded, and brought them back to reality and its truths.

How the scene comes back to me! I can hear him now, with that war-note in his voice, flaying them with his facts, each fact a lash that stung and stung again. And he was merciless. He took no quarter,[12] and gave none. I can never forget the flaying he gave them at the end:

How that scene comes back to me! I can hear him now, with that battle cry in his voice, striking them down with his facts, each fact a whip that stung and stung again. And he was ruthless. He showed no mercy and received none. I'll never forget the beating he gave them at the end:

[12] This figure arises from the customs of the times. When, among men fighting to the death in their wild-animal way, a beaten man threw down his weapons, it was at the option of the victor to slay him or spare him.

[12] This situation comes from the customs of the era. When, in the savage and brutal way of men fighting to the death, a defeated man dropped his weapons, it was up to the victor to decide whether to kill him or let him live.

“You have repeatedly confessed to-night, by direct avowal or ignorant statement, that you do not know the working class. But you are not to be blamed for this. How can you know anything about the working class? You do not live in the same locality with the working class. You herd with the capitalist class in another locality. And why not? It is the capitalist class that pays you, that feeds you, that puts the very clothes on your backs that you are wearing to-night. And in return you preach to your employers the brands of metaphysics that are especially acceptable to them; and the especially acceptable brands are acceptable because they do not menace the established order of society.”

“You’ve admitted multiple times tonight, either directly or through your clueless remarks, that you don’t understand the working class. But that’s not your fault. How could you possibly know anything about the working class? You don’t live in the same neighborhood as them. You spend your time with the capitalist class in a different area. And why wouldn’t you? It’s the capitalist class that pays you, supports you, and provides the very clothes you’re wearing tonight. In exchange, you promote the kinds of ideas that your employers find appealing; and those appealing ideas are favorable because they don’t threaten the current social order.”

Here there was a stir of dissent around the table.

There was a wave of disagreement around the table.

“Oh, I am not challenging your sincerity,” Ernest continued. “You are sincere. You preach what you believe. There lies your strength and your value—to the capitalist class. But should you change your belief to something that menaces the established order, your preaching would be unacceptable to your employers, and you would be discharged. Every little while some one or another of you is so discharged.[13] Am I not right?”

“Oh, I’m not questioning your sincerity,” Ernest continued. “You’re sincere. You speak what you truly believe. That’s your strength and your worth—to the capitalist class. But if you were to change your beliefs to something that threatens the status quo, your preaching would no longer be okay with your employers, and you’d be fired. From time to time, one of you gets fired for this reason. Am I right?”

[13] During this period there were many ministers cast out of the church for preaching unacceptable doctrine. Especially were they cast out when their preaching became tainted with socialism.

[13] During this time, many ministers were expelled from the church for preaching doctrines that were deemed unacceptable. They were particularly ousted when their sermons included elements of socialism.

This time there was no dissent. They sat dumbly acquiescent, with the exception of Dr. Hammerfield, who said:

This time there was no disagreement. They sat silently agreeing, except for Dr. Hammerfield, who said:

“It is when their thinking is wrong that they are asked to resign.”

“It’s when they’re thinking incorrectly that they’re asked to step down.”

“Which is another way of saying when their thinking is unacceptable,” Ernest answered, and then went on. “So I say to you, go ahead and preach and earn your pay, but for goodness’ sake leave the working class alone. You belong in the enemy’s camp. You have nothing in common with the working class. Your hands are soft with the work others have performed for you. Your stomachs are round with the plenitude of eating.” (Here Dr. Ballingford winced, and every eye glanced at his prodigious girth. It was said he had not seen his own feet in years.) “And your minds are filled with doctrines that are buttresses of the established order. You are as much mercenaries (sincere mercenaries, I grant) as were the men of the Swiss Guard.[14] Be true to your salt and your hire; guard, with your preaching, the interests of your employers; but do not come down to the working class and serve as false leaders. You cannot honestly be in the two camps at once. The working class has done without you. Believe me, the working class will continue to do without you. And, furthermore, the working class can do better without you than with you.”

“Which is another way of saying when their thinking is unacceptable,” Ernest replied, and then continued. “So I tell you, go ahead and preach and earn your living, but for goodness' sake, leave the working class alone. You belong in the enemy’s camp. You have nothing in common with the working class. Your hands are soft from the work others have done for you. Your stomachs are round from all the food you’ve eaten.” (Here Dr. Ballingford winced, and everyone looked at his massive size. It was said he hadn’t seen his own feet in years.) “And your minds are filled with beliefs that support the established order. You’re just as much mercenaries (sincere mercenaries, I admit) as the men of the Swiss Guard. Be true to your role and your paycheck; protect, with your preaching, the interests of your employers; but don’t come down to the working class and act as false leaders. You can’t honestly be in both camps at once. The working class has managed without you. Trust me, the working class will keep managing without you. And, besides, the working class can do better without you than with you.”

[14] The hired foreign palace guards of Louis XVI, a king of France that was beheaded by his people.

[14] The foreign palace guards hired by Louis XVI, a king of France who was executed by his own people.

CHAPTER II.
CHALLENGES

After the guests had gone, father threw himself into a chair and gave vent to roars of Gargantuan laughter. Not since the death of my mother had I known him to laugh so heartily.

After the guests had left, Dad collapsed into a chair and burst out laughing like a giant. I hadn't seen him laugh like that since my mom passed away.

“I’ll wager Dr. Hammerfield was never up against anything like it in his life,” he laughed. “‘The courtesies of ecclesiastical controversy!’ Did you notice how he began like a lamb—Everhard, I mean, and how quickly he became a roaring lion? He has a splendidly disciplined mind. He would have made a good scientist if his energies had been directed that way.”

“I bet Dr. Hammerfield has never faced anything like this in his life,” he laughed. “‘The niceties of church debates!’ Did you see how he started off all calm—Everhard, I mean—and how fast he turned into a raging lion? He has a brilliantly well-trained mind. He would have been a great scientist if he had focused his efforts in that direction.”

I need scarcely say that I was deeply interested in Ernest Everhard. It was not alone what he had said and how he had said it, but it was the man himself. I had never met a man like him. I suppose that was why, in spite of my twenty-four years, I had not married. I liked him; I had to confess it to myself. And my like for him was founded on things beyond intellect and argument. Regardless of his bulging muscles and prize-fighter’s throat, he impressed me as an ingenuous boy. I felt that under the guise of an intellectual swashbuckler was a delicate and sensitive spirit. I sensed this, in ways I knew not, save that they were my woman’s intuitions.

I hardly need to say that I was really interested in Ernest Everhard. It wasn't just what he said or how he said it, but it was the man himself. I had never met anyone like him. I guess that's why, despite being twenty-four, I had never married. I liked him; I had to admit that to myself. And my feelings for him were rooted in more than just intellect and debate. Despite his big muscles and fighter’s build, he struck me as a genuine boy. I felt that behind his intellectual bravado, there was a sensitive and delicate spirit. I sensed this, in ways I couldn’t fully explain, except that it was my woman’s intuition.

There was something in that clarion-call of his that went to my heart. It still rang in my ears, and I felt that I should like to hear it again—and to see again that glint of laughter in his eyes that belied the impassioned seriousness of his face. And there were further reaches of vague and indeterminate feelings that stirred in me. I almost loved him then, though I am confident, had I never seen him again, that the vague feelings would have passed away and that I should easily have forgotten him.

There was something about his clarion call that touched my heart. It still echoed in my ears, and I realized I wanted to hear it again—and to see that spark of laughter in his eyes that contradicted the intense seriousness of his face. There were deeper, unclear feelings stirring within me. I almost loved him then, but I'm sure that if I had never seen him again, those vague feelings would have faded away, and I would have easily forgotten him.

But I was not destined never to see him again. My father’s new-born interest in sociology and the dinner parties he gave would not permit. Father was not a sociologist. His marriage with my mother had been very happy, and in the researches of his own science, physics, he had been very happy. But when mother died, his own work could not fill the emptiness. At first, in a mild way, he had dabbled in philosophy; then, becoming interested, he had drifted on into economics and sociology. He had a strong sense of justice, and he soon became fired with a passion to redress wrong. It was with gratitude that I hailed these signs of a new interest in life, though I little dreamed what the outcome would be. With the enthusiasm of a boy he plunged excitedly into these new pursuits, regardless of whither they led him.

But I was not meant to never see him again. My father’s newfound interest in sociology and the dinner parties he hosted wouldn’t allow it. Father wasn’t a sociologist. His marriage to my mother had been very happy, and he had found great satisfaction in his own field, physics. But when my mother passed away, his work couldn’t fill the void. At first, he casually explored philosophy; then, as he became more interested, he gradually moved into economics and sociology. He had a strong sense of justice and soon became driven by a desire to correct wrongs. I felt grateful for these signs of his renewed interest in life, even though I had no idea what the outcome would be. With the enthusiasm of a young boy, he eagerly dove into these new pursuits, no matter where they might lead him.

He had been used always to the laboratory, and so it was that he turned the dining room into a sociological laboratory. Here came to dinner all sorts and conditions of men,—scientists, politicians, bankers, merchants, professors, labor leaders, socialists, and anarchists. He stirred them to discussion, and analyzed their thoughts of life and society.

He had always been accustomed to the lab, so he transformed the dining room into a sociological experiment space. All kinds of people came to dinner—scientists, politicians, bankers, merchants, professors, labor leaders, socialists, and anarchists. He encouraged them to discuss and analyzed their views on life and society.

He had met Ernest shortly prior to the “preacher’s night.” And after the guests were gone, I learned how he had met him, passing down a street at night and stopping to listen to a man on a soap-box who was addressing a crowd of workingmen. The man on the box was Ernest. Not that he was a mere soap-box orator. He stood high in the councils of the socialist party, was one of the leaders, and was the acknowledged leader in the philosophy of socialism. But he had a certain clear way of stating the abstruse in simple language, was a born expositor and teacher, and was not above the soap-box as a means of interpreting economics to the workingmen.

He had met Ernest shortly before the “preacher’s night.” After the guests left, I found out how he had met him—walking down a street at night and stopping to listen to a man on a soapbox who was addressing a crowd of workers. The man on the box was Ernest. He wasn’t just an ordinary soapbox speaker; he was influential in the socialist party, one of its leaders, and the recognized authority in socialist philosophy. He had a knack for explaining complex ideas in simple terms, was a natural teacher and communicator, and didn’t shy away from using the soapbox to explain economics to the working class.

My father stopped to listen, became interested, effected a meeting, and, after quite an acquaintance, invited him to the ministers’ dinner. It was after the dinner that father told me what little he knew about him. He had been born in the working class, though he was a descendant of the old line of Everhards that for over two hundred years had lived in America.[1] At ten years of age he had gone to work in the mills, and later he served his apprenticeship and became a horseshoer. He was self-educated, had taught himself German and French, and at that time was earning a meagre living by translating scientific and philosophical works for a struggling socialist publishing house in Chicago. Also, his earnings were added to by the royalties from the small sales of his own economic and philosophic works.

My father paused to listen, got interested, arranged a meeting, and, after getting to know him a bit, invited him to the ministers’ dinner. It was after the dinner that my father shared what little he knew about him. He had been born into the working class, though he was a descendant of the old Everhard family that had lived in America for over two hundred years. At the age of ten, he started working in the mills, and later he completed his apprenticeship to become a horseshoer. He was self-taught, learned German and French on his own, and at that time, he was making a meager living by translating scientific and philosophical works for a struggling socialist publishing house in Chicago. Additionally, his income was supplemented by the royalties from the small sales of his own economic and philosophical writings.

[1] The distinction between being native born and foreign born was sharp and invidious in those days.

[1] The difference between being born in the country and being born elsewhere was clear and unfair back then.

This much I learned of him before I went to bed, and I lay long awake, listening in memory to the sound of his voice. I grew frightened at my thoughts. He was so unlike the men of my own class, so alien and so strong. His masterfulness delighted me and terrified me, for my fancies wantonly roved until I found myself considering him as a lover, as a husband. I had always heard that the strength of men was an irresistible attraction to women; but he was too strong. “No! no!” I cried out. “It is impossible, absurd!” And on the morrow I awoke to find in myself a longing to see him again. I wanted to see him mastering men in discussion, the war-note in his voice; to see him, in all his certitude and strength, shattering their complacency, shaking them out of their ruts of thinking. What if he did swashbuckle? To use his own phrase, “it worked,” it produced effects. And, besides, his swashbuckling was a fine thing to see. It stirred one like the onset of battle.

I learned this much about him before I went to bed, and I lay awake for a long time, listening in my mind to the sound of his voice. I became frightened by my thoughts. He was so different from the men in my own circle, so foreign and so strong. His dominance both thrilled and scared me, as my imagination wandered until I found myself thinking of him as a lover, even as a husband. I had always heard that men's strength was an irresistible draw for women, but he was too strong. “No! no!” I exclaimed. “That’s impossible, ridiculous!” The next morning, I woke up with a desire to see him again. I wanted to watch him dominate discussions, hear the intensity in his voice; to see him, in all his confidence and power, breaking through their complacency, shaking them out of their narrow thinking. So what if he was a bit of a show-off? To use his own words, “it worked,” it had an effect. Besides, his bravado was impressive to witness. It stirred something inside you, like the rush before a battle.

Several days passed during which I read Ernest’s books, borrowed from my father. His written word was as his spoken word, clear and convincing. It was its absolute simplicity that convinced even while one continued to doubt. He had the gift of lucidity. He was the perfect expositor. Yet, in spite of his style, there was much that I did not like. He laid too great stress on what he called the class struggle, the antagonism between labor and capital, the conflict of interest.

Several days went by while I read Ernest's books that I borrowed from my dad. His writing was just like his speaking—clear and persuasive. It was his utter simplicity that made it convincing, even when I still had doubts. He had a knack for clarity. He was the perfect teacher. Still, despite his style, there was a lot that I didn’t like. He placed too much emphasis on what he referred to as class struggle, the conflict between workers and employers, the clash of interests.

Father reported with glee Dr. Hammerfield’s judgment of Ernest, which was to the effect that he was “an insolent young puppy, made bumptious by a little and very inadequate learning.” Also, Dr. Hammerfield declined to meet Ernest again.

Father happily reported Dr. Hammerfield’s opinion of Ernest, stating that he was “an arrogant young pup, overly confident due to a small amount of very limited education.” Furthermore, Dr. Hammerfield refused to see Ernest again.

But Bishop Morehouse turned out to have become interested in Ernest, and was anxious for another meeting. “A strong young man,” he said; “and very much alive, very much alive. But he is too sure, too sure.”

But Bishop Morehouse turned out to have become interested in Ernest and was eager for another meeting. “A strong young man,” he said; “and very much alive, very much alive. But he is too confident, too confident.”

Ernest came one afternoon with father. The Bishop had already arrived, and we were having tea on the veranda. Ernest’s continued presence in Berkeley, by the way, was accounted for by the fact that he was taking special courses in biology at the university, and also that he was hard at work on a new book entitled “Philosophy and Revolution.”[2]

Ernest came one afternoon with Dad. The Bishop had already arrived, and we were having tea on the porch. By the way, Ernest was still in Berkeley because he was taking special biology courses at the university and was also busy working on a new book called “Philosophy and Revolution.”[2]

[2] This book continued to be secretly printed throughout the three centuries of the Iron Heel. There are several copies of various editions in the National Library of Ardis.

[2] This book kept being secretly printed over the three centuries of the Iron Heel. There are several copies of different editions in the National Library of Ardis.

The veranda seemed suddenly to have become small when Ernest arrived. Not that he was so very large—he stood only five feet nine inches; but that he seemed to radiate an atmosphere of largeness. As he stopped to meet me, he betrayed a certain slight awkwardness that was strangely at variance with his bold-looking eyes and his firm, sure hand that clasped for a moment in greeting. And in that moment his eyes were just as steady and sure. There seemed a question in them this time, and as before he looked at me over long.

The veranda suddenly felt smaller when Ernest showed up. It’s not that he was particularly tall—he was only five feet nine—but he gave off a vibe of someone larger than life. As he paused to greet me, he showed a hint of awkwardness that felt oddly out of place compared to his confident-looking eyes and the firm grip of his hand that shook mine for a moment. In that moment, his eyes were just as steady and confident. There seemed to be a question in his gaze this time, and once again, he looked at me for a bit too long.

“I have been reading your ‘Working-class Philosophy,’” I said, and his eyes lighted in a pleased way.

“I’ve been reading your ‘Working-class Philosophy,’” I said, and his eyes lit up with pleasure.

“Of course,” he answered, “you took into consideration the audience to which it was addressed.”

“Of course,” he replied, “you considered the audience it was meant for.”

“I did, and it is because I did that I have a quarrel with you,” I challenged.

"I did, and that's why I have an issue with you," I challenged.

“I, too, have a quarrel with you, Mr. Everhard,” Bishop Morehouse said.

“I also have a disagreement with you, Mr. Everhard,” Bishop Morehouse said.

Ernest shrugged his shoulders whimsically and accepted a cup of tea.

Ernest shrugged playfully and accepted a cup of tea.

The Bishop bowed and gave me precedence.

The Bishop bowed and let me go first.

“You foment class hatred,” I said. “I consider it wrong and criminal to appeal to all that is narrow and brutal in the working class. Class hatred is anti-social, and, it seems to me, anti-socialistic.”

“You encourage class hatred,” I said. “I think it’s wrong and criminal to appeal to the narrow and brutal instincts of the working class. Class hatred is harmful to society, and, to me, it’s also anti-socialist.”

“Not guilty,” he answered. “Class hatred is neither in the text nor in the spirit of anything I have ever written.”

“Not guilty,” he replied. “Class hatred isn’t found in the text or the intent of anything I’ve ever written.”

“Oh!” I cried reproachfully, and reached for his book and opened it.

“Oh!” I exclaimed reproachfully, and grabbed his book and opened it.

He sipped his tea and smiled at me while I ran over the pages.

He took a sip of his tea and smiled at me while I flipped through the pages.

“Page one hundred and thirty-two,” I read aloud: “‘The class struggle, therefore, presents itself in the present stage of social development between the wage-paying and the wage-paid classes.’”

“Page one hundred and thirty-two,” I read aloud: “‘The class struggle, therefore, is currently happening between the people who pay wages and those who are paid wages.’”

I looked at him triumphantly.

I looked at him victoriously.

“No mention there of class hatred,” he smiled back.

“No mention of class hatred there,” he smiled back.

“But,” I answered, “you say ‘class struggle.’”

“But,” I replied, “you mention ‘class struggle.’”

“A different thing from class hatred,” he replied. “And, believe me, we foment no hatred. We say that the class struggle is a law of social development. We are not responsible for it. We do not make the class struggle. We merely explain it, as Newton explained gravitation. We explain the nature of the conflict of interest that produces the class struggle.”

“A different thing from class hatred,” he replied. “And, believe me, we don’t stir up any hatred. We say that class struggle is a fundamental aspect of social development. We’re not responsible for it. We don’t create the class struggle. We just explain it, like Newton explained gravity. We clarify the nature of the conflicting interests that lead to the class struggle.”

“But there should be no conflict of interest!” I cried.

“But there shouldn't be any conflict of interest!” I exclaimed.

“I agree with you heartily,” he answered. “That is what we socialists are trying to bring about,—the abolition of the conflict of interest. Pardon me. Let me read an extract.” He took his book and turned back several pages. “Page one hundred and twenty-six: ‘The cycle of class struggles which began with the dissolution of rude, tribal communism and the rise of private property will end with the passing of private property in the means of social existence.’”

“I totally agree with you,” he said. “That's what we socialists are working towards—the end of conflicting interests. Excuse me. Let me read a passage.” He grabbed his book and flipped back a few pages. “Page one hundred twenty-six: ‘The cycle of class struggles that started with the breakdown of primitive, tribal communism and the emergence of private property will conclude with the disappearance of private property in the means of social existence.’”

“But I disagree with you,” the Bishop interposed, his pale, ascetic face betraying by a faint glow the intensity of his feelings. “Your premise is wrong. There is no such thing as a conflict of interest between labor and capital—or, rather, there ought not to be.”

“But I disagree with you,” the Bishop cut in, his pale, austere face showing a faint glow that revealed the intensity of his feelings. “Your premise is incorrect. There shouldn't be any conflict of interest between labor and capital—or, to put it another way, there shouldn't be.”

“Thank you,” Ernest said gravely. “By that last statement you have given me back my premise.”

“Thanks,” Ernest said seriously. “With that last statement, you've restored my premise.”

“But why should there be a conflict?” the Bishop demanded warmly.

“But why should there be a conflict?” the Bishop asked kindly.

Ernest shrugged his shoulders. “Because we are so made, I guess.”

Ernest shrugged. “I guess that's just how we are.”

“But we are not so made!” cried the other.

“But we aren’t built that way!” exclaimed the other.

“Are you discussing the ideal man?” Ernest asked, “—unselfish and godlike, and so few in numbers as to be practically non-existent, or are you discussing the common and ordinary average man?”

“Are you talking about the ideal man?” Ernest asked, “—unselfish and godlike, and so rare that they’re practically nonexistent, or are you talking about the typical, everyday average man?”

“The common and ordinary man,” was the answer.

"The average and everyday person," was the answer.

“Who is weak and fallible, prone to error?”

“Who is weak and prone to making mistakes?”

Bishop Morehouse nodded.

Bishop Morehouse agreed.

“And petty and selfish?”

"And petty and self-centered?"

Again he nodded.

He nodded again.

“Watch out!” Ernest warned. “I said ‘selfish.’”

“Watch out!” Ernest warned. “I said ‘selfish.’”

“The average man IS selfish,” the Bishop affirmed valiantly.

“The average man is selfish,” the Bishop stated confidently.

“Wants all he can get?”

“Wants everything he can get?”

“Wants all he can get—true but deplorable.”

"Wants everything he can get—true but unfortunate."

“Then I’ve got you.” Ernest’s jaw snapped like a trap. “Let me show you. Here is a man who works on the street railways.”

“Then I’ve got you.” Ernest’s jaw snapped shut like a trap. “Let me show you. Here’s a guy who works on the street railways.”

“He couldn’t work if it weren’t for capital,” the Bishop interrupted.

“He wouldn’t be able to work without capital,” the Bishop interrupted.

“True, and you will grant that capital would perish if there were no labor to earn the dividends.”

"That's true, and you have to agree that capital would disappear without labor to earn the profits."

The Bishop was silent.

The Bishop stayed quiet.

“Won’t you?” Ernest insisted.

"Will you?" Ernest insisted.

The Bishop nodded.

The Bishop agreed.

“Then our statements cancel each other,” Ernest said in a matter-of-fact tone, “and we are where we were. Now to begin again. The workingmen on the street railway furnish the labor. The stockholders furnish the capital. By the joint effort of the workingmen and the capital, money is earned.[3] They divide between them this money that is earned. Capital’s share is called ‘dividends.’ Labor’s share is called ‘wages.’”

“Then our statements cancel each other out,” Ernest said calmly, “and we’re back where we started. So let's start over. The workers on the street railway provide the labor. The shareholders provide the money. Together, through the effort of the workers and the capital, money is made. They split the money that’s earned between them. The capital's portion is called ‘dividends.’ The labor's portion is called ‘wages.’”

[3] In those days, groups of predatory individuals controlled all the means of transportation, and for the use of same levied toll upon the public.

[3] Back then, gangs of ruthless people controlled all the transportation systems and charged the public fees to use them.

“Very good,” the Bishop interposed. “And there is no reason that the division should not be amicable.”

“Sounds great,” the Bishop said. “And there’s no reason why the split can’t be friendly.”

“You have already forgotten what we had agreed upon,” Ernest replied. “We agreed that the average man is selfish. He is the man that is. You have gone up in the air and are arranging a division between the kind of men that ought to be but are not. But to return to the earth, the workingman, being selfish, wants all he can get in the division. The capitalist, being selfish, wants all he can get in the division. When there is only so much of the same thing, and when two men want all they can get of the same thing, there is a conflict of interest between labor and capital. And it is an irreconcilable conflict. As long as workingmen and capitalists exist, they will continue to quarrel over the division. If you were in San Francisco this afternoon, you’d have to walk. There isn’t a street car running.”

“You've already forgotten what we agreed on,” Ernest replied. “We agreed that the average person is selfish. That's just how it is. You've lost touch with reality and are trying to create a divide between the kind of people that should exist but don’t. But to get back to reality, the working class, being selfish, wants as much as they can get from the resources. The capitalists, also being selfish, want as much as they can get from the same resources. When there's only so much of something, and two people want as much as they can get of that thing, it creates a conflict of interest between labor and capital. And it’s a conflict that can’t be resolved. As long as workers and capitalists exist, they’ll keep fighting over the resources. If you were in San Francisco this afternoon, you'd have to walk. There isn’t a streetcar running.”

“Another strike?”[4] the Bishop queried with alarm.

“Another strike?”[4] the Bishop asked with concern.

[4] These quarrels were very common in those irrational and anarchic times. Sometimes the laborers refused to work. Sometimes the capitalists refused to let the laborers work. In the violence and turbulence of such disagreements much property was destroyed and many lives lost. All this is inconceivable to us—as inconceivable as another custom of that time, namely, the habit the men of the lower classes had of breaking the furniture when they quarrelled with their wives.

[4] These fights were really common in those chaotic and lawless times. Sometimes the workers refused to work, and sometimes the capitalists wouldn't let the workers do their jobs. In the chaos and violence of these disputes, a lot of property was damaged and many lives were lost. All of this seems unimaginable to us—just as unimaginable as another practice from that time, which was that men from lower classes would break furniture when they argued with their wives.

“Yes, they’re quarrelling over the division of the earnings of the street railways.”

“Yes, they’re arguing about how to split the profits from the street railways.”

Bishop Morehouse became excited.

Bishop Morehouse got excited.

“It is wrong!” he cried. “It is so short-sighted on the part of the workingmen. How can they hope to keep our sympathy—”

“It’s wrong!” he exclaimed. “It’s really short-sighted of the workers. How can they expect to keep our support—”

“When we are compelled to walk,” Ernest said slyly.

“When we have to walk,” Ernest said slyly.

But Bishop Morehouse ignored him and went on:

But Bishop Morehouse ignored him and continued:

“Their outlook is too narrow. Men should be men, not brutes. There will be violence and murder now, and sorrowing widows and orphans. Capital and labor should be friends. They should work hand in hand and to their mutual benefit.”

"Their perspective is too limited. Men should be strong, not savage. There will be violence and death now, along with grieving widows and orphans. Capital and labor should be allies. They should collaborate and benefit each other."

“Ah, now you are up in the air again,” Ernest remarked dryly. “Come back to earth. Remember, we agreed that the average man is selfish.”

“Ah, now you’re off in the clouds again,” Ernest said flatly. “Get back to reality. Remember, we agreed that most people are selfish.”

“But he ought not to be!” the Bishop cried.

“But he shouldn’t be!” the Bishop shouted.

“And there I agree with you,” was Ernest’s rejoinder. “He ought not to be selfish, but he will continue to be selfish as long as he lives in a social system that is based on pig-ethics.”

“And I agree with you there,” Ernest replied. “He shouldn't be selfish, but he will keep being selfish as long as he lives in a society that runs on greedy morals.”

The Bishop was aghast, and my father chuckled.

The Bishop was shocked, and my dad laughed.

“Yes, pig-ethics,” Ernest went on remorselessly. “That is the meaning of the capitalist system. And that is what your church is standing for, what you are preaching for every time you get up in the pulpit. Pig-ethics! There is no other name for it.”

“Yes, pig-ethics,” Ernest continued without remorse. “That’s what the capitalist system really means. And that’s what your church stands for, what you preach every time you get up in the pulpit. Pig-ethics! There’s no other name for it.”

Bishop Morehouse turned appealingly to my father, but he laughed and nodded his head.

Bishop Morehouse looked at my father with a friendly expression, but he just laughed and nodded his head.

“I’m afraid Mr. Everhard is right,” he said. “Laissez-faire, the let-alone policy of each for himself and devil take the hindmost. As Mr. Everhard said the other night, the function you churchmen perform is to maintain the established order of society, and society is established on that foundation.”

“I’m afraid Mr. Everhard is right,” he said. “Laissez-faire, the hands-off approach of everyone for themselves, and let the last person fall behind. As Mr. Everhard mentioned the other night, your role as church leaders is to uphold the established order of society, and that order is built on that foundation.”

“But that is not the teaching of Christ!” cried the Bishop.

“But that's not what Christ taught!” shouted the Bishop.

“The Church is not teaching Christ these days,” Ernest put in quickly. “That is why the workingmen will have nothing to do with the Church. The Church condones the frightful brutality and savagery with which the capitalist class treats the working class.”

“The Church isn’t teaching Christ these days,” Ernest said quickly. “That’s why working people want nothing to do with the Church. The Church accepts the terrible brutality and savagery that the capitalist class uses against the working class.”

“The Church does not condone it,” the Bishop objected.

"The Church doesn't approve of it," the Bishop protested.

“The Church does not protest against it,” Ernest replied. “And in so far as the Church does not protest, it condones, for remember the Church is supported by the capitalist class.”

“The Church doesn’t speak out against it,” Ernest replied. “And as long as the Church doesn’t protest, it basically approves, because keep in mind the Church is backed by the capitalist class.”

“I had not looked at it in that light,” the Bishop said naively. “You must be wrong. I know that there is much that is sad and wicked in this world. I know that the Church has lost the—what you call the proletariat.”[5]

“I hadn’t thought of it that way,” the Bishop said innocently. “You must be mistaken. I realize there’s a lot of sadness and evil in this world. I understand that the Church has lost the—what you call the working class.”[5]

[5] Proletariat: Derived originally from the Latin proletarii, the name given in the census of Servius Tullius to those who were of value to the state only as the rearers of offspring (proles); in other words, they were of no importance either for wealth, or position, or exceptional ability.

[5] Proletariat: Originally from the Latin proletarii, this term was used in the census of Servius Tullius for those who were valuable to the state only for their ability to produce children (proles); in other words, they lacked significance in terms of wealth, status, or exceptional talent.

“You never had the proletariat,” Ernest cried. “The proletariat has grown up outside the Church and without the Church.”

“You never had the working class,” Ernest shouted. “The working class has grown up outside the Church and without the Church.”

“I do not follow you,” the Bishop said faintly.

"I don't understand you," the Bishop said weakly.

“Then let me explain. With the introduction of machinery and the factory system in the latter part of the eighteenth century, the great mass of the working people was separated from the land. The old system of labor was broken down. The working people were driven from their villages and herded in factory towns. The mothers and children were put to work at the new machines. Family life ceased. The conditions were frightful. It is a tale of blood.”

“Then let me explain. With the arrival of machinery and the factory system in the late 1700s, a huge part of the working population was pushed away from the land. The traditional way of working fell apart. Workers were driven out of their villages and crammed into factory towns. Mothers and children were forced to work on the new machines. Family life ended. The conditions were terrible. It’s a story of suffering.”

“I know, I know,” Bishop Morehouse interrupted with an agonized expression on his face. “It was terrible. But it occurred a century and a half ago.”

“I know, I know,” Bishop Morehouse interrupted with a pained look on his face. “It was awful. But it happened a hundred and fifty years ago.”

“And there, a century and a half ago, originated the modern proletariat,” Ernest continued. “And the Church ignored it. While a slaughter-house was made of the nation by the capitalist, the Church was dumb. It did not protest, as to-day it does not protest. As Austin Lewis[6] says, speaking of that time, those to whom the command ‘Feed my lambs’ had been given, saw those lambs sold into slavery and worked to death without a protest.[7] The Church was dumb, then, and before I go on I want you either flatly to agree with me or flatly to disagree with me. Was the Church dumb then?”

“And there, a hundred and fifty years ago, the modern working class was born,” Ernest continued. “And the Church turned a blind eye to it. While capitalists were butchering the nation, the Church stayed silent. It didn’t speak out, just like it doesn’t speak out today. As Austin Lewis says, referring to that time, those who were commanded to ‘Feed my lambs’ watched as those lambs were sold into slavery and worked to death without raising a word. The Church was silent back then, and before I move on, I want you to either fully agree with me or fully disagree with me. Was the Church silent then?”

[6] Candidate for Governor of California on the Socialist ticket in the fall election of 1906 Christian Era. An Englishman by birth, a writer of many books on political economy and philosophy, and one of the Socialist leaders of the times.

[6] Candidate for Governor of California on the Socialist ticket in the fall election of 1906 CE. An Englishman by birth, a writer of numerous books on political economy and philosophy, and one of the Socialist leaders of the era.

[7] There is no more horrible page in history than the treatment of the child and women slaves in the English factories in the latter half of the eighteenth century of the Christian Era. In such industrial hells arose some of the proudest fortunes of that day.

[7] There’s no more horrific chapter in history than the way child and women slaves were treated in English factories during the latter half of the 18th century. In these industrial nightmares, some of the most impressive fortunes of that time were built.

Bishop Morehouse hesitated. Like Dr. Hammerfield, he was unused to this fierce “infighting,” as Ernest called it.

Bishop Morehouse hesitated. Like Dr. Hammerfield, he wasn’t familiar with this intense “infighting,” as Ernest put it.

“The history of the eighteenth century is written,” Ernest prompted. “If the Church was not dumb, it will be found not dumb in the books.”

“The history of the eighteenth century is written,” Ernest prompted. “If the Church wasn't silent, it will be found not silent in the books.”

“I am afraid the Church was dumb,” the Bishop confessed.

“I’m afraid the Church was silent,” the Bishop admitted.

“And the Church is dumb to-day.”

“And the Church is silent today.”

“There I disagree,” said the Bishop.

"There I disagree," said the Bishop.

Ernest paused, looked at him searchingly, and accepted the challenge.

Ernest paused, looked at him intently, and accepted the challenge.

“All right,” he said. “Let us see. In Chicago there are women who toil all the week for ninety cents. Has the Church protested?”

"Okay," he said. "Let's see. In Chicago, there are women who work all week for ninety cents. Has the Church spoken out about this?"

“This is news to me,” was the answer. “Ninety cents per week! It is horrible!”

“This is news to me,” was the reply. “Ninety cents a week! That's terrible!”

“Has the Church protested?” Ernest insisted.

“Has the Church protested?” Ernest pressed.

“The Church does not know.” The Bishop was struggling hard.

“The Church doesn't know.” The Bishop was having a tough time.

“Yet the command to the Church was, ‘Feed my lambs,’” Ernest sneered. And then, the next moment, “Pardon my sneer, Bishop. But can you wonder that we lose patience with you? When have you protested to your capitalistic congregations at the working of children in the Southern cotton mills?[8] Children, six and seven years of age, working every night at twelve-hour shifts? They never see the blessed sunshine. They die like flies. The dividends are paid out of their blood. And out of the dividends magnificent churches are builded in New England, wherein your kind preaches pleasant platitudes to the sleek, full-bellied recipients of those dividends.”

“Yet the command to the Church was, ‘Feed my lambs,’” Ernest sneered. Then, in the next moment, he added, “Sorry for the sneer, Bishop. But can you blame us for losing patience with you? When have you ever spoken out to your wealthy congregations about children working in the Southern cotton mills? Children, just six and seven years old, working twelve-hour shifts every night? They never see the sunlight. They die like flies. The profits are coming from their suffering. And from those profits, beautiful churches are built in New England, where your kind preach comforting messages to the well-fed, wealthy recipients of those profits.”

[8] Everhard might have drawn a better illustration from the Southern Church’s outspoken defence of chattel slavery prior to what is known as the “War of the Rebellion.” Several such illustrations, culled from the documents of the times, are here appended. In 1835 A.D., the General Assembly of the Presbyterian Church resolved that: “slavery is recognized in both the Old and the New Testaments, and is not condemned by the authority of God.” The Charleston Baptist Association issued the following, in an address, in 1835 A.D.: “The right of masters to dispose of the time of their slaves has been distinctly recognized by the Creator of all things, who is surely at liberty to vest the right of property over any object whomsoever He pleases.” The Rev. E. D. Simon, Doctor of Divinity and professor in the Randolph-Macon Methodist College of Virginia, wrote: “Extracts from Holy Writ unequivocally assert the right of property in slaves, together with the usual incidents to that right. The right to buy and sell is clearly stated. Upon the whole, then, whether we consult the Jewish policy instituted by God himself, or the uniform opinion and practice of mankind in all ages, or the injunctions of the New Testament and the moral law, we are brought to the conclusion that slavery is not immoral. Having established the point that the first African slaves were legally brought into bondage, the right to detain their children in bondage follows as an indispensable consequence. Thus we see that the slavery that exists in America was founded in right.
    It is not at all remarkable that this same note should have been struck by the Church a generation or so later in relation to the defence of capitalistic property. In the great museum at Asgard there is a book entitled “Essays in Application,” written by Henry van Dyke. The book was published in 1905 of the Christian Era. From what we can make out, Van Dyke must have been a churchman. The book is a good example of what Everhard would have called bourgeois thinking. Note the similarity between the utterance of the Charleston Baptist Association quoted above, and the following utterance of Van Dyke seventy years later: “The Bible teaches that God owns the world. He distributes to every man according to His own good pleasure, conformably to general laws.

[8] Everhard might have made a better point by referencing the Southern Church’s vocal support of slavery before what is now called the “Civil War.” A few examples taken from the documents of that time are included here. In 1835, the General Assembly of the Presbyterian Church stated that: “slavery is acknowledged in both the Old and New Testaments, and is not condemned by God.” The Charleston Baptist Association declared in 1835: “The right of masters to control the time of their slaves has been clearly recognized by the Creator of all things, who has the freedom to grant ownership rights over any being He chooses.” Rev. E. D. Simon, a Doctor of Divinity and professor at Randolph-Macon Methodist College in Virginia, wrote: “Passages from the Bible clearly assert the right of ownership in slaves, along with the typical rights that come with that ownership. The rights to buy and sell are explicitly stated. Overall, whether we look at the Jewish law established by God, the consistent views and practices throughout history, or the teachings of the New Testament and moral law, we conclude that slavery is not immoral. Having established that the first African slaves were legally enslaved, the right to keep their children enslaved logically follows. Thus, we see that slavery in America was established legally.
    It’s not surprising that this same perspective was echoed by the Church about a generation later regarding the defense of capitalist property. In the great museum at Asgard, there is a book titled “Essays in Application,” written by Henry van Dyke. This book was published in 1905. From what we can gather, Van Dyke must have been a church member. The book is a clear example of what Everhard would have termed bourgeois thinking. Note the similarity between the statement from the Charleston Baptist Association mentioned earlier and Van Dyke's statement seventy years later: “The Bible teaches that God owns the world. He gives to each person according to His own good will, in accordance with general laws.

“I did not know,” the Bishop murmured faintly. His face was pale, and he seemed suffering from nausea.

“I didn't know,” the Bishop said quietly. His face was pale, and he looked like he was feeling nauseous.

“Then you have not protested?”

"Then you didn't protest?"

The Bishop shook his head.

The Bishop shook his head.

“Then the Church is dumb to-day, as it was in the eighteenth century?”

“Then the Church is silent today, just like it was in the eighteenth century?”

The Bishop was silent, and for once Ernest forbore to press the point.

The Bishop was quiet, and for once Ernest held back from pushing the issue.

“And do not forget, whenever a churchman does protest, that he is discharged.”

“And don’t forget, whenever a church member protests, that he is let go.”

“I hardly think that is fair,” was the objection.

"I don't think that's fair," was the objection.

“Will you protest?” Ernest demanded.

"Are you going to protest?" Ernest demanded.

“Show me evils, such as you mention, in our own community, and I will protest.”

“Show me the wrongs you’re talking about in our own community, and I will speak out.”

“I’ll show you,” Ernest said quietly. “I am at your disposal. I will take you on a journey through hell.”

“I’ll show you,” Ernest said softly. “I’m here for you. I’ll take you on a journey through hell.”

“And I shall protest.” The Bishop straightened himself in his chair, and over his gentle face spread the harshness of the warrior. “The Church shall not be dumb!”

“And I will protest.” The Bishop straightened up in his chair, and a fierce look crossed his gentle face. “The Church will not remain silent!”

“You will be discharged,” was the warning.

“You're going to be discharged,” was the warning.

“I shall prove the contrary,” was the retort. “I shall prove, if what you say is so, that the Church has erred through ignorance. And, furthermore, I hold that whatever is horrible in industrial society is due to the ignorance of the capitalist class. It will mend all that is wrong as soon as it receives the message. And this message it shall be the duty of the Church to deliver.”

“I'll prove you wrong,” was the response. “I'll show that if what you say is true, then the Church has made mistakes out of ignorance. Furthermore, I believe that everything terrible in industrial society is caused by the ignorance of the capitalist class. They will fix everything that’s wrong as soon as they get the message. And it’s the Church's responsibility to deliver that message.”

Ernest laughed. He laughed brutally, and I was driven to the Bishop’s defence.

Ernest laughed. He laughed harshly, and I was compelled to defend the Bishop.

“Remember,” I said, “you see but one side of the shield. There is much good in us, though you give us credit for no good at all. Bishop Morehouse is right. The industrial wrong, terrible as you say it is, is due to ignorance. The divisions of society have become too widely separated.”

“Remember,” I said, “you only see one side of the shield. There’s a lot of good in us, even if you don’t recognize it. Bishop Morehouse is right. The industrial issues, as bad as you claim they are, stem from ignorance. The divisions in society have become too far apart.”

“The wild Indian is not so brutal and savage as the capitalist class,” he answered; and in that moment I hated him.

“The wild Indian isn’t as brutal and savage as the capitalist class,” he replied; and in that moment, I hated him.

“You do not know us,” I answered. “We are not brutal and savage.”

"You don't know us," I replied. "We're not brutal and savage."

“Prove it,” he challenged.

"Show me," he challenged.

“How can I prove it . . . to you?” I was growing angry.

“How can I prove it to you?” I was getting angry.

He shook his head. “I do not ask you to prove it to me. I ask you to prove it to yourself.”

He shook his head. “I don’t need you to prove it to me. I need you to prove it to yourself.”

“I know,” I said.

“I get it,” I said.

“You know nothing,” was his rude reply.

"You don't know anything," was his rude response.

“There, there, children,” father said soothingly.

“There, there, kids,” Dad said soothingly.

“I don’t care—” I began indignantly, but Ernest interrupted.

"I don’t care—" I started angrily, but Ernest cut me off.

“I understand you have money, or your father has, which is the same thing—money invested in the Sierra Mills.”

"I get that you have money, or your dad does, which is basically the same thing—money invested in the Sierra Mills."

“What has that to do with it?” I cried.

“What does that have to do with anything?” I exclaimed.

“Nothing much,” he began slowly, “except that the gown you wear is stained with blood. The food you eat is a bloody stew. The blood of little children and of strong men is dripping from your very roof-beams. I can close my eyes, now, and hear it drip, drop, drip, drop, all about me.”

“Not much,” he started slowly, “except that the dress you’re wearing is stained with blood. The food you’re eating is a bloody stew. The blood of little children and strong men is dripping from your very roof beams. I can close my eyes now and hear it drip, drop, drip, drop all around me.”

And suiting the action to the words, he closed his eyes and leaned back in his chair. I burst into tears of mortification and hurt vanity. I had never been so brutally treated in my life. Both the Bishop and my father were embarrassed and perturbed. They tried to lead the conversation away into easier channels; but Ernest opened his eyes, looked at me, and waved them aside. His mouth was stern, and his eyes too; and in the latter there was no glint of laughter. What he was about to say, what terrible castigation he was going to give me, I never knew; for at that moment a man, passing along the sidewalk, stopped and glanced in at us. He was a large man, poorly dressed, and on his back was a great load of rattan and bamboo stands, chairs, and screens. He looked at the house as if debating whether or not he should come in and try to sell some of his wares.

And matching his words with action, he closed his eyes and leaned back in his chair. I erupted in tears, feeling both humiliated and hurt. I had never been treated so brutally in my life. Both the Bishop and my father seemed uncomfortable and troubled. They attempted to steer the conversation in a more pleasant direction, but Ernest opened his eyes, looked at me, and waved them off. His expression was serious, as were his eyes; there was no hint of humor in them. I never discovered what he was about to say, what harsh reprimand he was going to give me, because just then, a man walking by on the sidewalk paused and looked in at us. He was a large man, dressed poorly, and carried a heavy load of rattan and bamboo stands, chairs, and screens on his back. He stared at the house as if considering whether to come in and try to sell some of his goods.

“That man’s name is Jackson,” Ernest said.

“That man’s name is Jackson,” Ernest said.

“With that strong body of his he should be at work, and not peddling,”[9] I answered curtly.

“With that strong body of his, he should be working, not selling stuff,” [9] I replied sharply.

[9] In that day there were many thousands of these poor merchants called pedlers. They carried their whole stock in trade from door to door. It was a most wasteful expenditure of energy. Distribution was as confused and irrational as the whole general system of society.

[9] In those days, there were thousands of struggling merchants known as peddlers. They took all their goods from door to door. It was a huge waste of effort. The distribution was as chaotic and illogical as the entire social system itself.

“Notice the sleeve of his left arm,” Ernest said gently.

“Check out the sleeve of his left arm,” Ernest said gently.

I looked, and saw that the sleeve was empty.

I looked and saw that the sleeve was empty.

“It was some of the blood from that arm that I heard dripping from your roof-beams,” Ernest said with continued gentleness. “He lost his arm in the Sierra Mills, and like a broken-down horse you turned him out on the highway to die. When I say ‘you,’ I mean the superintendent and the officials that you and the other stockholders pay to manage the mills for you. It was an accident. It was caused by his trying to save the company a few dollars. The toothed drum of the picker caught his arm. He might have let the small flint that he saw in the teeth go through. It would have smashed out a double row of spikes. But he reached for the flint, and his arm was picked and clawed to shreds from the finger tips to the shoulder. It was at night. The mills were working overtime. They paid a fat dividend that quarter. Jackson had been working many hours, and his muscles had lost their resiliency and snap. They made his movements a bit slow. That was why the machine caught him. He had a wife and three children.”

“Some of the blood from that arm was what I heard dripping from your roof beams,” Ernest said gently. “He lost his arm at the Sierra Mills, and like a worn-out horse, you left him on the side of the road to die. When I say ‘you,’ I’m referring to the superintendent and the officials that you and the other stockholders pay to run the mills for you. It was an accident. It happened because he was trying to save the company a few bucks. The picker’s toothed drum caught his arm. He could have let the small flint go through the teeth; it would have destroyed a double row of spikes. But he went for the flint, and his arm was torn to shreds from his fingertips to his shoulder. It was at night. The mills were working overtime. They made a big profit that quarter. Jackson had been on the job for many hours, and his muscles had lost their spring and snap. That’s why the machine caught him. He had a wife and three kids.”

“And what did the company do for him?” I asked.

“And what did the company do for him?” I asked.

“Nothing. Oh, yes, they did do something. They successfully fought the damage suit he brought when he came out of hospital. The company employs very efficient lawyers, you know.”

“Nothing. Oh, wait, they did do something. They successfully defended against the lawsuit he filed after he left the hospital. The company has very capable lawyers, you know.”

“You have not told the whole story,” I said with conviction. “Or else you do not know the whole story. Maybe the man was insolent.”

"You haven't shared the complete story," I said firmly. "Or maybe you don't know the whole story. Perhaps the man was being rude."

“Insolent! Ha! ha!” His laughter was Mephistophelian. “Great God! Insolent! And with his arm chewed off! Nevertheless he was a meek and lowly servant, and there is no record of his having been insolent.”

“Insolent! Ha! ha!” His laughter was sinister. “Good grief! Insolent! And with his arm bitten off! Yet he was a humble and devoted servant, and there’s no record of him ever being insolent.”

“But the courts,” I urged. “The case would not have been decided against him had there been no more to the affair than you have mentioned.”

“But the courts,” I insisted. “The case wouldn't have been decided against him if there had been nothing more to the situation than what you've mentioned.”

“Colonel Ingram is leading counsel for the company. He is a shrewd lawyer.” Ernest looked at me intently for a moment, then went on. “I’ll tell you what you do, Miss Cunningham. You investigate Jackson’s case.”

“Colonel Ingram is the lead attorney for the company. He’s a clever lawyer.” Ernest stared at me for a moment, then continued. “Here’s what I want you to do, Miss Cunningham. Look into Jackson’s case.”

“I had already determined to,” I said coldly.

“I had already decided to,” I said冷冷的.

“All right,” he beamed good-naturedly, “and I’ll tell you where to find him. But I tremble for you when I think of all you are to prove by Jackson’s arm.”

“All right,” he smiled warmly, “and I’ll tell you where to find him. But I worry for you when I think about everything you have to show with Jackson’s strength.”

And so it came about that both the Bishop and I accepted Ernest’s challenges. They went away together, leaving me smarting with a sense of injustice that had been done me and my class. The man was a beast. I hated him, then, and consoled myself with the thought that his behavior was what was to be expected from a man of the working class.

And so it happened that both the Bishop and I accepted Ernest’s challenges. They left together, leaving me feeling hurt and angry about the injustice done to me and my class. The man was a jerk. I hated him then and comforted myself with the idea that his behavior was typical of someone from the working class.

CHAPTER III.
JACKSON’S ARM

Little did I dream the fateful part Jackson’s arm was to play in my life. Jackson himself did not impress me when I hunted him out. I found him in a crazy, ramshackle[1] house down near the bay on the edge of the marsh. Pools of stagnant water stood around the house, their surfaces covered with a green and putrid-looking scum, while the stench that arose from them was intolerable.

Little did I know how important Jackson's arm would become in my life. When I looked for him, Jackson didn't make much of an impression on me. I found him in a rundown, dilapidated house near the bay at the edge of the marsh. Stagnant pools of water surrounded the house, their surfaces covered with a green and disgusting scum, and the smell coming from them was unbearable.

[1] An adjective descriptive of ruined and dilapidated houses in which great numbers of the working people found shelter in those days. They invariably paid rent, and, considering the value of such houses, enormous rent, to the landlords.

[1] An adjective describing the run-down and crumbling houses where many working people found shelter back then. They always paid rent, and given the state of these houses, it was an enormous amount to the landlords.

I found Jackson the meek and lowly man he had been described. He was making some sort of rattan-work, and he toiled on stolidly while I talked with him. But in spite of his meekness and lowliness, I fancied I caught the first note of a nascent bitterness in him when he said:

I found Jackson to be the quiet and humble man everyone described. He was working on some kind of rattan project, and he kept at it steadily while we talked. But despite his gentleness and humility, I thought I sensed the first hint of growing bitterness when he said:

“They might a-given me a job as watchman,[2] anyway.”

“They might have given me a job as a watchman, [2] anyway.”

[2] In those days thievery was incredibly prevalent. Everybody stole property from everybody else. The lords of society stole legally or else legalized their stealing, while the poorer classes stole illegally. Nothing was safe unless guarded. Enormous numbers of men were employed as watchmen to protect property. The houses of the well-to-do were a combination of safe deposit vault and fortress. The appropriation of the personal belongings of others by our own children of to-day is looked upon as a rudimentary survival of the theft-characteristic that in those early times was universal.

[2] Back then, stealing was really common. Everyone took things from everyone else. The wealthy stole legally or found ways to justify their theft, while the less fortunate stole illegally. Nothing was secure unless it was protected. A huge number of people worked as watchmen to guard property. The homes of the rich were like a mix between a bank vault and a fortress. The way our children today sometimes take things that belong to others is seen as a basic remnant of the universal theft that existed during those early times.

I got little out of him. He struck me as stupid, and yet the deftness with which he worked with his one hand seemed to belie his stupidity. This suggested an idea to me.

I got very little from him. He seemed dumb, but the way he skillfully worked with one hand made me question that impression. This gave me an idea.

“How did you happen to get your arm caught in the machine?” I asked.

“How did your arm get stuck in the machine?” I asked.

He looked at me in a slow and pondering way, and shook his head. “I don’t know. It just happened.”

He gazed at me thoughtfully and shook his head. “I don’t know. It just happened.”

“Carelessness?” I prompted.

"Carelessness?" I asked.

“No,” he answered, “I ain’t for callin’ it that. I was workin’ overtime, an’ I guess I was tired out some. I worked seventeen years in them mills, an’ I’ve took notice that most of the accidents happens just before whistle-blow.[3] I’m willin’ to bet that more accidents happens in the hour before whistle-blow than in all the rest of the day. A man ain’t so quick after workin’ steady for hours. I’ve seen too many of ’em cut up an’ gouged an’ chawed not to know.”

“No,” he replied, “I’m not calling it that. I was working overtime, and I guess I was a bit tired. I worked seventeen years in those mills, and I’ve noticed that most accidents happen right before the whistle blows.[3] I’d be willing to bet that more accidents happen in the hour before the whistle than in all the rest of the day. A guy isn’t as quick after working steadily for hours. I’ve seen too many people get cut up, gouged, and hurt not to know.”

[3] The laborers were called to work and dismissed by savage, screaming, nerve-racking steam-whistles.

[3] The workers were summoned to work and sent off by harsh, loud, nerve-wracking steam whistles.

“Many of them?” I queried.

"Quite a few?" I asked.

“Hundreds an’ hundreds, an’ children, too.”

“Hundreds and hundreds, and kids, too.”

With the exception of the terrible details, Jackson’s story of his accident was the same as that I had already heard. When I asked him if he had broken some rule of working the machinery, he shook his head.

With the exception of the awful details, Jackson’s version of his accident was the same as the one I had already heard. When I asked him if he had broken any rules while operating the machinery, he shook his head.

“I chucked off the belt with my right hand,” he said, “an’ made a reach for the flint with my left. I didn’t stop to see if the belt was off. I thought my right hand had done it—only it didn’t. I reached quick, and the belt wasn’t all the way off. And then my arm was chewed off.”

“I threw off the belt with my right hand,” he said, “and reached for the flint with my left. I didn’t pause to check if the belt was off. I thought my right hand had done it—but it hadn’t. I reached quickly, and the belt wasn’t completely off. And then my arm got bitten off.”

“It must have been painful,” I said sympathetically.

"It must have hurt," I said with sympathy.

“The crunchin’ of the bones wasn’t nice,” was his answer.

“The crunching of the bones wasn’t pleasant,” was his answer.

His mind was rather hazy concerning the damage suit. Only one thing was clear to him, and that was that he had not got any damages. He had a feeling that the testimony of the foremen and the superintendent had brought about the adverse decision of the court. Their testimony, as he put it, “wasn’t what it ought to have ben.” And to them I resolved to go.

His mind was pretty unclear about the lawsuit. The only thing he was sure of was that he hadn't received any compensation. He sensed that the testimonies of the foremen and the superintendent had led to the unfavorable court decision. As he put it, “wasn’t what it should have been.” So he decided to go talk to them.

One thing was plain, Jackson’s situation was wretched. His wife was in ill health, and he was unable to earn, by his rattan-work and peddling, sufficient food for the family. He was back in his rent, and the oldest boy, a lad of eleven, had started to work in the mills.

One thing was clear: Jackson’s situation was terrible. His wife was in poor health, and he couldn’t make enough money from his rattan work and selling goods to feed the family. He was behind on his rent, and his oldest son, an eleven-year-old, had begun working in the mills.

“They might a-given me that watchman’s job,” were his last words as I went away.

“They might have given me that watchman’s job,” were his last words as I left.

By the time I had seen the lawyer who had handled Jackson’s case, and the two foremen and the superintendent at the mills who had testified, I began to feel that there was something after all in Ernest’s contention.

By the time I met with the lawyer who managed Jackson's case, along with the two foremen and the superintendent at the mills who had testified, I started to feel that there was indeed something to Ernest's argument.

He was a weak and inefficient-looking man, the lawyer, and at sight of him I did not wonder that Jackson’s case had been lost. My first thought was that it had served Jackson right for getting such a lawyer. But the next moment two of Ernest’s statements came flashing into my consciousness: “The company employs very efficient lawyers” and “Colonel Ingram is a shrewd lawyer.” I did some rapid thinking. It dawned upon me that of course the company could afford finer legal talent than could a workingman like Jackson. But this was merely a minor detail. There was some very good reason, I was sure, why Jackson’s case had gone against him.

He looked like a weak and ineffective lawyer, and seeing him made me understand why Jackson lost his case. My first thought was that Jackson deserved it for hiring such a lawyer. But then I remembered two of Ernest’s comments: “The company hires very skilled lawyers” and “Colonel Ingram is a clever lawyer.” I did some quick thinking. It struck me that of course the company could afford better legal talent than a workingman like Jackson could. But that was just a minor detail. I was certain there was a good reason why Jackson’s case had turned out badly for him.

“Why did you lose the case?” I asked.

“Why did you lose the case?” I asked.

The lawyer was perplexed and worried for a moment, and I found it in my heart to pity the wretched little creature. Then he began to whine. I do believe his whine was congenital. He was a man beaten at birth. He whined about the testimony. The witnesses had given only the evidence that helped the other side. Not one word could he get out of them that would have helped Jackson. They knew which side their bread was buttered on. Jackson was a fool. He had been brow-beaten and confused by Colonel Ingram. Colonel Ingram was brilliant at cross-examination. He had made Jackson answer damaging questions.

The lawyer was confused and uneasy for a moment, and I felt a bit sorry for the poor little guy. Then he started to complain. I really think his complaining was natural to him. He was a man defeated from birth. He whined about the testimony. The witnesses only provided evidence that supported the other side. Not a single word could he get from them that would have helped Jackson. They knew where their loyalty lay. Jackson was a fool. He had been intimidated and flustered by Colonel Ingram. Colonel Ingram was an expert at cross-examination. He had made Jackson respond to incriminating questions.

“How could his answers be damaging if he had the right on his side?” I demanded.

“How could his answers hurt him if he was in the right?” I asked.

“What’s right got to do with it?” he demanded back. “You see all those books.” He moved his hand over the array of volumes on the walls of his tiny office. “All my reading and studying of them has taught me that law is one thing and right is another thing. Ask any lawyer. You go to Sunday-school to learn what is right. But you go to those books to learn . . . law.”

“What does right have to do with it?” he shot back. “You see all those books?” He gestured towards the collection of volumes lining the walls of his small office. “All my reading and studying has shown me that law is one thing and right is another. Ask any lawyer. You go to Sunday school to learn what’s right. But you go to those books to learn . . . law.”

“Do you mean to tell me that Jackson had the right on his side and yet was beaten?” I queried tentatively. “Do you mean to tell me that there is no justice in Judge Caldwell’s court?”

“Are you really saying that Jackson was in the right and still lost?” I asked uncertainly. “Are you saying there’s no justice in Judge Caldwell’s court?”

The little lawyer glared at me a moment, and then the belligerence faded out of his face.

The little lawyer stared at me for a moment, and then the hostility disappeared from his expression.

“I hadn’t a fair chance,” he began whining again. “They made a fool out of Jackson and out of me, too. What chance had I? Colonel Ingram is a great lawyer. If he wasn’t great, would he have charge of the law business of the Sierra Mills, of the Erston Land Syndicate, of the Berkeley Consolidated, of the Oakland, San Leandro, and Pleasanton Electric? He’s a corporation lawyer, and corporation lawyers are not paid for being fools.[4] What do you think the Sierra Mills alone give him twenty thousand dollars a year for? Because he’s worth twenty thousand dollars a year to them, that’s what for. I’m not worth that much. If I was, I wouldn’t be on the outside, starving and taking cases like Jackson’s. What do you think I’d have got if I’d won Jackson’s case?”

“I didn’t have a fair chance,” he started complaining again. “They made a fool out of Jackson and out of me, too. What chance did I have? Colonel Ingram is a great lawyer. If he wasn’t great, would he be in charge of the legal business for Sierra Mills, the Erston Land Syndicate, the Berkeley Consolidated, and the Oakland, San Leandro, and Pleasanton Electric? He’s a corporate lawyer, and corporate lawyers don’t get paid for being idiots.[4] What do you think the Sierra Mills pay him twenty thousand dollars a year for? Because he’s worth twenty thousand dollars a year to them, that’s why. I’m not worth that much. If I were, I wouldn’t be out here starving, taking cases like Jackson’s. What do you think I’d have gotten if I’d won Jackson’s case?”

[4] The function of the corporation lawyer was to serve, by corrupt methods, the money-grabbing propensities of the corporations. It is on record that Theodore Roosevelt, at that time President of the United States, said in 1905 A.D., in his address at Harvard Commencement: “We all know that, as things actually are, many of the most influential and most highly remunerated members of the Bar in every centre of wealth, make it their special task to work out bold and ingenious schemes by which their wealthy clients, individual or corporate, can evade the laws which were made to regulate, in the interests of the public, the uses of great wealth.

[4] The role of the corporate lawyer was to cater, through unethical means, to the profit-driven likings of corporations. It is noted that Theodore Roosevelt, who was the President of the United States at that time, stated in 1905 during his address at Harvard Commencement: “We all know that, as things actually are, many of the most influential and highest-paid members of the Bar in every hub of wealth make it their special mission to devise bold and clever schemes allowing their wealthy clients, whether individuals or corporations, to bypass the laws that were established to manage, for the benefit of the public, the use of substantial wealth.

“You’d have robbed him, most probably,” I answered.

“You probably would’ve robbed him,” I replied.

“Of course I would,” he cried angrily. “I’ve got to live, haven’t I?”[5]

“Of course I would,” he shouted, frustrated. “I have to live, don’t I?”[5]

[5] A typical illustration of the internecine strife that permeated all society. Men preyed upon one another like ravening wolves. The big wolves ate the little wolves, and in the social pack Jackson was one of the least of the little wolves.

[5] This is a clear example of the internal conflict that affected all levels of society. Men attacked each other like greedy wolves. The bigger wolves consumed the smaller ones, and in this social group, Jackson was among the smallest of the little wolves.

“He has a wife and children,” I chided.

“He has a wife and kids,” I scolded.

“So have I a wife and children,” he retorted. “And there’s not a soul in this world except myself that cares whether they starve or not.”

“So I have a wife and children,” he shot back. “And there’s not a single person in this world, except for me, who cares if they starve or not.”

His face suddenly softened, and he opened his watch and showed me a small photograph of a woman and two little girls pasted inside the case.

His face suddenly softened, and he opened his watch to show me a small photo of a woman and two little girls stuck inside the case.

“There they are. Look at them. We’ve had a hard time, a hard time. I had hoped to send them away to the country if I’d won Jackson’s case. They’re not healthy here, but I can’t afford to send them away.”

“There they are. Look at them. We’ve been through a lot, a lot. I had hoped to send them away to the countryside if I’d won Jackson’s case. They’re not doing well here, but I can’t afford to send them away.”

When I started to leave, he dropped back into his whine.

When I tried to leave, he fell back into his whining.

“I hadn’t the ghost of a chance. Colonel Ingram and Judge Caldwell are pretty friendly. I’m not saying that if I’d got the right kind of testimony out of their witnesses on cross-examination, that friendship would have decided the case. And yet I must say that Judge Caldwell did a whole lot to prevent my getting that very testimony. Why, Judge Caldwell and Colonel Ingram belong to the same lodge and the same club. They live in the same neighborhood—one I can’t afford. And their wives are always in and out of each other’s houses. They’re always having whist parties and such things back and forth.”

“I didn’t have a chance at all. Colonel Ingram and Judge Caldwell are pretty good friends. I’m not saying that if I’d gotten the right kind of testimony from their witnesses during cross-examination, their friendship would have changed the outcome. But I have to admit that Judge Caldwell did a lot to stop me from getting that very testimony. I mean, Judge Caldwell and Colonel Ingram are in the same lodge and the same club. They live in the same neighborhood—one I can’t afford. And their wives are always visiting each other. They’re constantly having whist parties and stuff like that back and forth.”

“And yet you think Jackson had the right of it?” I asked, pausing for the moment on the threshold.

“And yet you think Jackson was right?” I asked, pausing for a moment at the door.

“I don’t think; I know it,” was his answer. “And at first I thought he had some show, too. But I didn’t tell my wife. I didn’t want to disappoint her. She had her heart set on a trip to the country hard enough as it was.”

“I don’t think; I know it,” was his reply. “At first, I thought he was putting on a show, too. But I didn't tell my wife. I didn't want to let her down. She was really looking forward to a trip to the country as it was.”

“Why did you not call attention to the fact that Jackson was trying to save the machinery from being injured?” I asked Peter Donnelly, one of the foremen who had testified at the trial.

“Why didn't you point out that Jackson was trying to protect the machinery from getting damaged?” I asked Peter Donnelly, one of the foremen who had testified at the trial.

He pondered a long time before replying. Then he cast an anxious look about him and said:

He thought for a long time before answering. Then he glanced around nervously and said:

“Because I’ve a good wife an’ three of the sweetest children ye ever laid eyes on, that’s why.”

“Because I have a wonderful wife and three of the sweetest kids you’ve ever seen, that’s why.”

“I do not understand,” I said.

“I don’t get it,” I said.

“In other words, because it wouldn’t a-ben healthy,” he answered.

“In other words, because it wouldn’t have been healthy,” he answered.

“You mean—” I began.

"You mean—" I started.

But he interrupted passionately.

But he interrupted with passion.

“I mean what I said. It’s long years I’ve worked in the mills. I began as a little lad on the spindles. I worked up ever since. It’s by hard work I got to my present exalted position. I’m a foreman, if you please. An’ I doubt me if there’s a man in the mills that’d put out a hand to drag me from drownin’. I used to belong to the union. But I’ve stayed by the company through two strikes. They called me ‘scab.’ There’s not a man among ’em to-day to take a drink with me if I asked him. D’ye see the scars on me head where I was struck with flying bricks? There ain’t a child at the spindles but what would curse me name. Me only friend is the company. It’s not me duty, but me bread an’ butter an’ the life of me children to stand by the mills. That’s why.”

“I mean what I said. It's been many years since I started working in the mills. I began as a young kid on the spindles and have worked my way up since then. It's through hard work that I reached my current position. I'm a foreman, if you don't mind. And I doubt there’s a single man in the mills who would lend a hand to save me if I were drowning. I used to be part of the union, but I've supported the company through two strikes. They called me a ‘scab.’ Not one of them today would share a drink with me if I asked. Do you see the scars on my head from being hit by flying bricks? Not a child at the spindles wouldn’t curse my name. My only friend is the company. It’s not my duty, but it’s my bread and butter and the livelihood of my children to stand by the mills. That’s why.”

“Was Jackson to blame?” I asked.

“Was Jackson at fault?” I asked.

“He should a-got the damages. He was a good worker an’ never made trouble.”

“He should have gotten the damages. He was a good worker and never caused any trouble.”

“Then you were not at liberty to tell the whole truth, as you had sworn to do?”

“Then you weren’t free to tell the whole truth, as you promised to do?”

He shook his head.

He shook his head.

“The truth, the whole truth, and nothing but the truth?” I said solemnly.

“The truth, the whole truth, and nothing but the truth?” I said seriously.

Again his face became impassioned, and he lifted it, not to me, but to heaven.

Again, his face became filled with emotion, and he raised it, not toward me, but toward the sky.

“I’d let me soul an’ body burn in everlastin’ hell for them children of mine,” was his answer.

“I’d let my soul and body burn in everlasting hell for those kids of mine,” was his answer.

Henry Dallas, the superintendent, was a vulpine-faced creature who regarded me insolently and refused to talk. Not a word could I get from him concerning the trial and his testimony. But with the other foreman I had better luck. James Smith was a hard-faced man, and my heart sank as I encountered him. He, too, gave me the impression that he was not a free agent, and as we talked I began to see that he was mentally superior to the average of his kind. He agreed with Peter Donnelly that Jackson should have got damages, and he went farther and called the action heartless and cold-blooded that had turned the worker adrift after he had been made helpless by the accident. Also, he explained that there were many accidents in the mills, and that the company’s policy was to fight to the bitter end all consequent damage suits.

Henry Dallas, the superintendent, had a sly look about him and treated me with disdain, refusing to say a word. I couldn't get anything out of him about the trial or his testimony. However, I had better luck with the other foreman. James Smith was a tough-looking guy, and I felt a bit disheartened when I saw him. He also gave off the vibe that he wasn't really in control of his own decisions, but as we talked, I started to realize he was smarter than most people like him. He agreed with Peter Donnelly that Jackson deserved compensation and went even further, calling the company’s actions heartless and callous for leaving the worker without support after the accident rendered him helpless. He also pointed out that there were a lot of accidents in the mills and that the company’s strategy was to fight all damage claims to the very end.

“It means hundreds of thousands a year to the stockholders,” he said; and as he spoke I remembered the last dividend that had been paid my father, and the pretty gown for me and the books for him that had been bought out of that dividend. I remembered Ernest’s charge that my gown was stained with blood, and my flesh began to crawl underneath my garments.

“It means hundreds of thousands a year to the shareholders,” he said; and as he spoke, I recalled the last dividend that had been paid to my father, and the nice dress for me and the books for him that had been bought with that dividend. I remembered Ernest’s accusation that my dress was stained with blood, and my skin began to crawl underneath my clothes.

“When you testified at the trial, you didn’t point out that Jackson received his accident through trying to save the machinery from damage?” I said.

“When you testified at the trial, you didn’t mention that Jackson got hurt trying to protect the machinery from damage?” I said.

“No, I did not,” was the answer, and his mouth set bitterly. “I testified to the effect that Jackson injured himself by neglect and carelessness, and that the company was not in any way to blame or liable.”

“No, I didn’t,” was the response, and his expression turned sour. “I said that Jackson hurt himself due to neglect and carelessness, and that the company wasn’t responsible or liable at all.”

“Was it carelessness?” I asked.

“Was it negligence?” I asked.

“Call it that, or anything you want to call it. The fact is, a man gets tired after he’s been working for hours.”

“Call it that, or whatever you want. The truth is, a guy gets tired after putting in hours of work.”

I was becoming interested in the man. He certainly was of a superior kind.

I was starting to take an interest in the man. He was definitely someone special.

“You are better educated than most workingmen,” I said.

“You have a better education than most workers,” I said.

“I went through high school,” he replied. “I worked my way through doing janitor-work. I wanted to go through the university. But my father died, and I came to work in the mills.

“I went through high school,” he replied. “I paid my way by doing janitorial work. I wanted to go to university. But my father died, and I came to work in the mills."

“I wanted to become a naturalist,” he explained shyly, as though confessing a weakness. “I love animals. But I came to work in the mills. When I was promoted to foreman I got married, then the family came, and . . . well, I wasn’t my own boss any more.”

“I wanted to be a naturalist,” he said quietly, as if admitting a flaw. “I love animals. But I ended up working in the mills. When I got promoted to foreman, I got married, then the family came, and... well, I wasn’t in charge of my own life anymore.”

“What do you mean by that?” I asked.

“What do you mean by that?” I asked.

“I was explaining why I testified at the trial the way I did—why I followed instructions.”

“I was explaining why I testified at the trial the way I did—why I followed the instructions.”

“Whose instructions?”

"Whose orders?"

“Colonel Ingram. He outlined the evidence I was to give.”

“Colonel Ingram. He explained the information I was supposed to provide.”

“And it lost Jackson’s case for him.”

“And it cost Jackson the case.”

He nodded, and the blood began to rise darkly in his face.

He nodded, and blood began to flush darkly in his face.

“And Jackson had a wife and two children dependent on him.”

“And Jackson had a wife and two kids relying on him.”

“I know,” he said quietly, though his face was growing darker.

“I know,” he said softly, even though his expression was getting more serious.

“Tell me,” I went on, “was it easy to make yourself over from what you were, say in high school, to the man you must have become to do such a thing at the trial?”

“Tell me,” I continued, “was it easy to reinvent yourself from who you were, let’s say in high school, to the man you must have become to do something like that at the trial?”

The suddenness of his outburst startled and frightened me. He ripped[6] out a savage oath, and clenched his fist as though about to strike me.

The suddenness of his outburst startled and frightened me. He let out a fierce curse and clenched his fist as if he was about to hit me.

[6] It is interesting to note the virilities of language that were common speech in that day, as indicative of the life, ‘red of claw and fang,’ that was then lived. Reference is here made, of course, not to the oath of Smith, but to the verb ripped used by Avis Everhard.

[6] It's interesting to see the strong language that was commonly used back then, reflecting the life, ‘red of claw and fang,’ that people lived. This isn’t referring to Smith’s oath, but rather to the verb ripped used by Avis Everhard.

“I beg your pardon,” he said the next moment. “No, it was not easy. And now I guess you can go away. You’ve got all you wanted out of me. But let me tell you this before you go. It won’t do you any good to repeat anything I’ve said. I’ll deny it, and there are no witnesses. I’ll deny every word of it; and if I have to, I’ll do it under oath on the witness stand.”

“I’m sorry,” he said a moment later. “No, it wasn’t easy. And now I think you can leave. You’ve gotten everything you wanted from me. But let me tell you this before you go. It won’t help you to repeat anything I’ve said. I’ll deny it, and there are no witnesses. I’ll deny every single word; and if necessary, I’ll do it under oath in court.”

After my interview with Smith I went to my father’s office in the Chemistry Building and there encountered Ernest. It was quite unexpected, but he met me with his bold eyes and firm hand-clasp, and with that curious blend of his awkwardness and ease. It was as though our last stormy meeting was forgotten; but I was not in the mood to have it forgotten.

After my interview with Smith, I went to my dad’s office in the Chemistry Building and ran into Ernest. It was totally unexpected, but he greeted me with his intense gaze and strong handshake, along with that strange mix of his awkwardness and confidence. It felt like our last intense meeting was totally behind us, but I wasn't in the mood to forget it.

“I have been looking up Jackson’s case,” I said abruptly.

"I've been researching Jackson's case," I said suddenly.

He was all interested attention, and waited for me to go on, though I could see in his eyes the certitude that my convictions had been shaken.

He was fully engaged and waited for me to continue, although I could see in his eyes that he was sure my beliefs had been shaken.

“He seems to have been badly treated,” I confessed. “I—I—think some of his blood is dripping from our roof-beams.”

“He seems to have been treated really poorly,” I admitted. “I—I—think some of his blood is dripping from our roof beams.”

“Of course,” he answered. “If Jackson and all his fellows were treated mercifully, the dividends would not be so large.”

“Of course,” he replied. “If Jackson and all his buddies were treated kindly, the profits wouldn’t be as high.”

“I shall never be able to take pleasure in pretty gowns again,” I added.

“I'll never be able to enjoy pretty dresses again,” I added.

I felt humble and contrite, and was aware of a sweet feeling that Ernest was a sort of father confessor. Then, as ever after, his strength appealed to me. It seemed to radiate a promise of peace and protection.

I felt humble and regretful, and I realized that Ernest was like a father confessor to me. Then, as always, his strength drew me in. It seemed to give off a sense of peace and safety.

“Nor will you be able to take pleasure in sackcloth,” he said gravely. “There are the jute mills, you know, and the same thing goes on there. It goes on everywhere. Our boasted civilization is based upon blood, soaked in blood, and neither you nor I nor any of us can escape the scarlet stain. The men you talked with—who were they?”

“Nor will you be able to take pleasure in sackcloth,” he said seriously. “There are the jute mills, you know, and the same thing happens there. It happens everywhere. Our so-called civilization is built on blood, soaked in blood, and neither you nor I nor any of us can escape the scarlet stain. The men you talked with—who were they?”

I told him all that had taken place.

I told him everything that had happened.

“And not one of them was a free agent,” he said. “They were all tied to the merciless industrial machine. And the pathos of it and the tragedy is that they are tied by their heartstrings. Their children—always the young life that it is their instinct to protect. This instinct is stronger than any ethic they possess. My father! He lied, he stole, he did all sorts of dishonorable things to put bread into my mouth and into the mouths of my brothers and sisters. He was a slave to the industrial machine, and it stamped his life out, worked him to death.”

“And not one of them was a free agent,” he said. “They were all stuck in the relentless industrial system. The sad part is that they’re connected by their emotions. Their children—always the young lives they instinctively try to protect. This instinct is stronger than any morals they have. My father! He lied, he stole, he did all sorts of dishonorable things to put food on the table for me and my brothers and sisters. He was a slave to the industrial machine, and it crushed his life, worked him to death.”

“But you,” I interjected. “You are surely a free agent.”

"But you," I said. "You are definitely a free agent."

“Not wholly,” he replied. “I am not tied by my heartstrings. I am often thankful that I have no children, and I dearly love children. Yet if I married I should not dare to have any.”

"Not completely," he answered. "I'm not bound by my heart. I'm often grateful that I don't have kids, and I really love kids. But if I got married, I wouldn't feel brave enough to have any."

“That surely is bad doctrine,” I cried.

"That's definitely bad doctrine," I exclaimed.

“I know it is,” he said sadly. “But it is expedient doctrine. I am a revolutionist, and it is a perilous vocation.”

“I know it is,” he said sadly. “But it’s a practical belief. I’m a revolutionary, and it’s a risky job.”

I laughed incredulously.

I laughed in disbelief.

“If I tried to enter your father’s house at night to steal his dividends from the Sierra Mills, what would he do?”

“If I tried to sneak into your dad’s house at night to steal his dividends from the Sierra Mills, what would he do?”

“He sleeps with a revolver on the stand by the bed,” I answered. “He would most probably shoot you.”

“He keeps a revolver on the nightstand by the bed,” I replied. “He would probably shoot you.”

“And if I and a few others should lead a million and a half of men[7] into the houses of all the well-to-do, there would be a great deal of shooting, wouldn’t there?”

“And if a few of us and I were to lead a million and a half people[7] into the homes of all the wealthy, there would definitely be a lot of shooting, right?”

[7] This reference is to the socialist vote cast in the United States in 1910. The rise of this vote clearly indicates the swift growth of the party of revolution. Its voting strength in the United States in 1888 was 2068; in 1902, 127,713; in 1904, 435,040; in 1908, 1,108,427; and in 1910, 1,688,211.

[7] This refers to the socialist vote in the United States in 1910. The increase in this vote clearly shows the rapid growth of the revolutionary party. Its voting strength in the United States was 2,068 in 1888; 127,713 in 1902; 435,040 in 1904; 1,108,427 in 1908; and 1,688,211 in 1910.

“Yes, but you are not doing that,” I objected.

“Yes, but you’re not doing that,” I objected.

“It is precisely what I am doing. And we intend to take, not the mere wealth in the houses, but all the sources of that wealth, all the mines, and railroads, and factories, and banks, and stores. That is the revolution. It is truly perilous. There will be more shooting, I am afraid, than even I dream of. But as I was saying, no one to-day is a free agent. We are all caught up in the wheels and cogs of the industrial machine. You found that you were, and that the men you talked with were. Talk with more of them. Go and see Colonel Ingram. Look up the reporters that kept Jackson’s case out of the papers, and the editors that run the papers. You will find them all slaves of the machine.”

“It’s exactly what I’m doing. And we plan to take not just the wealth of the houses, but all the sources of that wealth—mines, railroads, factories, banks, and stores. That’s the revolution. It’s truly dangerous. I’m afraid there will be more violence than I can even imagine. But as I was saying, no one today is truly free. We're all caught up in the gears and mechanisms of the industrial machine. You realized that you were, and so were the men you spoke with. Talk to more of them. Go see Colonel Ingram. Look for the reporters who kept Jackson’s case out of the news, and the editors who run the papers. You’ll find they’re all slaves to the machine.”

A little later in our conversation I asked him a simple little question about the liability of workingmen to accidents, and received a statistical lecture in return.

A bit later in our conversation, I asked him a simple question about the liability of workers to accidents, and in return, I got a lecture filled with statistics.

“It is all in the books,” he said. “The figures have been gathered, and it has been proved conclusively that accidents rarely occur in the first hours of the morning work, but that they increase rapidly in the succeeding hours as the workers grow tired and slower in both their muscular and mental processes.

“It’s all in the books,” he said. “The data has been collected, and it has been clearly shown that accidents hardly happen in the early morning hours, but they rise quickly in the following hours as workers become tired and slower in both their physical and mental abilities.

“Why, do you know that your father has three times as many chances for safety of life and limb than has a working-man? He has. The insurance[8] companies know. They will charge him four dollars and twenty cents a year on a thousand-dollar accident policy, and for the same policy they will charge a laborer fifteen dollars.”

“Do you realize that your father has three times the chance of staying safe compared to a working man? It's true. The insurance companies know this. They will charge him four dollars and twenty cents a year for a thousand-dollar accident policy, while for the same policy, they will charge a laborer fifteen dollars.”

[8] In the terrible wolf-struggle of those centuries, no man was permanently safe, no matter how much wealth he amassed. Out of fear for the welfare of their families, men devised the scheme of insurance. To us, in this intelligent age, such a device is laughably absurd and primitive. But in that age insurance was a very serious matter. The amusing part of it is that the funds of the insurance companies were frequently plundered and wasted by the very officials who were intrusted with the management of them.

[8] During the brutal struggles with wolves in those centuries, no one was ever truly safe, regardless of how much wealth they accumulated. Out of concern for their families' safety, people came up with the idea of insurance. Today, in our advanced society, that concept seems laughably outdated and naive. However, back then, insurance was a serious issue. The ironic part is that the funds of insurance companies were often raided and mismanaged by the very officials responsible for overseeing them.

“And you?” I asked; and in the moment of asking I was aware of a solicitude that was something more than slight.

“And you?” I asked, and in that moment, I felt a concern that was deeper than just a little.

“Oh, as a revolutionist, I have about eight chances to the workingman’s one of being injured or killed,” he answered carelessly. “The insurance companies charge the highly trained chemists that handle explosives eight times what they charge the workingmen. I don’t think they’d insure me at all. Why did you ask?”

“Oh, as a revolutionary, I have about eight chances of getting hurt or killed compared to the working man’s one,” he replied casually. “Insurance companies charge the skilled chemists who handle explosives eight times what they charge regular workers. I doubt they'd even insure me at all. Why did you ask?”

My eyes fluttered, and I could feel the blood warm in my face. It was not that he had caught me in my solicitude, but that I had caught myself, and in his presence.

My eyes fluttered, and I could feel my face getting warm. It wasn't that he had caught me being concerned, but that I had caught myself being that way in front of him.

Just then my father came in and began making preparations to depart with me. Ernest returned some books he had borrowed, and went away first. But just as he was going, he turned and said:

Just then, my dad walked in and started getting ready to leave with me. Ernest returned some books he had borrowed and left first. But just as he was about to go, he turned and said:

“Oh, by the way, while you are ruining your own peace of mind and I am ruining the Bishop’s, you’d better look up Mrs. Wickson and Mrs. Pertonwaithe. Their husbands, you know, are the two principal stockholders in the Mills. Like all the rest of humanity, those two women are tied to the machine, but they are so tied that they sit on top of it.”

“Oh, by the way, while you're messing up your own peace of mind and I'm messing up the Bishop’s, you should probably check in with Mrs. Wickson and Mrs. Pertonwaithe. Their husbands, you know, are the two main shareholders in the Mills. Like everyone else, those two women are part of the system, but they are so involved that they sit at the top of it.”

CHAPTER IV.
SLAVES OF THE MACHINE

The more I thought of Jackson’s arm, the more shaken I was. I was confronted by the concrete. For the first time I was seeing life. My university life, and study and culture, had not been real. I had learned nothing but theories of life and society that looked all very well on the printed page, but now I had seen life itself. Jackson’s arm was a fact of life. “The fact, man, the irrefragable fact!” of Ernest’s was ringing in my consciousness.

The more I thought about Jackson’s arm, the more unsettled I felt. I was faced with reality. For the first time, I was truly seeing life. My time at university, along with my studies and culture, hadn’t been real. I had only learned theories about life and society that sounded good on paper, but now I had witnessed life itself. Jackson’s arm was a reality. “The fact, man, the undeniable fact!” of Ernest’s echoed in my mind.

It seemed monstrous, impossible, that our whole society was based upon blood. And yet there was Jackson. I could not get away from him. Constantly my thought swung back to him as the compass to the Pole. He had been monstrously treated. His blood had not been paid for in order that a larger dividend might be paid. And I knew a score of happy complacent families that had received those dividends and by that much had profited by Jackson’s blood. If one man could be so monstrously treated and society move on its way unheeding, might not many men be so monstrously treated? I remembered Ernest’s women of Chicago who toiled for ninety cents a week, and the child slaves of the Southern cotton mills he had described. And I could see their wan white hands, from which the blood had been pressed, at work upon the cloth out of which had been made my gown. And then I thought of the Sierra Mills and the dividends that had been paid, and I saw the blood of Jackson upon my gown as well. Jackson I could not escape. Always my meditations led me back to him.

It felt monstrous, impossible, that our entire society was built on blood. And yet there was Jackson. I couldn't escape him. My thoughts kept circling back to him like a compass pointing north. He had been treated terribly. His blood wasn't valued so that a larger profit could be made. I knew plenty of content families that had benefitted from those profits, gaining from Jackson's sacrifice. If one person could be so horrifically mistreated and society just go on without noticing, couldn't many more be treated the same way? I remembered the women in Chicago that Ernest had talked about, working for ninety cents a week, and the child laborers in the Southern cotton mills he described. I could see their pale hands, drained of life, working on the fabric that made my dress. Then I thought of the Sierra Mills and the dividends that had been distributed, and I realized that Jackson's blood was on my gown too. I couldn't escape Jackson. My thoughts always returned to him.

Down in the depths of me I had a feeling that I stood on the edge of a precipice. It was as though I were about to see a new and awful revelation of life. And not I alone. My whole world was turning over. There was my father. I could see the effect Ernest was beginning to have on him. And then there was the Bishop. When I had last seen him he had looked a sick man. He was at high nervous tension, and in his eyes there was unspeakable horror. From the little I learned I knew that Ernest had been keeping his promise of taking him through hell. But what scenes of hell the Bishop’s eyes had seen, I knew not, for he seemed too stunned to speak about them.

Deep down, I felt like I was standing on the edge of a cliff. It was as if I was about to witness a shocking new truth about life. And it wasn't just me. My entire world was flipping upside down. There was my dad. I could see how Ernest was starting to affect him. And then there was the Bishop. The last time I saw him, he looked unwell. He was on high alert, and his eyes showed indescribable fear. From what little I gathered, I knew that Ernest had been keeping his promise of putting him through hell. But I had no idea what kind of hell the Bishop had experienced, as he seemed too shocked to talk about it.

Once, the feeling strong upon me that my little world and all the world was turning over, I thought of Ernest as the cause of it; and also I thought, “We were so happy and peaceful before he came!” And the next moment I was aware that the thought was a treason against truth, and Ernest rose before me transfigured, the apostle of truth, with shining brows and the fearlessness of one of God’s own angels, battling for the truth and the right, and battling for the succor of the poor and lonely and oppressed. And then there arose before me another figure, the Christ! He, too, had taken the part of the lowly and oppressed, and against all the established power of priest and pharisee. And I remembered his end upon the cross, and my heart contracted with a pang as I thought of Ernest. Was he, too, destined for a cross?—he, with his clarion call and war-noted voice, and all the fine man’s vigor of him!

Once, I strongly felt that my small world and the whole world were flipping upside down. I thought of Ernest as the reason for it all; I also thought, “We were so happy and peaceful before he came!” But in the next moment, I realized that this thought was a betrayal of the truth, and Ernest appeared to me transformed, an apostle of truth, with a radiant forehead and the courage of one of God's angels, fighting for truth and justice, and advocating for the poor, lonely, and oppressed. Then another figure appeared to me, Christ! He too had stood up for the lowly and oppressed and against the established powers of priests and Pharisees. I recalled his ending on the cross, and my heart constricted with pain as I thought of Ernest. Was he, too, destined for a cross?—he, with his inspiring voice and all the strength of a fine man!

And in that moment I knew that I loved him, and that I was melting with desire to comfort him. I thought of his life. A sordid, harsh, and meagre life it must have been. And I thought of his father, who had lied and stolen for him and been worked to death. And he himself had gone into the mills when he was ten! All my heart seemed bursting with desire to fold my arms around him, and to rest his head on my breast—his head that must be weary with so many thoughts; and to give him rest—just rest—and easement and forgetfulness for a tender space.

And in that moment, I realized I loved him, and I was overwhelmed with the urge to comfort him. I considered his life. It must have been a tough, harsh, and barely surviving existence. I thought about his father, who had lied and stolen for him and had worked himself to death. And he himself had started working in the mills when he was just ten! My heart felt like it was about to burst from the longing to wrap my arms around him, to let him rest his head on my chest—his head, tired from so many worries—and to give him rest—just rest—and relief and a chance to forget, if only for a little while.

I met Colonel Ingram at a church reception. Him I knew well and had known well for many years. I trapped him behind large palms and rubber plants, though he did not know he was trapped. He met me with the conventional gayety and gallantry. He was ever a graceful man, diplomatic, tactful, and considerate. And as for appearance, he was the most distinguished-looking man in our society. Beside him even the venerable head of the university looked tawdry and small.

I ran into Colonel Ingram at a church reception. I knew him well and had for many years. I cornered him behind some large palms and rubber plants, although he didn’t realize he was cornered. He greeted me with his usual cheerful charm and politeness. He was always a graceful man—diplomatic, tactful, and thoughtful. In terms of looks, he was the most distinguished-looking man in our social circle. Next to him, even the respected head of the university looked shabby and insignificant.

And yet I found Colonel Ingram situated the same as the unlettered mechanics. He was not a free agent. He, too, was bound upon the wheel. I shall never forget the change in him when I mentioned Jackson’s case. His smiling good nature vanished like a ghost. A sudden, frightful expression distorted his well-bred face. I felt the same alarm that I had felt when James Smith broke out. But Colonel Ingram did not curse. That was the slight difference that was left between the workingman and him. He was famed as a wit, but he had no wit now. And, unconsciously, this way and that he glanced for avenues of escape. But he was trapped amid the palms and rubber trees.

And yet I found Colonel Ingram in the same position as the uneducated mechanics. He wasn’t a free man either. He, too, was caught on the wheel of fate. I’ll never forget how he changed when I mentioned Jackson’s case. His friendly smile disappeared like a ghost. A sudden, terrifying look twisted his refined face. I felt the same fear I had felt when James Smith lost it. But Colonel Ingram didn’t curse. That was the only small difference between the worker and him. He was known for his humor, but he had no humor now. And, without realizing it, he glanced around, searching for a way out. But he was trapped among the palms and rubber trees.

Oh, he was sick of the sound of Jackson’s name. Why had I brought the matter up? He did not relish my joke. It was poor taste on my part, and very inconsiderate. Did I not know that in his profession personal feelings did not count? He left his personal feelings at home when he went down to the office. At the office he had only professional feelings.

Oh, he was tired of hearing Jackson’s name. Why had I even brought it up? He didn’t appreciate my joke. It was in bad taste and really inconsiderate of me. Didn’t I realize that in his job, personal feelings didn’t matter? He left his personal feelings at home when he went to the office. At the office, he only had professional feelings.

“Should Jackson have received damages?” I asked.

“Should Jackson have been awarded damages?” I asked.

“Certainly,” he answered. “That is, personally, I have a feeling that he should. But that has nothing to do with the legal aspects of the case.”

"Of course," he replied. "I mean, I really think he should. But that doesn’t have anything to do with the legal side of things."

He was getting his scattered wits slightly in hand.

He was starting to gather his scattered thoughts a bit.

“Tell me, has right anything to do with the law?” I asked.

“Tell me, does what’s right have anything to do with the law?” I asked.

“You have used the wrong initial consonant,” he smiled in answer.

“You used the wrong first letter,” he smiled in response.

“Might?” I queried; and he nodded his head. “And yet we are supposed to get justice by means of the law?”

“Might?” I asked, and he nodded. “And we’re expected to find justice through the law?”

“That is the paradox of it,” he countered. “We do get justice.”

"That's the irony of it," he replied. "We do achieve justice."

“You are speaking professionally now, are you not?” I asked.

“You're speaking professionally now, right?” I asked.

Colonel Ingram blushed, actually blushed, and again he looked anxiously about him for a way of escape. But I blocked his path and did not offer to move.

Colonel Ingram flushed, really flushed, and once more he looked around nervously for an escape route. But I stood in his way and didn’t offer to budge.

“Tell me,” I said, “when one surrenders his personal feelings to his professional feelings, may not the action be defined as a sort of spiritual mayhem?”

“Tell me,” I said, “when someone puts their personal feelings aside for their work, can that action be seen as a kind of emotional chaos?”

I did not get an answer. Colonel Ingram had ingloriously bolted, overturning a palm in his flight.

I didn't get a response. Colonel Ingram had shamefully run off, knocking over a palm tree in his escape.

Next I tried the newspapers. I wrote a quiet, restrained, dispassionate account of Jackson’s case. I made no charges against the men with whom I had talked, nor, for that matter, did I even mention them. I gave the actual facts of the case, the long years Jackson had worked in the mills, his effort to save the machinery from damage and the consequent accident, and his own present wretched and starving condition. The three local newspapers rejected my communication, likewise did the two weeklies.

Next, I tried the newspapers. I wrote a calm, controlled, objective account of Jackson’s case. I didn’t make any accusations against the men I had spoken with, nor did I even mention them. I presented the actual facts of the case: the long years Jackson had worked in the mills, his attempts to protect the machinery from damage, the resulting accident, and his current miserable and starving condition. The three local newspapers turned down my submission, as did the two weeklies.

I got hold of Percy Layton. He was a graduate of the university, had gone in for journalism, and was then serving his apprenticeship as reporter on the most influential of the three newspapers. He smiled when I asked him the reason the newspapers suppressed all mention of Jackson or his case.

I got in touch with Percy Layton. He graduated from the university, pursued journalism, and was currently doing his apprenticeship as a reporter for the most influential of the three newspapers. He smiled when I asked him why the newspapers were ignoring Jackson and his case.

“Editorial policy,” he said. “We have nothing to do with that. It’s up to the editors.”

“Editorial policy,” he said. “That's not our concern. It's up to the editors.”

“But why is it policy?” I asked.

“But why is that the policy?” I asked.

“We’re all solid with the corporations,” he answered. “If you paid advertising rates, you couldn’t get any such matter into the papers. A man who tried to smuggle it in would lose his job. You couldn’t get it in if you paid ten times the regular advertising rates.”

“We're all good with the corporations,” he replied. “If you paid advertising rates, you wouldn't be able to get that kind of stuff into the papers. Anyone who tried to sneak it in would get fired. You couldn't get it in even if you paid ten times the normal advertising rates.”

“How about your own policy?” I questioned. “It would seem your function is to twist truth at the command of your employers, who, in turn, obey the behests of the corporations.”

“How about your own policy?” I asked. “It seems like your job is to manipulate the truth at the command of your bosses, who, in turn, follow the orders of the corporations.”

“I haven’t anything to do with that.” He looked uncomfortable for the moment, then brightened as he saw his way out. “I, myself, do not write untruthful things. I keep square all right with my own conscience. Of course, there’s lots that’s repugnant in the course of the day’s work. But then, you see, that’s all part of the day’s work,” he wound up boyishly.

“I don’t have anything to do with that.” He looked a bit uneasy for a moment, then perked up when he found a way out. “I don’t write anything dishonest. I stay clear with my own conscience. Sure, there’s a lot that’s unpleasant in the work I do. But, you see, that’s just part of the job,” he finished with a youthful enthusiasm.

“Yet you expect to sit at an editor’s desk some day and conduct a policy.”

“Yet you expect to sit at an editor's desk someday and manage a policy.”

“I’ll be case-hardened by that time,” was his reply.

“I’ll be toughened up by that time,” was his reply.

“Since you are not yet case-hardened, tell me what you think right now about the general editorial policy.”

“Since you’re not experienced yet, tell me what you currently think about the overall editorial policy.”

“I don’t think,” he answered quickly. “One can’t kick over the ropes if he’s going to succeed in journalism. I’ve learned that much, at any rate.”

“I don’t think so,” he replied quickly. “You can’t burn bridges if you want to succeed in journalism. I’ve learned that much, at least.”

And he nodded his young head sagely.

And he nodded his young head wisely.

“But the right?” I persisted.

“But the right?” I pressed.

“You don’t understand the game. Of course it’s all right, because it comes out all right, don’t you see?”

“You don’t get the game. But that’s fine because it all works out in the end, don’t you see?”

“Delightfully vague,” I murmured; but my heart was aching for the youth of him, and I felt that I must either scream or burst into tears.

“Delightfully vague,” I murmured; but my heart was aching for his youth, and I felt like I had to either scream or break down in tears.

I was beginning to see through the appearances of the society in which I had always lived, and to find the frightful realities that were beneath. There seemed a tacit conspiracy against Jackson, and I was aware of a thrill of sympathy for the whining lawyer who had ingloriously fought his case. But this tacit conspiracy grew large. Not alone was it aimed against Jackson. It was aimed against every workingman who was maimed in the mills. And if against every man in the mills, why not against every man in all the other mills and factories? In fact, was it not true of all the industries?

I was starting to see beyond the surface of the society I had always known, uncovering the harsh realities lying underneath. There seemed to be an unspoken agreement against Jackson, and I felt a wave of sympathy for the pathetic lawyer who had poorly represented him. But this unspoken agreement expanded. It wasn’t just directed at Jackson; it targeted every worker who was injured in the mills. And if it was aimed at every man in the mills, why not at every worker in all the other mills and factories? In fact, wasn’t it true for all industries?

And if this was so, then society was a lie. I shrank back from my own conclusions. It was too terrible and awful to be true. But there was Jackson, and Jackson’s arm, and the blood that stained my gown and dripped from my own roof-beams. And there were many Jacksons—hundreds of them in the mills alone, as Jackson himself had said. Jackson I could not escape.

And if this was the case, then society was a lie. I recoiled from my own conclusions. It was too horrifying to accept as true. But there was Jackson, and his arm, and the blood that stained my dress and dripped from my own ceiling beams. And there were many Jacksons—hundreds of them in the mills alone, as Jackson himself had mentioned. I couldn’t escape Jackson.

I saw Mr. Wickson and Mr. Pertonwaithe, the two men who held most of the stock in the Sierra Mills. But I could not shake them as I had shaken the mechanics in their employ. I discovered that they had an ethic superior to that of the rest of society. It was what I may call the aristocratic ethic or the master ethic.[1] They talked in large ways of policy, and they identified policy and right. And to me they talked in fatherly ways, patronizing my youth and inexperience. They were the most hopeless of all I had encountered in my quest. They believed absolutely that their conduct was right. There was no question about it, no discussion. They were convinced that they were the saviours of society, and that it was they who made happiness for the many. And they drew pathetic pictures of what would be the sufferings of the working class were it not for the employment that they, and they alone, by their wisdom, provided for it.

I saw Mr. Wickson and Mr. Pertonwaithe, the two men who owned most of the stock in the Sierra Mills. But I couldn't shake them off like I had with the mechanics they employed. I realized they had a code of ethics that was better than the rest of society's. It was what I would call the aristocratic ethic or the master ethic. They spoke grandly about policy, equating policy with what’s right. To me, their tone felt fatherly, as if they were looking down on my youth and inexperience. They were the most disappointing people I had met in my search. They were completely sure that their actions were justified. There was no doubt about it, no room for discussion. They truly believed they were the saviors of society and that they were the ones creating happiness for the masses. They painted a sad picture of what the working class would suffer without the jobs they, and only they, provided through their supposed wisdom.

[1] Before Avis Everhard was born, John Stuart Mill, in his essay, On Liberty, wrote: “Wherever there is an ascendant class, a large portion of the morality emanates from its class interests and its class feelings of superiority.”

[1] Before Avis Everhard was born, John Stuart Mill, in his essay, On Liberty, wrote: “Whenever a dominant class exists, much of the moral framework comes from its class interests and its feelings of superiority.”

Fresh from these two masters, I met Ernest and related my experience. He looked at me with a pleased expression, and said:

Fresh from these two masters, I met Ernest and shared my experience with him. He looked at me with a pleased expression and said:

“Really, this is fine. You are beginning to dig truth for yourself. It is your own empirical generalization, and it is correct. No man in the industrial machine is a free-will agent, except the large capitalist, and he isn’t, if you’ll pardon the Irishism.[2] You see, the masters are quite sure that they are right in what they are doing. That is the crowning absurdity of the whole situation. They are so tied by their human nature that they can’t do a thing unless they think it is right. They must have a sanction for their acts.

“Honestly, this is good. You’re starting to uncover the truth for yourself. It’s your own empirical conclusion, and it’s accurate. No one working in the industrial system is really a free agent, except for the big capitalists, and even they aren’t, if you’ll forgive the expression. You see, the powerful are completely convinced that they’re justified in what they’re doing. That’s the most ridiculous part of the whole situation. They are so constrained by their human nature that they can’t take any action unless they believe it’s the right thing to do. They need to have a justification for their actions.”

[2] Verbal contradictions, called bulls, were long an amiable weakness of the ancient Irish.

[2] Verbal contradictions, known as bulls, were long considered a charming flaw of the ancient Irish.

“When they want to do a thing, in business of course, they must wait till there arises in their brains, somehow, a religious, or ethical, or scientific, or philosophic, concept that the thing is right. And then they go ahead and do it, unwitting that one of the weaknesses of the human mind is that the wish is parent to the thought. No matter what they want to do, the sanction always comes. They are superficial casuists. They are Jesuitical. They even see their way to doing wrong that right may come of it. One of the pleasant and axiomatic fictions they have created is that they are superior to the rest of mankind in wisdom and efficiency. Therefrom comes their sanction to manage the bread and butter of the rest of mankind. They have even resurrected the theory of the divine right of kings—commercial kings in their case.[3]

“When they want to do something in business, they have to wait until a religious, ethical, scientific, or philosophical idea convinces them that it’s the right thing to do. Then they proceed, unaware that one of the flaws of human thinking is that desire is the parent of thought. No matter what they want to achieve, they always find justification. They are superficial moral reasoners. They are cunning. They even manage to justify doing something wrong if it leads to a good outcome. One of the convenient myths they've created is that they are wiser and more efficient than the rest of humanity. This belief gives them the justification to control the livelihoods of others. They've even revived the idea of the divine right of kings—commercial kings, in their case.[3]

[3] The newspapers, in 1902 of that era, credited the president of the Anthracite Coal Trust, George F. Baer, with the enunciation of the following principle: “The rights and interests of the laboring man will be protected by the Christian men to whom God in His infinite wisdom has given the property interests of the country.

[3] In 1902, newspapers credited the president of the Anthracite Coal Trust, George F. Baer, with stating the following principle: “The rights and interests of workers will be protected by the Christian men whom God, in His infinite wisdom, has entrusted with the property interests of the country.

“The weakness in their position lies in that they are merely business men. They are not philosophers. They are not biologists nor sociologists. If they were, of course all would be well. A business man who was also a biologist and a sociologist would know, approximately, the right thing to do for humanity. But, outside the realm of business, these men are stupid. They know only business. They do not know mankind nor society, and yet they set themselves up as arbiters of the fates of the hungry millions and all the other millions thrown in. History, some day, will have an excruciating laugh at their expense.”

“Their weakness comes from the fact that they are just businesspeople. They aren’t philosophers. They aren’t biologists or sociologists. If they were, everything would be fine. A businessperson who was also a biologist and a sociologist would understand, more or less, what needs to be done for humanity. But outside of business, these people are clueless. They only know business. They don’t understand humanity or society, yet they position themselves as judges of the destinies of the starving millions and everyone else affected. One day, history will have a painful laugh at their expense.”

I was not surprised when I had my talk out with Mrs. Wickson and Mrs. Pertonwaithe. They were society women.[4] Their homes were palaces. They had many homes scattered over the country, in the mountains, on lakes, and by the sea. They were tended by armies of servants, and their social activities were bewildering. They patronized the university and the churches, and the pastors especially bowed at their knees in meek subservience.[5] They were powers, these two women, what of the money that was theirs. The power of subsidization of thought was theirs to a remarkable degree, as I was soon to learn under Ernest’s tuition.

I wasn't surprised when I had my conversation with Mrs. Wickson and Mrs. Pertonwaithe. They were prominent socialites. Their homes were like palaces. They owned many properties across the country, in the mountains, by lakes, and by the ocean. They were looked after by a large staff of servants, and their social lives were overwhelming. They supported the university and the churches, and the pastors particularly showed them great respect. These two women were influential because of their wealth. They had significant control over financial support for ideas, as I would soon discover while learning from Ernest.

[4] Society is here used in a restricted sense, a common usage of the times to denote the gilded drones that did no labor, but only glutted themselves at the honey-vats of the workers. Neither the business men nor the laborers had time or opportunity for society. Society was the creation of the idle rich who toiled not and who in this way played.

[4] Society is used here in a limited way, reflecting a common understanding of the time to describe the wealthy elites who did no work, but simply indulged themselves at the expense of the laborers. Neither businesspeople nor laborers had the time or chance for society. Society was something created by the idle wealthy who contributed nothing and engaged in leisure.

[5] “Bring on your tainted money,” was the expressed sentiment of the Church during this period.

[5] “Bring on your dirty money,” was what the Church was saying during this time.

They aped their husbands, and talked in the same large ways about policy, and the duties and responsibilities of the rich. They were swayed by the same ethic that dominated their husbands—the ethic of their class; and they uttered glib phrases that their own ears did not understand.

They mimicked their husbands and discussed policy and the duties and responsibilities of the wealthy in the same grand manner. They were influenced by the same values that guided their husbands—the values of their social class; and they repeated slick phrases that they didn’t truly grasp.

Also, they grew irritated when I told them of the deplorable condition of Jackson’s family, and when I wondered that they had made no voluntary provision for the man. I was told that they thanked no one for instructing them in their social duties. When I asked them flatly to assist Jackson, they as flatly refused. The astounding thing about it was that they refused in almost identically the same language, and this in face of the fact that I interviewed them separately and that one did not know that I had seen or was going to see the other. Their common reply was that they were glad of the opportunity to make it perfectly plain that no premium would ever be put on carelessness by them; nor would they, by paying for accident, tempt the poor to hurt themselves in the machinery.[6]

Also, they became annoyed when I told them about the terrible situation of Jackson’s family, and when I questioned why they hadn’t made any effort to help the man. I was told that they didn’t appreciate being instructed about their social responsibilities. When I directly asked them to help Jackson, they directly refused. The surprising thing was that they responded almost in the exact same words, even though I spoke to them separately and they had no idea I had seen or was going to see the other. Their common response was that they were pleased to clarify that they would never reward carelessness; nor would they, by paying for accidents, encourage the poor to harm themselves in the machinery.[6]

[6] In the files of the Outlook, a critical weekly of the period, in the number dated August 18, 1906, is related the circumstance of a workingman losing his arm, the details of which are quite similar to those of Jackson’s case as related by Avis Everhard.

[6] In the files of the Outlook, a key weekly publication from that time, in the issue dated August 18, 1906, there's a story about a worker who lost his arm, and the details are quite similar to those of Jackson’s case as described by Avis Everhard.

And they were sincere, these two women. They were drunk with conviction of the superiority of their class and of themselves. They had a sanction, in their own class-ethic, for every act they performed. As I drove away from Mrs. Pertonwaithe’s great house, I looked back at it, and I remembered Ernest’s expression that they were bound to the machine, but that they were so bound that they sat on top of it.

And these two women were genuine. They were intoxicated with the belief in the superiority of their class and themselves. They had a justification, rooted in their own class values, for every action they took. As I drove away from Mrs. Pertonwaithe’s grand house, I looked back at it and remembered Ernest's words that they were tied to the system, but they were so tied that they were sitting on top of it.

CHAPTER V.
THE PHILOMATHS

Ernest was often at the house. Nor was it my father, merely, nor the controversial dinners, that drew him there. Even at that time I flattered myself that I played some part in causing his visits, and it was not long before I learned the correctness of my surmise. For never was there such a lover as Ernest Everhard. His gaze and his hand-clasp grew firmer and steadier, if that were possible; and the question that had grown from the first in his eyes, grew only the more imperative.

Ernest was often at the house. It wasn’t just my dad or the heated dinners that brought him there. Even back then, I was convinced that I had a role in why he visited, and it didn’t take long for me to realize I was right. There had never been a lover like Ernest Everhard. His gaze and hand-hold became firmer and steadier, if that was even possible; and the question that had begun to form in his eyes from the very start only became more urgent.

My impression of him, the first time I saw him, had been unfavorable. Then I had found myself attracted toward him. Next came my repulsion, when he so savagely attacked my class and me. After that, as I saw that he had not maligned my class, and that the harsh and bitter things he said about it were justified, I had drawn closer to him again. He became my oracle. For me he tore the sham from the face of society and gave me glimpses of reality that were as unpleasant as they were undeniably true.

My first impression of him was negative. Then, I found myself drawn to him. Next came my disgust when he harshly criticized my class and me. After that, as I realized he hadn’t misrepresented my class and that his harsh criticisms were justified, I started to feel closer to him again. He became my guiding voice. To me, he stripped away the facade of society and showed me harsh truths that were as unsettling as they were undeniably real.

As I have said, there was never such a lover as he. No girl could live in a university town till she was twenty-four and not have love experiences. I had been made love to by beardless sophomores and gray professors, and by the athletes and the football giants. But not one of them made love to me as Ernest did. His arms were around me before I knew. His lips were on mine before I could protest or resist. Before his earnestness conventional maiden dignity was ridiculous. He swept me off my feet by the splendid invincible rush of him. He did not propose. He put his arms around me and kissed me and took it for granted that we should be married. There was no discussion about it. The only discussion—and that arose afterward—was when we should be married.

As I said, there was never a lover like him. No girl could live in a college town until she was twenty-four and not have some love experiences. I had been pursued by beardless freshmen and older professors, as well as athletes and football stars. But none of them loved me the way Ernest did. His arms were around me before I even realized it. His lips were on mine before I could protest or resist. In his presence, conventional modesty felt silly. He swept me off my feet with his incredible intensity. He didn’t propose; he just hugged me and kissed me, assuming we would get married. There was no conversation about it. The only discussion— which came later—was when we would get married.

It was unprecedented. It was unreal. Yet, in accordance with Ernest’s test of truth, it worked. I trusted my life to it. And fortunate was the trust. Yet during those first days of our love, fear of the future came often to me when I thought of the violence and impetuosity of his love-making. Yet such fears were groundless. No woman was ever blessed with a gentler, tenderer husband. This gentleness and violence on his part was a curious blend similar to the one in his carriage of awkwardness and ease. That slight awkwardness! He never got over it, and it was delicious. His behavior in our drawing-room reminded me of a careful bull in a china shop.[1]

It was unprecedented. It was unreal. Yet, according to Ernest’s test of truth, it worked. I trusted my life to it. And I was lucky for that trust. But during those first days of our love, I often felt afraid of the future when I thought about the intensity and unpredictability of his love-making. Still, those fears were unfounded. No woman was ever blessed with a kinder, gentler husband. This blend of gentleness and intensity in him was a strange mix, much like his combination of awkwardness and ease. That slight awkwardness! He never got past it, and it was charming. His behavior in our living room reminded me of a careful bull in a china shop.[1]

[1] In those days it was still the custom to fill the living rooms with bric-a-brac. They had not discovered simplicity of living. Such rooms were museums, entailing endless labor to keep clean. The dust-demon was the lord of the household. There were a myriad devices for catching dust, and only a few devices for getting rid of it.

[1] Back then, it was still common to clutter living rooms with knick-knacks. People hadn’t figured out the concept of simple living. These rooms resembled museums and required constant upkeep to keep clean. The dust was the ruler of the house. There were countless tools for collecting dust, but only a handful for actually removing it.

It was at this time that vanished my last doubt of the completeness of my love for him (a subconscious doubt, at most). It was at the Philomath Club—a wonderful night of battle, wherein Ernest bearded the masters in their lair. Now the Philomath Club was the most select on the Pacific Coast. It was the creation of Miss Brentwood, an enormously wealthy old maid; and it was her husband, and family, and toy. Its members were the wealthiest in the community, and the strongest-minded of the wealthy, with, of course, a sprinkling of scholars to give it intellectual tone.

It was during this time that my last doubt about my love for him disappeared (it was mainly just a subconscious doubt). It was at the Philomath Club—a spectacular night of debate, where Ernest challenged the experts in their own territory. The Philomath Club was the most exclusive club on the Pacific Coast. It was established by Miss Brentwood, an incredibly rich old maid; it was her pride and joy. Its members were the wealthiest in the community and had strong opinions, along with a few scholars to add some intellectual flair.

The Philomath had no club house. It was not that kind of a club. Once a month its members gathered at some one of their private houses to listen to a lecture. The lecturers were usually, though not always, hired. If a chemist in New York made a new discovery in say radium, all his expenses across the continent were paid, and as well he received a princely fee for his time. The same with a returning explorer from the polar regions, or the latest literary or artistic success. No visitors were allowed, while it was the Philomath’s policy to permit none of its discussions to get into the papers. Thus great statesmen—and there had been such occasions—were able fully to speak their minds.

The Philomath didn't have a clubhouse. It wasn't that kind of club. Once a month, its members met at one of their homes to listen to a lecture. The speakers were usually, though not always, paid. If a chemist in New York made a new discovery, like in radium, all his expenses to travel across the country were covered, and he also received a generous fee for his time. The same went for a returning explorer from the polar regions or the latest literary or artistic sensation. No visitors were allowed, and the Philomath made sure that none of its discussions ended up in the news. This way, prominent politicians—and there were times when they attended—could speak freely.

I spread before me a wrinkled letter, written to me by Ernest twenty years ago, and from it I copy the following:

I laid out a crumpled letter in front of me, written to me by Ernest twenty years ago, and I’m copying the following from it:

“Your father is a member of the Philomath, so you are able to come. Therefore come next Tuesday night. I promise you that you will have the time of your life. In your recent encounters, you failed to shake the masters. If you come, I’ll shake them for you. I’ll make them snarl like wolves. You merely questioned their morality. When their morality is questioned, they grow only the more complacent and superior. But I shall menace their money-bags. That will shake them to the roots of their primitive natures. If you can come, you will see the cave-man, in evening dress, snarling and snapping over a bone. I promise you a great caterwauling and an illuminating insight into the nature of the beast.

“Your dad is part of the Philomath, so you can come. So, join us next Tuesday night. I promise you'll have the time of your life. In your recent encounters, you couldn’t rattle the masters. If you come, I’ll rattle them for you. I’ll make them snarl like wolves. You just questioned their morality. When you challenge their morality, they just get more complacent and arrogant. But I’ll threaten their wallets. That’ll shake them to the core of their primitive instincts. If you come, you’ll see the caveman, in formal wear, snarling and snapping over a bone. I guarantee you’ll witness a great uproar and gain some enlightening insight into the nature of the beast.”

“They’ve invited me in order to tear me to pieces. This is the idea of Miss Brentwood. She clumsily hinted as much when she invited me. She’s given them that kind of fun before. They delight in getting trustful-souled gentle reformers before them. Miss Brentwood thinks I am as mild as a kitten and as good-natured and stolid as the family cow. I’ll not deny that I helped to give her that impression. She was very tentative at first, until she divined my harmlessness. I am to receive a handsome fee—two hundred and fifty dollars—as befits the man who, though a radical, once ran for governor. Also, I am to wear evening dress. This is compulsory. I never was so apparelled in my life. I suppose I’ll have to hire one somewhere. But I’d do more than that to get a chance at the Philomaths.”

“They’ve invited me just to tear me apart. That’s what Miss Brentwood is up to. She awkwardly suggested it when she asked me to come. She’s done this kind of thing before. They love to prey on trusting, idealistic reformers. Miss Brentwood thinks I’m as gentle as a kitten and as good-natured and steady as a family cow. I won’t lie; I helped her think that. She was cautious at first until she figured out I was harmless. I’m supposed to get a nice fee—two hundred and fifty dollars—since I’m the kind of guy who, even as a radical, once ran for governor. Plus, I have to wear evening attire. That’s mandatory. I’ve never dressed like that in my life. I guess I’ll have to rent something. But I’d go even further just to get a shot at the Philomaths.”

Of all places, the Club gathered that night at the Pertonwaithe house. Extra chairs had been brought into the great drawing-room, and in all there must have been two hundred Philomaths that sat down to hear Ernest. They were truly lords of society. I amused myself with running over in my mind the sum of the fortunes represented, and it ran well into the hundreds of millions. And the possessors were not of the idle rich. They were men of affairs who took most active parts in industrial and political life.

Of all places, the Club met that night at the Pertonwaithe house. Extra chairs had been added to the large drawing-room, and there must have been around two hundred Philomaths sitting down to listen to Ernest. They were truly the elite of society. I found myself mentally adding up the wealth represented there, and it easily totaled in the hundreds of millions. And these were not just wealthy individuals lounging around; they were active businessmen who played significant roles in both industry and politics.

We were all seated when Miss Brentwood brought Ernest in. They moved at once to the head of the room, from where he was to speak. He was in evening dress, and, what of his broad shoulders and kingly head, he looked magnificent. And then there was that faint and unmistakable touch of awkwardness in his movements. I almost think I could have loved him for that alone. And as I looked at him I was aware of a great joy. I felt again the pulse of his palm on mine, the touch of his lips; and such pride was mine that I felt I must rise up and cry out to the assembled company: “He is mine! He has held me in his arms, and I, mere I, have filled that mind of his to the exclusion of all his multitudinous and kingly thoughts!”

We were all seated when Miss Brentwood brought Ernest in. They went straight to the front of the room, where he was going to speak. He was in formal wear, and with his broad shoulders and regal presence, he looked amazing. Yet there was that slight, unmistakable awkwardness in his movements. I almost think I could have loved him just for that. As I watched him, I felt a tremendous joy. I remembered the pulse of his palm against mine, the feel of his lips; and I was so proud that I felt the urge to stand up and shout to everyone present: “He is mine! He has held me in his arms, and I, just me, have filled his mind completely, pushing aside all his many grand thoughts!”

At the head of the room, Miss Brentwood introduced him to Colonel Van Gilbert, and I knew that the latter was to preside. Colonel Van Gilbert was a great corporation lawyer. In addition, he was immensely wealthy. The smallest fee he would deign to notice was a hundred thousand dollars. He was a master of law. The law was a puppet with which he played. He moulded it like clay, twisted and distorted it like a Chinese puzzle into any design he chose. In appearance and rhetoric he was old-fashioned, but in imagination and knowledge and resource he was as young as the latest statute. His first prominence had come when he broke the Shardwell will.[2] His fee for this one act was five hundred thousand dollars. From then on he had risen like a rocket. He was often called the greatest lawyer in the country—corporation lawyer, of course; and no classification of the three greatest lawyers in the United States could have excluded him.

At the front of the room, Miss Brentwood introduced him to Colonel Van Gilbert, and I realized that the latter would be in charge. Colonel Van Gilbert was a top corporate lawyer. He was also incredibly wealthy. The smallest fee he would even consider was a hundred thousand dollars. He was a legal expert. The law was like a puppet he controlled. He shaped it like clay, twisted and turned it like a Chinese puzzle into whatever form he wanted. In terms of appearance and speaking style, he seemed old-fashioned, but in imagination, knowledge, and creativity, he was as fresh as the newest law. He first gained recognition when he contested the Shardwell will. His fee for this one case was five hundred thousand dollars. After that, he shot to fame. He was often regarded as the best lawyer in the country—corporate lawyer, of course; and no list of the top three lawyers in the United States could leave him out.

[2] This breaking of wills was a peculiar feature of the period. With the accumulation of vast fortunes, the problem of disposing of these fortunes after death was a vexing one to the accumulators. Will-making and will-breaking became complementary trades, like armor-making and gun-making. The shrewdest will-making lawyers were called in to make wills that could not be broken. But these wills were always broken, and very often by the very lawyers that had drawn them up. Nevertheless the delusion persisted in the wealthy class that an absolutely unbreakable will could be cast; and so, through the generations, clients and lawyers pursued the illusion. It was a pursuit like unto that of the Universal Solvent of the mediæval alchemists.

[2] The clash of wills was a strange aspect of that time. As massive wealth piled up, the challenge of figuring out what to do with that wealth after death became a real headache for the wealthy. Making and contesting wills turned into complementary professions, much like making armor and weapons. The smartest lawyers were brought in to draft wills that couldn’t be challenged. Yet, these wills were consistently contested, often by the very lawyers who created them. Despite this, the wealthy continued to cling to the belief that it was possible to create an unbreakable will; thus, over the years, clients and lawyers chased this illusion. It was a pursuit reminiscent of the search for the Universal Solvent by medieval alchemists.

He arose and began, in a few well-chosen phrases that carried an undertone of faint irony, to introduce Ernest. Colonel Van Gilbert was subtly facetious in his introduction of the social reformer and member of the working class, and the audience smiled. It made me angry, and I glanced at Ernest. The sight of him made me doubly angry. He did not seem to resent the delicate slurs. Worse than that, he did not seem to be aware of them. There he sat, gentle, and stolid, and somnolent. He really looked stupid. And for a moment the thought rose in my mind, What if he were overawed by this imposing array of power and brains? Then I smiled. He couldn’t fool me. But he fooled the others, just as he had fooled Miss Brentwood. She occupied a chair right up to the front, and several times she turned her head toward one or another of her confrères and smiled her appreciation of the remarks.

He got up and started, using a few carefully chosen phrases that had a hint of irony, to introduce Ernest. Colonel Van Gilbert was subtly joking in his introduction of the social reformer and working-class member, and the audience smiled. It made me angry, and I glanced at Ernest. Just seeing him made me even angrier. He didn’t seem bothered by the subtle digs. Even worse, he didn’t seem to notice them at all. There he sat, gentle, dull, and half-asleep. He really looked silly. For a moment, I thought, What if he was intimidated by this impressive display of power and intellect? Then I smiled. He couldn’t trick me. But he fooled the others, just like he had fooled Miss Brentwood. She sat right up front, and several times she turned her head to one or another of her confrères and smiled in appreciation of the comments.

Colonel Van Gilbert done, Ernest arose and began to speak. He began in a low voice, haltingly and modestly, and with an air of evident embarrassment. He spoke of his birth in the working class, and of the sordidness and wretchedness of his environment, where flesh and spirit were alike starved and tormented. He described his ambitions and ideals, and his conception of the paradise wherein lived the people of the upper classes. As he said:

Colonel Van Gilbert finished, and Ernest stood up to speak. He started with a quiet voice, hesitantly and modestly, clearly feeling embarrassed. He talked about growing up in the working class and the harsh, miserable conditions of his surroundings, where both body and soul were equally deprived and tortured. He shared his dreams and ideals, along with his vision of the paradise that the upper-class people inhabited. As he said:

“Up above me, I knew, were unselfishnesses of the spirit, clean and noble thinking, keen intellectual living. I knew all this because I read ‘Seaside Library’[3] novels, in which, with the exception of the villains and adventuresses, all men and women thought beautiful thoughts, spoke a beautiful tongue, and performed glorious deeds. In short, as I accepted the rising of the sun, I accepted that up above me was all that was fine and noble and gracious, all that gave decency and dignity to life, all that made life worth living and that remunerated one for his travail and misery.”

“Above me, I knew, were acts of selflessness, pure and noble thoughts, and vibrant intellectual living. I understood all this because I read 'Seaside Library'[3] novels, where, except for the villains and adventurers, everyone thought beautiful thoughts, spoke elegantly, and did remarkable things. In short, just as I accepted the rising of the sun, I accepted that above me was everything that was fine, noble, and gracious; all that gave decency and dignity to life, everything that made life worth living and compensated one for their struggles and suffering.”

[3] A curious and amazing literature that served to make the working class utterly misapprehend the nature of the leisure class.

[3] An intriguing and remarkable body of literature that led the working class to completely misunderstand the true nature of the leisure class.

He went on and traced his life in the mills, the learning of the horseshoeing trade, and his meeting with the socialists. Among them, he said, he had found keen intellects and brilliant wits, ministers of the Gospel who had been broken because their Christianity was too wide for any congregation of mammon-worshippers, and professors who had been broken on the wheel of university subservience to the ruling class. The socialists were revolutionists, he said, struggling to overthrow the irrational society of the present and out of the material to build the rational society of the future. Much more he said that would take too long to write, but I shall never forget how he described the life among the revolutionists. All halting utterance vanished. His voice grew strong and confident, and it glowed as he glowed, and as the thoughts glowed that poured out from him. He said:

He went on and talked about his life in the mills, learning the horseshoeing trade, and meeting socialists. Among them, he said he found sharp minds and brilliant personalities, ministers of the Gospel who had been crushed because their Christianity was too expansive for any congregation that worshiped wealth, and professors who had been broken by the university's loyalty to the ruling class. The socialists were revolutionaries, he said, fighting to overthrow the irrational society of today and to create a rational society of the future out of material resources. He said much more that would take too long to write down, but I'll never forget how he described life among the revolutionaries. All hesitation disappeared. His voice became strong and confident, and it seemed to shine just as he did, bursting with thoughts that poured out from him. He said:

“Amongst the revolutionists I found, also, warm faith in the human, ardent idealism, sweetnesses of unselfishness, renunciation, and martyrdom—all the splendid, stinging things of the spirit. Here life was clean, noble, and alive. I was in touch with great souls who exalted flesh and spirit over dollars and cents, and to whom the thin wail of the starved slum child meant more than all the pomp and circumstance of commercial expansion and world empire. All about me were nobleness of purpose and heroism of effort, and my days and nights were sunshine and starshine, all fire and dew, with before my eyes, ever burning and blazing, the Holy Grail, Christ’s own Grail, the warm human, long-suffering and maltreated but to be rescued and saved at the last.”

“Among the revolutionaries I found a strong belief in humanity, passionate idealism, acts of selflessness, sacrifice, and martyrdom—all the amazing, intense aspects of the spirit. Here, life felt pure, dignified, and vibrant. I connected with great souls who valued flesh and spirit over money, and to them, the faint cries of starving children in the slums mattered more than all the glory and hype of economic growth and global dominance. Surrounding me were noble intentions and courageous efforts, and my days and nights were filled with sunlight and starlight, all energy and freshness, always before me, burning brightly, the Holy Grail, Christ’s own Grail, the warm humanity, enduring and oppressed but destined to be saved in the end.”

As before I had seen him transfigured, so now he stood transfigured before me. His brows were bright with the divine that was in him, and brighter yet shone his eyes from the midst of the radiance that seemed to envelop him as a mantle. But the others did not see this radiance, and I assumed that it was due to the tears of joy and love that dimmed my vision. At any rate, Mr. Wickson, who sat behind me, was unaffected, for I heard him sneer aloud, “Utopian.”[4]

As I had seen him transformed before, now he stood before me changed. His brow was glowing with the divine within him, and his eyes shone even brighter from the light that seemed to wrap around him like a cloak. But the others didn’t notice this light, and I figured it was because the tears of joy and love were blurring my vision. Anyway, Mr. Wickson, who was sitting behind me, was unimpressed, as I heard him mockingly say, “Utopian.”[4]

[4] The people of that age were phrase slaves. The abjectness of their servitude is incomprehensible to us. There was a magic in words greater than the conjurer’s art. So befuddled and chaotic were their minds that the utterance of a single word could negative the generalizations of a lifetime of serious research and thought. Such a word was the adjective Utopian. The mere utterance of it could damn any scheme, no matter how sanely conceived, of economic amelioration or regeneration. Vast populations grew frenzied over such phrases as “an honest dollar” and “a full dinner pail.” The coinage of such phrases was considered strokes of genius.

[4] The people of that time were slaves to language. Their level of servitude is hard for us to understand. Words held a power that surpassed mere magic. Their minds were so confused and disordered that saying just one word could undo years of serious research and deep thought. One such word was the adjective Utopian. Simply saying it could ruin any plan, no matter how well thought out, for economic improvement or renewal. Large groups of people would become frenzied over phrases like “an honest dollar” and “a full dinner pail.” Coming up with such phrases was seen as a stroke of genius.

Ernest went on to his rise in society, till at last he came in touch with members of the upper classes, and rubbed shoulders with the men who sat in the high places. Then came his disillusionment, and this disillusionment he described in terms that did not flatter his audience. He was surprised at the commonness of the clay. Life proved not to be fine and gracious. He was appalled by the selfishness he encountered, and what had surprised him even more than that was the absence of intellectual life. Fresh from his revolutionists, he was shocked by the intellectual stupidity of the master class. And then, in spite of their magnificent churches and well-paid preachers, he had found the masters, men and women, grossly material. It was true that they prattled sweet little ideals and dear little moralities, but in spite of their prattle the dominant key of the life they lived was materialistic. And they were without real morality—for instance, that which Christ had preached but which was no longer preached.

Ernest climbed the social ladder until he finally interacted with members of the upper class and mingled with influential people. Then came his disillusionment, which he expressed in a way that didn’t flatter his audience. He was taken aback by how ordinary they were. Life turned out to be neither elegant nor gracious. He was shocked by the selfishness he encountered, but what surprised him even more was the lack of intellectual engagement. Fresh from his experiences with revolutionaries, he was disheartened by the ignorance of the elite. Despite their beautiful churches and well-compensated preachers, he found that the upper class—both men and women—were incredibly materialistic. They talked about lovely ideals and cute morals, but despite their chatter, the main tone of their lives was centered on materialism. They lacked true morality—for example, the kind Christ preached, which was no longer emphasized.

“I met men,” he said, “who invoked the name of the Prince of Peace in their diatribes against war, and who put rifles in the hands of Pinkertons[5] with which to shoot down strikers in their own factories. I met men incoherent with indignation at the brutality of prize-fighting, and who, at the same time, were parties to the adulteration of food that killed each year more babes than even red-handed Herod had killed.

“I met men,” he said, “who called on the name of the Prince of Peace in their rants against war, yet handed rifles to Pinkertons[5] to shoot down strikers in their own factories. I met men filled with outrage at the brutality of prize-fighting, who were simultaneously involved in the contamination of food that kills more babies each year than even the ruthless Herod ever did.

[5] Originally, they were private detectives; but they quickly became hired fighting men of the capitalists, and ultimately developed into the Mercenaries of the Oligarchy.

[5] At first, they were private investigators; but they soon turned into hired fighters for the capitalists, and eventually evolved into the Mercenaries of the Oligarchy.

“This delicate, aristocratic-featured gentleman was a dummy director and a tool of corporations that secretly robbed widows and orphans. This gentleman, who collected fine editions and was a patron of literature, paid blackmail to a heavy-jowled, black-browed boss of a municipal machine. This editor, who published patent medicine advertisements, called me a scoundrelly demagogue because I dared him to print in his paper the truth about patent medicines.[6] This man, talking soberly and earnestly about the beauties of idealism and the goodness of God, had just betrayed his comrades in a business deal. This man, a pillar of the church and heavy contributor to foreign missions, worked his shop girls ten hours a day on a starvation wage and thereby directly encouraged prostitution. This man, who endowed chairs in universities and erected magnificent chapels, perjured himself in courts of law over dollars and cents. This railroad magnate broke his word as a citizen, as a gentleman, and as a Christian, when he granted a secret rebate, and he granted many secret rebates. This senator was the tool and the slave, the little puppet, of a brutal uneducated machine boss;[7] so was this governor and this supreme court judge; and all three rode on railroad passes; and, also, this sleek capitalist owned the machine, the machine boss, and the railroads that issued the passes.

“This delicate, aristocratic-looking gentleman was just a figurehead and a pawn for corporations that secretly exploited widows and orphans. This gentleman, who amassed fine editions and supported literature, paid off a heavy-jowled, dark-browed boss of a municipal machine. This editor, who ran ads for patent medicine, called me a sneaky demagogue because I challenged him to print the truth about patent medicines.[6] This man, speaking seriously and passionately about the beauty of idealism and the goodness of God, had just betrayed his colleagues in a business deal. This man, a pillar of the church and a significant donor to foreign missions, worked his shop girls ten hours a day for a starvation wage, directly promoting prostitution. This man, who funded university chairs and built magnificent chapels, lied under oath in court for the sake of dollars and cents. This railroad tycoon broke his word as a citizen, as a gentleman, and as a Christian when he granted secret kickbacks, and he granted many secret kickbacks. This senator was the pawn and the slave, the little puppet, of a ruthless uneducated machine boss;[7] so was this governor and this supreme court judge; and all three traveled on railroad passes; and also, this sleek capitalist owned the machine, the machine boss, and the railroads that issued the passes."

[6] Patent medicines were patent lies, but, like the charms and indulgences of the Middle Ages, they deceived the people. The only difference lay in that the patent medicines were more harmful and more costly.

[6] Patent medicines were just a scam, but, much like the charms and indulgences of the Middle Ages, they tricked people. The only difference was that patent medicines were more dangerous and more expensive.

[7] Even as late as 1912, A.D., the great mass of the people still persisted in the belief that they ruled the country by virtue of their ballots. In reality, the country was ruled by what were called political machines. At first the machine bosses charged the master capitalists extortionate tolls for legislation; but in a short time the master capitalists found it cheaper to own the political machines themselves and to hire the machine bosses.

[7] Even as late as 1912, the majority of people still believed they controlled the country through their votes. In reality, the country was controlled by what were known as political machines. Initially, the machine bosses demanded high fees from the wealthy capitalists for legislation; however, it didn't take long for the capitalists to realize it was more cost-effective to own the political machines directly and employ the machine bosses themselves.

“And so it was, instead of in paradise, that I found myself in the arid desert of commercialism. I found nothing but stupidity, except for business. I found none clean, noble, and alive, though I found many who were alive—with rottenness. What I did find was monstrous selfishness and heartlessness, and a gross, gluttonous, practised, and practical materialism.”

“And so it was, instead of in paradise, that I found myself in the dry wasteland of commercialism. I found nothing but foolishness, except for business. I didn’t find anything clean, noble, and vibrant, although there were many who were alive—with decay. What I did find was monstrous selfishness and coldness, along with a gross, greedy, skilled, and pragmatic materialism.”

Much more Ernest told them of themselves and of his disillusionment. Intellectually they had bored him; morally and spiritually they had sickened him; so that he was glad to go back to his revolutionists, who were clean, noble, and alive, and all that the capitalists were not.

Much more Ernest shared with them about themselves and his disillusionment. Intellectually, they had bored him; morally and spiritually, they had disgusted him; so he was relieved to return to his revolutionaries, who were pure, honorable, and vibrant—everything the capitalists were not.

“And now,” he said, “let me tell you about that revolution.”

“And now,” he said, “let me tell you about that revolution.”

But first I must say that his terrible diatribe had not touched them. I looked about me at their faces and saw that they remained complacently superior to what he had charged. And I remembered what he had told me: that no indictment of their morality could shake them. However, I could see that the boldness of his language had affected Miss Brentwood. She was looking worried and apprehensive.

But first, I have to say that his harsh criticism didn’t affect them at all. I glanced around at their faces and noticed they stayed confidently above his accusations. And I recalled what he had told me: that no attack on their morals could rattle them. However, I could tell that the intensity of his words had impacted Miss Brentwood. She looked anxious and concerned.

Ernest began by describing the army of revolution, and as he gave the figures of its strength (the votes cast in the various countries), the assemblage began to grow restless. Concern showed in their faces, and I noticed a tightening of lips. At last the gage of battle had been thrown down. He described the international organization of the socialists that united the million and a half in the United States with the twenty-three millions and a half in the rest of the world.

Ernest started by talking about the revolutionary army, and as he cited the numbers of its strength (the votes cast in different countries), the crowd began to get restless. Concern was evident on their faces, and I noticed people tightening their lips. Finally, the challenge had been issued. He detailed the international socialist organization that connected the one and a half million in the United States with the twenty-three and a half million around the world.

“Such an army of revolution,” he said, “twenty-five millions strong, is a thing to make rulers and ruling classes pause and consider. The cry of this army is: ‘No quarter! We want all that you possess. We will be content with nothing less than all that you possess. We want in our hands the reins of power and the destiny of mankind. Here are our hands. They are strong hands. We are going to take your governments, your palaces, and all your purpled ease away from you, and in that day you shall work for your bread even as the peasant in the field or the starved and runty clerk in your metropolises. Here are our hands. They are strong hands!’”

“Such a revolutionary army,” he said, “twenty-five million strong, is definitely something that makes rulers and those in power think twice. The message of this army is: ‘No mercy! We want everything you have. We won’t settle for anything less than all you own. We want control over the government and the future of humanity. Here are our hands. They are strong hands. We are going to take your governments, your palaces, and all your lavish comforts away from you, and on that day, you will work for your bread just like the peasant in the fields or the starving, struggling clerk in your cities. Here are our hands. They are strong hands!’”

And as he spoke he extended from his splendid shoulders his two great arms, and the horseshoer’s hands were clutching the air like eagle’s talons. He was the spirit of regnant labor as he stood there, his hands outreaching to rend and crush his audience. I was aware of a faintly perceptible shrinking on the part of the listeners before this figure of revolution, concrete, potential, and menacing. That is, the women shrank, and fear was in their faces. Not so with the men. They were of the active rich, and not the idle, and they were fighters. A low, throaty rumble arose, lingered on the air a moment, and ceased. It was the forerunner of the snarl, and I was to hear it many times that night—the token of the brute in man, the earnest of his primitive passions. And they were unconscious that they had made this sound. It was the growl of the pack, mouthed by the pack, and mouthed in all unconsciousness. And in that moment, as I saw the harshness form in their faces and saw the fight-light flashing in their eyes, I realized that not easily would they let their lordship of the world be wrested from them.

As he spoke, he stretched his powerful arms out from his broad shoulders, and the horseshoer’s hands grabbed the air like an eagle’s claws. He embodied the spirit of dominant labor standing there, reaching out to tear apart his audience. I noticed a subtle shrinking among the listeners in response to this figure of revolution—strong, real, and threatening. The women seemed to withdraw, fear evident on their faces. The men, however, were different. They were the active wealthy, not the idle ones, and they were fighters. A low, rumbling sound arose, lingering in the air for a moment before fading away. It was a precursor to a snarl, one I would hear many times that night—an expression of the primal instinct within humans, a reflection of their raw emotions. They were unaware that they were making this sound. It was the growl of a pack, voiced by the group without any consciousness. In that moment, as I witnessed the harshness appear on their faces and the fighting spirit light up in their eyes, I understood that they would not easily give up their dominance over the world.

Ernest proceeded with his attack. He accounted for the existence of the million and a half of revolutionists in the United States by charging the capitalist class with having mismanaged society. He sketched the economic condition of the cave-man and of the savage peoples of to-day, pointing out that they possessed neither tools nor machines, and possessed only a natural efficiency of one in producing power. Then he traced the development of machinery and social organization so that to-day the producing power of civilized man was a thousand times greater than that of the savage.

Ernest continued with his argument. He explained the presence of a million and a half revolutionists in the United States by blaming the capitalist class for poorly managing society. He described the economic situation of cavemen and today's primitive peoples, noting that they had no tools or machines and operated at a basic efficiency of one in producing power. Then he outlined how machinery and social organization evolved, showing that today, the productive capacity of civilized humans is a thousand times greater than that of savages.

“Five men,” he said, “can produce bread for a thousand. One man can produce cotton cloth for two hundred and fifty people, woollens for three hundred, and boots and shoes for a thousand. One would conclude from this that under a capable management of society modern civilized man would be a great deal better off than the cave-man. But is he? Let us see. In the United States to-day there are fifteen million[8] people living in poverty; and by poverty is meant that condition in life in which, through lack of food and adequate shelter, the mere standard of working efficiency cannot be maintained. In the United States to-day, in spite of all your so-called labor legislation, there are three millions of child laborers.[9] In twelve years their numbers have been doubled. And in passing I will ask you managers of society why you did not make public the census figures of 1910? And I will answer for you, that you were afraid. The figures of misery would have precipitated the revolution that even now is gathering.

“Five men,” he said, “can produce bread for a thousand. One man can create cotton cloth for two hundred and fifty people, wool for three hundred, and boots and shoes for a thousand. One might think that with capable management, modern civilized humans would be much better off than cave dwellers. But are they? Let’s take a look. Today in the United States, there are fifteen million people living in poverty; by poverty, we mean the condition where, due to lack of food and proper shelter, the basic standard of work efficiency can’t be sustained. In the United States today, despite all the so-called labor laws, there are three million child laborers. Their numbers have doubled in twelve years. And let me ask you, managers of society, why didn’t you make public the census figures from 1910? I’ll answer for you: you were afraid. The figures of suffering would have sparked the revolution that is even now building.”

[8] Robert Hunter, in 1906, in a book entitled “Poverty,” pointed out that at that time there were ten millions in the United States living in poverty.

[8] Robert Hunter, in 1906, in a book called “Poverty,” highlighted that at that time there were ten million people in the United States living in poverty.

[9] In the United States Census of 1900 (the last census the figures of which were made public), the number of child laborers was placed at 1,752,187.

[9] In the 1900 United States Census (the most recent census whose data was released), there were 1,752,187 reported child laborers.

“But to return to my indictment. If modern man’s producing power is a thousand times greater than that of the cave-man, why then, in the United States to-day, are there fifteen million people who are not properly sheltered and properly fed? Why then, in the United States to-day, are there three million child laborers? It is a true indictment. The capitalist class has mismanaged. In face of the facts that modern man lives more wretchedly than the cave-man, and that his producing power is a thousand times greater than that of the cave-man, no other conclusion is possible than that the capitalist class has mismanaged, that you have mismanaged, my masters, that you have criminally and selfishly mismanaged. And on this count you cannot answer me here to-night, face to face, any more than can your whole class answer the million and a half of revolutionists in the United States. You cannot answer. I challenge you to answer. And furthermore, I dare to say to you now that when I have finished you will not answer. On that point you will be tongue-tied, though you will talk wordily enough about other things.

“But let’s get back to my main point. If modern humans produce a thousand times more than cavemen did, then why are there fifteen million people in the United States today who don’t have proper shelter and food? Why are there three million child laborers in the United States today? This is a serious accusation. The capitalist class has messed up. Considering that modern people live more poorly than cavemen, despite having a production capacity a thousand times greater, the only conclusion is that the capitalist class has failed, that you have failed, my leaders, that you have failed in a criminal and selfish way. And on this matter, you can’t respond to me here tonight, just as your entire class can’t respond to the million and a half revolutionaries in the United States. You can’t answer. I challenge you to respond. And I dare say that once I’m done, you won’t be able to respond. You’ll be at a loss for words on that point, even though you’ll talk plenty about other subjects.”

“You have failed in your management. You have made a shambles of civilization. You have been blind and greedy. You have risen up (as you to-day rise up), shamelessly, in our legislative halls, and declared that profits were impossible without the toil of children and babes. Don’t take my word for it. It is all in the records against you. You have lulled your conscience to sleep with prattle of sweet ideals and dear moralities. You are fat with power and possession, drunken with success; and you have no more hope against us than have the drones, clustered about the honey-vats, when the worker-bees spring upon them to end their rotund existence. You have failed in your management of society, and your management is to be taken away from you. A million and a half of the men of the working class say that they are going to get the rest of the working class to join with them and take the management away from you. This is the revolution, my masters. Stop it if you can.”

“You have messed up your management. You have made a complete mess of civilization. You have been blind and greedy. You have stood up (just like you do today), shamelessly, in our legislative halls, and claimed that profits were impossible without the hard work of children and infants. Don’t just take my word for it. It’s all in the records against you. You have lulled your conscience to sleep with talk of sweet ideals and cherished moral values. You are bloated with power and wealth, intoxicated by success; and you have no more hope against us than the drones, gathered around the honey pots, when the worker bees come to end their fat existence. You have failed in your management of society, and your management is going to be taken away from you. One and a half million men from the working class say they are going to rally the rest of the working class to join them and take management away from you. This is the revolution, my masters. Stop it if you can.”

For an appreciable lapse of time Ernest’s voice continued to ring through the great room. Then arose the throaty rumble I had heard before, and a dozen men were on their feet clamoring for recognition from Colonel Van Gilbert. I noticed Miss Brentwood’s shoulders moving convulsively, and for the moment I was angry, for I thought that she was laughing at Ernest. And then I discovered that it was not laughter, but hysteria. She was appalled by what she had done in bringing this firebrand before her blessed Philomath Club.

For quite a while, Ernest's voice echoed through the large room. Then I heard that deep rumble again, and a dozen men stood up, eager to get Colonel Van Gilbert's attention. I saw Miss Brentwood's shoulders shaking, and for a moment, I felt angry, thinking she was laughing at Ernest. Then I realized it wasn’t laughter; it was hysteria. She was horrified by what she had done by bringing this troublemaker in front of her beloved Philomath Club.

Colonel Van Gilbert did not notice the dozen men, with passion-wrought faces, who strove to get permission from him to speak. His own face was passion-wrought. He sprang to his feet, waving his arms, and for a moment could utter only incoherent sounds. Then speech poured from him. But it was not the speech of a one-hundred-thousand-dollar lawyer, nor was the rhetoric old-fashioned.

Colonel Van Gilbert didn’t notice the dozen men, with faces full of emotion, trying to get his permission to speak. His own face was full of emotion. He jumped to his feet, waving his arms, and for a moment could only make incoherent sounds. Then words flowed from him. But it wasn’t the speech of a hundred-thousand-dollar lawyer, nor was the rhetoric outdated.

“Fallacy upon fallacy!” he cried. “Never in all my life have I heard so many fallacies uttered in one short hour. And besides, young man, I must tell you that you have said nothing new. I learned all that at college before you were born. Jean Jacques Rousseau enunciated your socialistic theory nearly two centuries ago. A return to the soil, forsooth! Reversion! Our biology teaches the absurdity of it. It has been truly said that a little learning is a dangerous thing, and you have exemplified it to-night with your madcap theories. Fallacy upon fallacy! I was never so nauseated in my life with overplus of fallacy. That for your immature generalizations and childish reasonings!”

“Fallacy after fallacy!” he exclaimed. “Never in my life have I heard so many misconceptions in such a short period. Also, young man, I have to say that you haven't said anything new. I learned all of that in college long before you were born. Jean Jacques Rousseau presented your socialist ideas nearly two centuries ago. A return to the land, really! Regression! Our biology highlights how ridiculous that is. It's been said that a little knowledge is a dangerous thing, and you've shown that tonight with your outrageous theories. Fallacy after fallacy! I’ve never felt so sickened by an overload of nonsense in my life. That’s for your immature generalizations and childish reasoning!”

He snapped his fingers contemptuously and proceeded to sit down. There were lip-exclamations of approval on the part of the women, and hoarser notes of confirmation came from the men. As for the dozen men who were clamoring for the floor, half of them began speaking at once. The confusion and babel was indescribable. Never had Mrs. Pertonwaithe’s spacious walls beheld such a spectacle. These, then, were the cool captains of industry and lords of society, these snarling, growling savages in evening clothes. Truly Ernest had shaken them when he stretched out his hands for their moneybags, his hands that had appeared in their eyes as the hands of the fifteen hundred thousand revolutionists.

He snapped his fingers in disdain and sat down. The women let out approving exclamations, while the men responded with deeper, more forceful confirmations. Among the dozen men vying for attention, half of them started talking over each other. The chaos and noise were overwhelming. Never had Mrs. Pertonwaithe’s spacious walls witnessed such a scene. These were the cool leaders of industry and elite society, transformed into snarling, growling beasts in their evening attire. Truly, Ernest had rattled them when he reached out for their wallets, his hands appearing to them as if they belonged to the fifteen hundred thousand revolutionaries.

But Ernest never lost his head in a situation. Before Colonel Van Gilbert had succeeded in sitting down, Ernest was on his feet and had sprung forward.

But Ernest never lost his cool in any situation. Before Colonel Van Gilbert even managed to sit down, Ernest was already on his feet and had jumped forward.

“One at a time!” he roared at them.

“One at a time!” he shouted at them.

The sound arose from his great lungs and dominated the human tempest. By sheer compulsion of personality he commanded silence.

The sound came from his powerful lungs and overwhelmed the chaos around him. With his strong presence, he commanded silence.

“One at a time,” he repeated softly. “Let me answer Colonel Van Gilbert. After that the rest of you can come at me—but one at a time, remember. No mass-plays here. This is not a football field.

“One at a time,” he repeated softly. “Let me address Colonel Van Gilbert first. After that, the rest of you can come at me—but one at a time, remember. No group attacks here. This isn’t a football field.”

“As for you,” he went on, turning toward Colonel Van Gilbert, “you have replied to nothing I have said. You have merely made a few excited and dogmatic assertions about my mental caliber. That may serve you in your business, but you can’t talk to me like that. I am not a workingman, cap in hand, asking you to increase my wages or to protect me from the machine at which I work. You cannot be dogmatic with truth when you deal with me. Save that for dealing with your wage-slaves. They will not dare reply to you because you hold their bread and butter, their lives, in your hands.

“As for you,” he continued, turning to Colonel Van Gilbert, “you haven’t addressed anything I’ve said. You’ve just thrown out a few heated and arrogant claims about my intelligence. That might work for you in your industry, but you can’t talk to me that way. I’m not some worker, cap in hand, begging you to raise my pay or to shield me from the machine I operate. You can’t be so certain about the truth when you’re talking to me. Save that attitude for your minions. They won’t dare respond to you because you control their livelihoods, their very lives, with your power.

“As for this return to nature that you say you learned at college before I was born, permit me to point out that on the face of it you cannot have learned anything since. Socialism has no more to do with the state of nature than has differential calculus with a Bible class. I have called your class stupid when outside the realm of business. You, sir, have brilliantly exemplified my statement.”

“As for this return to nature that you claim you learned in college before I was born, let me point out that it looks like you haven’t learned anything since then. Socialism is no more related to the state of nature than differential calculus is to a Bible class. I have called your class stupid when it’s not in the realm of business. You, sir, have perfectly demonstrated my point.”

This terrible castigation of her hundred-thousand-dollar lawyer was too much for Miss Brentwood’s nerves. Her hysteria became violent, and she was helped, weeping and laughing, out of the room. It was just as well, for there was worse to follow.

This harsh criticism of her hundred-thousand-dollar lawyer was too much for Miss Brentwood to handle. She became extremely emotional, and with tears and laughter, she was led out of the room. It was probably for the best, as things were about to get even worse.

“Don’t take my word for it,” Ernest continued, when the interruption had been led away. “Your own authorities with one unanimous voice will prove you stupid. Your own hired purveyors of knowledge will tell you that you are wrong. Go to your meekest little assistant instructor of sociology and ask him what is the difference between Rousseau’s theory of the return to nature and the theory of socialism; ask your greatest orthodox bourgeois political economists and sociologists; question through the pages of every text-book written on the subject and stored on the shelves of your subsidized libraries; and from one and all the answer will be that there is nothing congruous between the return to nature and socialism. On the other hand, the unanimous affirmative answer will be that the return to nature and socialism are diametrically opposed to each other. As I say, don’t take my word for it. The record of your stupidity is there in the books, your own books that you never read. And so far as your stupidity is concerned, you are but the exemplar of your class.

“Don’t just take my word for it,” Ernest continued, once the interruption had been dealt with. “Your own experts will unanimously show you how misguided you are. Your own hired sources of knowledge will tell you that you’re wrong. Go ask your most unassuming assistant sociology instructor what the difference is between Rousseau’s theory of returning to nature and the theory of socialism; consult your top orthodox bourgeois political economists and sociologists; examine every textbook written on the topic that’s sitting on the shelves of your funded libraries; and from every single one, you’ll get the same answer: there’s nothing similar between the return to nature and socialism. On the flip side, they will all agree that returning to nature and socialism are completely opposed to one another. Like I said, don’t just take my word for it. The proof of your ignorance is in the books, your own books that you never read. And regarding your ignorance, you’re just a representation of your class.

“You know law and business, Colonel Van Gilbert. You know how to serve corporations and increase dividends by twisting the law. Very good. Stick to it. You are quite a figure. You are a very good lawyer, but you are a poor historian, you know nothing of sociology, and your biology is contemporaneous with Pliny.”

“You know law and business, Colonel Van Gilbert. You know how to serve corporations and boost profits by bending the law. That's impressive. Keep at it. You're quite a character. You’re a skilled lawyer, but you lack understanding of history, don’t know anything about sociology, and your knowledge of biology is outdated.”

Here Colonel Van Gilbert writhed in his chair. There was perfect quiet in the room. Everybody sat fascinated—paralyzed, I may say. Such fearful treatment of the great Colonel Van Gilbert was unheard of, undreamed of, impossible to believe—the great Colonel Van Gilbert before whom judges trembled when he arose in court. But Ernest never gave quarter to an enemy.

Here, Colonel Van Gilbert squirmed in his chair. The room was completely silent. Everyone sat, captivated—frozen, I should say. Such harsh treatment of the esteemed Colonel Van Gilbert was unprecedented, unimaginable, impossible to accept—the esteemed Colonel Van Gilbert, who made judges tremble when he stood up in court. But Ernest never showed mercy to an opponent.

“This is, of course, no reflection on you,” Ernest said. “Every man to his trade. Only you stick to your trade, and I’ll stick to mine. You have specialized. When it comes to a knowledge of the law, of how best to evade the law or make new law for the benefit of thieving corporations, I am down in the dirt at your feet. But when it comes to sociology—my trade—you are down in the dirt at my feet. Remember that. Remember, also, that your law is the stuff of a day, and that you are not versatile in the stuff of more than a day. Therefore your dogmatic assertions and rash generalizations on things historical and sociological are not worth the breath you waste on them.”

“This isn’t a reflection on you,” Ernest said. “Everyone has their area of expertise. You stick to yours, and I’ll stick to mine. You’ve specialized. When it comes to understanding the law—whether it's about dodging the law or crafting new regulations for the benefit of greedy companies, I'm completely clueless compared to you. But when it comes to sociology—my field—you’re the one who doesn’t know anything. Keep that in mind. Also, remember that your legal knowledge is only relevant for the moment, and you’re not skilled beyond that. So your strong opinions and hasty conclusions about historical and social matters aren’t worth the breath you waste on them.”

Ernest paused for a moment and regarded him thoughtfully, noting his face dark and twisted with anger, his panting chest, his writhing body, and his slim white hands nervously clenching and unclenching.

Ernest paused for a moment and looked at him thoughtfully, noticing his face dark and twisted with anger, his heaving chest, his restless body, and his slim white hands nervously clenching and unclenching.

“But it seems you have breath to use, and I’ll give you a chance to use it. I indicted your class. Show me that my indictment is wrong. I pointed out to you the wretchedness of modern man—three million child slaves in the United States, without whose labor profits would not be possible, and fifteen million under-fed, ill-clothed, and worse-housed people. I pointed out that modern man’s producing power through social organization and the use of machinery was a thousand times greater than that of the cave-man. And I stated that from these two facts no other conclusion was possible than that the capitalist class had mismanaged. This was my indictment, and I specifically and at length challenged you to answer it. Nay, I did more. I prophesied that you would not answer. It remains for your breath to smash my prophecy. You called my speech fallacy. Show the fallacy, Colonel Van Gilbert. Answer the indictment that I and my fifteen hundred thousand comrades have brought against your class and you.”

“But it seems you have breath to spare, and I’ll give you a chance to use it. I accused your class. Prove to me that my accusation is wrong. I pointed out the misery of modern man—three million child slaves in the United States, whose labor makes profits possible, and fifteen million underfed, poorly clothed, and poorly housed people. I noted that modern man’s productivity through social organization and machinery is a thousand times greater than that of cavemen. From these two facts, I concluded that the capitalist class has mismanaged. This was my accusation, and I specifically and thoroughly challenged you to respond to it. In fact, I went further. I predicted that you wouldn’t respond. It’s up to you to disprove my prediction. You called my speech a fallacy. Show me the fallacy, Colonel Van Gilbert. Address the accusation that I and my one and a half million comrades have made against your class and you.”

Colonel Van Gilbert quite forgot that he was presiding, and that in courtesy he should permit the other clamorers to speak. He was on his feet, flinging his arms, his rhetoric, and his control to the winds, alternately abusing Ernest for his youth and demagoguery, and savagely attacking the working class, elaborating its inefficiency and worthlessness.

Colonel Van Gilbert completely lost track of the fact that he was leading the meeting and that, out of courtesy, he should let the other speakers have their say. He was standing up, waving his arms, passionately arguing, and losing his composure, alternately criticizing Ernest for being young and a demagogue, and fiercely attacking the working class, detailing its inefficiency and lack of value.

“For a lawyer, you are the hardest man to keep to a point I ever saw,” Ernest began his answer to the tirade. “My youth has nothing to do with what I have enunciated. Nor has the worthlessness of the working class. I charged the capitalist class with having mismanaged society. You have not answered. You have made no attempt to answer. Why? Is it because you have no answer? You are the champion of this whole audience. Every one here, except me, is hanging on your lips for that answer. They are hanging on your lips for that answer because they have no answer themselves. As for me, as I said before, I know that you not only cannot answer, but that you will not attempt an answer.”

“For a lawyer, you’re the hardest person I’ve ever met to get to the point,” Ernest started in response to the rant. “My age has nothing to do with what I’ve stated. And neither does the worthlessness of the working class. I accused the capitalist class of mismanaging society. You haven’t replied. You haven’t made any effort to respond. Why is that? Is it because you don’t have an answer? You’re the hero of this whole audience. Everyone here, except for me, is hanging on your every word for that answer. They’re doing that because they don’t have an answer themselves. As for me, as I said before, I know that you not only can’t answer, but that you won’t even try to.”

“This is intolerable!” Colonel Van Gilbert cried out. “This is insult!”

“This is unacceptable!” Colonel Van Gilbert shouted. “This is an insult!”

“That you should not answer is intolerable,” Ernest replied gravely. “No man can be intellectually insulted. Insult, in its very nature, is emotional. Recover yourself. Give me an intellectual answer to my intellectual charge that the capitalist class has mismanaged society.”

“That you shouldn't answer is unacceptable,” Ernest replied seriously. “No one can be intellectually insulted. Insult, by its very nature, is emotional. Get a grip. Give me an intellectual response to my intellectual accusation that the capitalist class has messed up society.”

Colonel Van Gilbert remained silent, a sullen, superior expression on his face, such as will appear on the face of a man who will not bandy words with a ruffian.

Colonel Van Gilbert stayed quiet, wearing a sullen, condescending look on his face, like that of a man who refuses to engage in conversation with a thug.

“Do not be downcast,” Ernest said. “Take consolation in the fact that no member of your class has ever yet answered that charge.” He turned to the other men who were anxious to speak. “And now it’s your chance. Fire away, and do not forget that I here challenge you to give the answer that Colonel Van Gilbert has failed to give.”

“Don’t be upset,” Ernest said. “Take comfort in the fact that no one in your class has ever answered that charge.” He turned to the other men who were eager to speak. “And now it’s your turn. Go ahead, and remember that I’m challenging you to provide the answer that Colonel Van Gilbert hasn’t been able to give.”

It would be impossible for me to write all that was said in the discussion. I never realized before how many words could be spoken in three short hours. At any rate, it was glorious. The more his opponents grew excited, the more Ernest deliberately excited them. He had an encyclopaedic command of the field of knowledge, and by a word or a phrase, by delicate rapier thrusts, he punctured them. He named the points of their illogic. This was a false syllogism, that conclusion had no connection with the premise, while that next premise was an impostor because it had cunningly hidden in it the conclusion that was being attempted to be proved. This was an error, that was an assumption, and the next was an assertion contrary to ascertained truth as printed in all the text-books.

It would be impossible for me to write everything that was said in the discussion. I never realized before how many words could be spoken in three short hours. At any rate, it was amazing. The more his opponents became agitated, the more Ernest deliberately provoked them. He had an extensive grasp of the subject matter, and with a word or a phrase, using precise, sharp points, he debunked their arguments. He highlighted their logical fallacies. This was a false syllogism, that conclusion had no relationship with the premise, and the next premise was misleading because it subtly included the conclusion it was trying to prove. This was a mistake, that was an assumption, and the next one was a claim that contradicted established facts as outlined in all the textbooks.

And so it went. Sometimes he exchanged the rapier for the club and went smashing amongst their thoughts right and left. And always he demanded facts and refused to discuss theories. And his facts made for them a Waterloo. When they attacked the working class, he always retorted, “The pot calling the kettle black; that is no answer to the charge that your own face is dirty.” And to one and all he said: “Why have you not answered the charge that your class has mismanaged? You have talked about other things and things concerning other things, but you have not answered. Is it because you have no answer?”

And so it went. Sometimes he swapped the rapier for a club and went smashing through their ideas left and right. And he always insisted on facts and refused to discuss theories. His facts dealt them a blow like Waterloo. When they criticized the working class, he would always respond, “That’s just the pot calling the kettle black; it doesn't address the fact that your own hands are dirty.” And to everyone he said: “Why haven't you addressed the accusation that your class has mismanaged? You've talked about other issues and related matters, but you haven't responded. Is it because you have no answer?”

It was at the end of the discussion that Mr. Wickson spoke. He was the only one that was cool, and Ernest treated him with a respect he had not accorded the others.

It was at the end of the conversation that Mr. Wickson spoke up. He was the only one who remained calm, and Ernest showed him a level of respect he hadn't given to the others.

“No answer is necessary,” Mr. Wickson said with slow deliberation. “I have followed the whole discussion with amazement and disgust. I am disgusted with you gentlemen, members of my class. You have behaved like foolish little schoolboys, what with intruding ethics and the thunder of the common politician into such a discussion. You have been outgeneralled and outclassed. You have been very wordy, and all you have done is buzz. You have buzzed like gnats about a bear. Gentlemen, there stands the bear” (he pointed at Ernest), “and your buzzing has only tickled his ears.

“No answer is necessary,” Mr. Wickson said slowly. “I have been following this whole discussion with both amazement and disgust. I’m disappointed in you gentlemen, members of my class. You’ve acted like foolish little schoolboys, bringing in ethics and the noise of the average politician into such a discussion. You’ve been outsmarted and outclassed. You’ve talked a lot, but all you’ve done is buzz. You’ve buzzed like gnats around a bear. Gentlemen, there stands the bear” (he pointed at Ernest), “and your buzzing has only tickled his ears.

“Believe me, the situation is serious. That bear reached out his paws tonight to crush us. He has said there are a million and a half of revolutionists in the United States. That is a fact. He has said that it is their intention to take away from us our governments, our palaces, and all our purpled ease. That, also, is a fact. A change, a great change, is coming in society; but, haply, it may not be the change the bear anticipates. The bear has said that he will crush us. What if we crush the bear?”

“Believe me, the situation is serious. That bear reached out his paws tonight to crush us. He claims there are a million and a half revolutionists in the United States. That’s a fact. He says their goal is to take our governments, our palaces, and all our comforts. That’s also a fact. A change, a big change, is coming in society; but, hopefully, it might not be the change the bear expects. The bear has said he will crush us. What if we crush the bear?”

The throat-rumble arose in the great room, and man nodded to man with indorsement and certitude. Their faces were set hard. They were fighters, that was certain.

The low growl rose in the large room, and one man nodded to another with approval and certainty. Their faces were serious and determined. They were fighters, no doubt about it.

“But not by buzzing will we crush the bear,” Mr. Wickson went on coldly and dispassionately. “We will hunt the bear. We will not reply to the bear in words. Our reply shall be couched in terms of lead. We are in power. Nobody will deny it. By virtue of that power we shall remain in power.”

“But we won't defeat the bear by just making noise,” Mr. Wickson continued coldly and unemotionally. “We will hunt the bear. We won’t respond to the bear with words. Our response will be in bullets. We are in control. No one can argue that. Because of that power, we will stay in control.”

He turned suddenly upon Ernest. The moment was dramatic.

He suddenly turned to Ernest. It was a dramatic moment.

“This, then, is our answer. We have no words to waste on you. When you reach out your vaunted strong hands for our palaces and purpled ease, we will show you what strength is. In roar of shell and shrapnel and in whine of machine-guns will our answer be couched.[10] We will grind you revolutionists down under our heel, and we shall walk upon your faces. The world is ours, we are its lords, and ours it shall remain. As for the host of labor, it has been in the dirt since history began, and I read history aright. And in the dirt it shall remain so long as I and mine and those that come after us have the power. There is the word. It is the king of words—Power. Not God, not Mammon, but Power. Pour it over your tongue till it tingles with it. Power.”

“This is our answer. We have no words to waste on you. When you reach out with your so-called strong hands for our wealth and comfort, we will show you what real strength is. In the blast of shells and shrapnel and the whine of machine guns, our response will be delivered. We will crush you revolutionaries beneath our feet, and we will walk on your faces. The world is ours; we are its rulers, and it will stay that way. As for the working class, it has been in the dirt since history began, and I understand history correctly. And in the dirt it will remain as long as I and my kind and those who come after us hold the power. That’s the truth. It’s the ultimate truth—Power. Not God, not money, but Power. Savor it until it sparks something inside you. Power.”

[10] To show the tenor of thought, the following definition is quoted from “The Cynic’s Word Book” (1906 A.D.), written by one Ambrose Bierce, an avowed and confirmed misanthrope of the period: “Grapeshot, n. An argument which the future is preparing in answer to the demands of American Socialism.

[10] To illustrate the prevailing mindset, here’s a definition from “The Cynic’s Word Book” (1906), written by Ambrose Bierce, a well-known misanthrope of his time: “Grapeshot, n. An argument that the future is developing in response to the demands of American Socialism.

“I am answered,” Ernest said quietly. “It is the only answer that could be given. Power. It is what we of the working class preach. We know, and well we know by bitter experience, that no appeal for the right, for justice, for humanity, can ever touch you. Your hearts are hard as your heels with which you tread upon the faces of the poor. So we have preached power. By the power of our ballots on election day will we take your government away from you—”

“I have my answer,” Ernest said quietly. “It’s the only answer that makes sense. Power. That’s what we in the working class talk about. We understand, all too well from painful experience, that no plea for what’s right, for justice, or for humanity can ever reach you. Your hearts are as hard as the heels you use to walk over the faces of the poor. So we’ve focused on power. On election day, we will use the power of our votes to take your government away from you—”

“What if you do get a majority, a sweeping majority, on election day?” Mr. Wickson broke in to demand. “Suppose we refuse to turn the government over to you after you have captured it at the ballot-box?”

“What if you actually get a majority, a huge majority, on election day?” Mr. Wickson interrupted to ask. “What if we refuse to hand the government over to you after you’ve taken it at the ballot box?”

“That, also, have we considered,” Ernest replied. “And we shall give you an answer in terms of lead. Power you have proclaimed the king of words. Very good. Power it shall be. And in the day that we sweep to victory at the ballot-box, and you refuse to turn over to us the government we have constitutionally and peacefully captured, and you demand what we are going to do about it—in that day, I say, we shall answer you; and in roar of shell and shrapnel and in whine of machine-guns shall our answer be couched.

"That’s something we’ve considered too," Ernest replied. "And we’ll give you an answer in terms of force. You’ve declared power to be the ultimate word. Fine. Power it will be. And on the day we achieve victory at the polls, and you refuse to hand over the government that we’ve constitutionally and peacefully won, and you ask what we’re going to do about it—in that time, I say, we will answer you; and our response will be in the roar of artillery and shrapnel and the whine of machine guns."

“You cannot escape us. It is true that you have read history aright. It is true that labor has from the beginning of history been in the dirt. And it is equally true that so long as you and yours and those that come after you have power, that labor shall remain in the dirt. I agree with you. I agree with all that you have said. Power will be the arbiter, as it always has been the arbiter. It is a struggle of classes. Just as your class dragged down the old feudal nobility, so shall it be dragged down by my class, the working class. If you will read your biology and your sociology as clearly as you do your history, you will see that this end I have described is inevitable. It does not matter whether it is in one year, ten, or a thousand—your class shall be dragged down. And it shall be done by power. We of the labor hosts have conned that word over till our minds are all a-tingle with it. Power. It is a kingly word.”

“You can’t escape us. It’s true that you’ve understood history correctly. It’s true that labor has been oppressed since the beginning of time. And it’s equally true that as long as you, your people, and those who come after you hold power, labor will remain oppressed. I agree with you. I agree with everything you’ve said. Power will always be the deciding factor, just as it has been. It’s a class struggle. Just as your class brought down the old feudal lords, my class, the working class, will bring you down. If you read your biology and sociology as clearly as you read your history, you’ll see that the outcome I mentioned is unavoidable. It doesn’t matter if it happens in one year, ten, or a thousand—your class will be brought down. And it will be done through power. We of the labor movement have studied that word until it sends shivers down our spines. Power. It’s a powerful word.”

And so ended the night with the Philomaths.

And so the night with the Philomaths came to a close.

CHAPTER VI.
ADUMBRATIONS

It was about this time that the warnings of coming events began to fall about us thick and fast. Ernest had already questioned father’s policy of having socialists and labor leaders at his house, and of openly attending socialist meetings; and father had only laughed at him for his pains. As for myself, I was learning much from this contact with the working-class leaders and thinkers. I was seeing the other side of the shield. I was delighted with the unselfishness and high idealism I encountered, though I was appalled by the vast philosophic and scientific literature of socialism that was opened up to me. I was learning fast, but I learned not fast enough to realize then the peril of our position.

It was around this time that the warnings of upcoming events started to come at us quickly. Ernest had already questioned Dad’s choice to invite socialists and labor leaders to our home, as well as his public attendance at socialist meetings; Dad just laughed it off. As for me, I was gaining a lot from interacting with the working-class leaders and thinkers. I was seeing things from a different perspective. I was impressed by the selflessness and high ideals I encountered, even though I was shocked by the extensive philosophical and scientific literature on socialism that was being presented to me. I was learning quickly, but not quickly enough to recognize the danger of our situation at that time.

There were warnings, but I did not heed them. For instance, Mrs. Pertonwaithe and Mrs. Wickson exercised tremendous social power in the university town, and from them emanated the sentiment that I was a too-forward and self-assertive young woman with a mischievous penchant for officiousness and interference in other persons’ affairs. This I thought no more than natural, considering the part I had played in investigating the case of Jackson’s arm. But the effect of such a sentiment, enunciated by two such powerful social arbiters, I underestimated.

There were warnings, but I ignored them. For example, Mrs. Pertonwaithe and Mrs. Wickson held a lot of social influence in the university town, and they conveyed the idea that I was an overly assertive young woman with a knack for meddling in other people's business. I thought this was only to be expected, given my involvement in looking into the situation with Jackson’s arm. However, I underestimated the impact of such opinions coming from two powerful social figureheads.

True, I noticed a certain aloofness on the part of my general friends, but this I ascribed to the disapproval that was prevalent in my circles of my intended marriage with Ernest. It was not till some time afterward that Ernest pointed out to me clearly that this general attitude of my class was something more than spontaneous, that behind it were the hidden springs of an organized conduct. “You have given shelter to an enemy of your class,” he said. “And not alone shelter, for you have given your love, yourself. This is treason to your class. Think not that you will escape being penalized.”

Sure, I noticed that my friends were a bit distant, but I thought it was just because they disapproved of my upcoming marriage to Ernest. It wasn’t until later that Ernest made it clear that this general attitude from my social circle was more than just a natural reaction; there was a deliberate effort behind it. “You've taken in someone who’s seen as an enemy to your class,” he said. “And it’s not just that you've offered support; you’ve given your love, yourself. This is a betrayal of your class. Don’t think you won’t face consequences for this.”

But it was before this that father returned one afternoon. Ernest was with me, and we could see that father was angry—philosophically angry. He was rarely really angry; but a certain measure of controlled anger he allowed himself. He called it a tonic. And we could see that he was tonic-angry when he entered the room.

But it was before this that Dad came home one afternoon. Ernest was with me, and we could tell that Dad was angry—philosophically angry. He rarely got truly angry, but he allowed himself a certain level of controlled anger. He called it a tonic. We could see that he was tonic-angry when he walked into the room.

“What do you think?” he demanded. “I had luncheon with Wilcox.”

“What do you think?” he asked. “I had lunch with Wilcox.”

Wilcox was the superannuated president of the university, whose withered mind was stored with generalizations that were young in 1870, and which he had since failed to revise.

Wilcox was the retired president of the university, whose outdated mind was filled with ideas that were relevant in 1870, and which he had since neglected to update.

“I was invited,” father announced. “I was sent for.”

“I got an invitation,” Dad said. “They asked for me.”

He paused, and we waited.

He paused, and we waited.

“Oh, it was done very nicely, I’ll allow; but I was reprimanded. I! And by that old fossil!”

“Oh, it was done really well, I’ll admit; but I was scolded. Me! And by that old fossil!”

“I’ll wager I know what you were reprimanded for,” Ernest said.

“I bet I know what you got scolded for,” Ernest said.

“Not in three guesses,” father laughed.

“Not in three tries,” Dad laughed.

“One guess will do,” Ernest retorted. “And it won’t be a guess. It will be a deduction. You were reprimanded for your private life.”

“One guess is enough,” Ernest shot back. “And it won’t just be a guess. It will be a conclusion. You were called out for your personal life.”

“The very thing!” father cried. “How did you guess?”

“The very thing!” Dad exclaimed. “How did you figure that out?”

“I knew it was coming. I warned you before about it.”

“I knew it was going to happen. I told you about it before.”

“Yes, you did,” father meditated. “But I couldn’t believe it. At any rate, it is only so much more clinching evidence for my book.”

“Yes, you did,” Dad thought. “But I couldn’t believe it. Anyway, it’s just more solid proof for my book.”

“It is nothing to what will come,” Ernest went on, “if you persist in your policy of having these socialists and radicals of all sorts at your house, myself included.”

“It’s nothing compared to what's coming,” Ernest continued, “if you keep inviting these socialists and radicals of all kinds to your house, myself included.”

“Just what old Wilcox said. And of all unwarranted things! He said it was in poor taste, utterly profitless, anyway, and not in harmony with university traditions and policy. He said much more of the same vague sort, and I couldn’t pin him down to anything specific. I made it pretty awkward for him, and he could only go on repeating himself and telling me how much he honored me, and all the world honored me, as a scientist. It wasn’t an agreeable task for him. I could see he didn’t like it.”

“Just like old Wilcox said. And what an unreasonable thing to say! He claimed it was in bad taste, totally pointless, anyway, and not in line with university traditions and policies. He went on and on with similar vague comments, and I couldn’t get him to say anything concrete. I made it pretty uncomfortable for him, and he could only keep repeating himself and telling me how much he respected me, and how the entire world respected me as a scientist. It wasn’t an enjoyable task for him. I could tell he wasn’t into it.”

“He was not a free agent,” Ernest said. “The leg-bar[1] is not always worn graciously.”

“He wasn't a free agent,” Ernest said. “The leg-bar[1] isn't always worn gracefully.”

[1] Leg-bar—the African slaves were so manacled; also criminals. It was not until the coming of the Brotherhood of Man that the leg-bar passed out of use.

[1] Leg-bar—the African slaves were chained like this; the same went for criminals. It wasn’t until the arrival of the Brotherhood of Man that the leg-bar was no longer used.

“Yes. I got that much out of him. He said the university needed ever so much more money this year than the state was willing to furnish; and that it must come from wealthy personages who could not but be offended by the swerving of the university from its high ideal of the passionless pursuit of passionless intelligence. When I tried to pin him down to what my home life had to do with swerving the university from its high ideal, he offered me a two years’ vacation, on full pay, in Europe, for recreation and research. Of course I couldn’t accept it under the circumstances.”

“Yes. I got that much out of him. He said the university needed a lot more money this year than the state was willing to provide, and that it had to come from wealthy individuals who would surely be offended by the university straying from its high ideal of the unbiased pursuit of knowledge. When I tried to get him to explain how my home life was affecting the university’s high ideals, he offered me a two-year paid vacation in Europe for recreation and research. Of course, I couldn’t accept it under the circumstances.”

“It would have been far better if you had,” Ernest said gravely.

“It would have been much better if you had,” Ernest said seriously.

“It was a bribe,” father protested; and Ernest nodded.

“It was a bribe,” Dad protested; and Ernest nodded.

“Also, the beggar said that there was talk, tea-table gossip and so forth, about my daughter being seen in public with so notorious a character as you, and that it was not in keeping with university tone and dignity. Not that he personally objected—oh, no; but that there was talk and that I would understand.”

“Also, the beggar mentioned that there was talk, tea-table gossip and all that, about my daughter being spotted in public with such a notorious character as you, and that it didn’t fit the university’s tone and dignity. Not that he personally minded—oh, no; but that there was talk and that I would get what he meant.”

Ernest considered this announcement for a moment, and then said, and his face was very grave, withal there was a sombre wrath in it:

Ernest thought about this announcement for a moment, then said, his face very serious, although there was a dark anger in it:

“There is more behind this than a mere university ideal. Somebody has put pressure on President Wilcox.”

“There's more to this than just a university ideal. Someone has put pressure on President Wilcox.”

“Do you think so?” father asked, and his face showed that he was interested rather than frightened.

“Do you really think so?” Dad asked, and his expression showed that he was more curious than scared.

“I wish I could convey to you the conception that is dimly forming in my own mind,” Ernest said. “Never in the history of the world was society in so terrific flux as it is right now. The swift changes in our industrial system are causing equally swift changes in our religious, political, and social structures. An unseen and fearful revolution is taking place in the fibre and structure of society. One can only dimly feel these things. But they are in the air, now, to-day. One can feel the loom of them—things vast, vague, and terrible. My mind recoils from contemplation of what they may crystallize into. You heard Wickson talk the other night. Behind what he said were the same nameless, formless things that I feel. He spoke out of a superconscious apprehension of them.”

“I wish I could share the idea that's just starting to take shape in my mind,” Ernest said. “Never before in history has society been in such a crazy state of change as it is right now. The rapid shifts in our industrial system are creating equally rapid changes in our religious, political, and social structures. An unseen and frightening revolution is happening beneath the surface of society. You can only vaguely sense these things. But they’re in the air, today, right now. You can feel them coming—things that are huge, unclear, and terrifying. I can’t bear to think about what they might eventually turn into. You heard Wickson talk the other night. Behind what he said were the same unnamed, undefined things that I’m sensing. He spoke from a deep awareness of them.”

“You mean . . . ?” father began, then paused.

"You mean...?" Dad started, then hesitated.

“I mean that there is a shadow of something colossal and menacing that even now is beginning to fall across the land. Call it the shadow of an oligarchy, if you will; it is the nearest I dare approximate it. What its nature may be I refuse to imagine.[2] But what I wanted to say was this: You are in a perilous position—a peril that my own fear enhances because I am not able even to measure it. Take my advice and accept the vacation.”

“I mean that there’s a looming threat that’s starting to cast a dark shadow over the land. You can call it the shadow of an oligarchy if you want; it’s the closest description I can come up with. I won’t speculate on what it truly is.[2] But what I really wanted to say is this: You’re in a risky situation—a danger that my own anxiety makes worse because I can’t even gauge it. Trust me and take the vacation.”

[2] Though, like Everhard, they did not dream of the nature of it, there were men, even before his time, who caught glimpses of the shadow. John C. Calhoun said: “A power has risen up in the government greater than the people themselves, consisting of many and various and powerful interests, combined into one mass, and held together by the cohesive power of the vast surplus in the banks.” And that great humanist, Abraham Lincoln, said, just before his assassination: “I see in the near future a crisis approaching that unnerves me and causes me to tremble for the safety of my country. . . . Corporations have been enthroned, an era of corruption in high places will follow, and the money-power of the country will endeavor to prolong its reign by working upon the prejudices of the people until the wealth is aggregated in a few hands and the Republic is destroyed.

[2] Though, like Everhard, they didn’t foresee its true nature, there were men, even before his time, who caught glimpses of the shadow. John C. Calhoun stated: “A power has emerged in the government that is greater than the people themselves, made up of many diverse and powerful interests, unified into one entity and held together by the cohesive force of the large surplus in the banks.” And that great humanist, Abraham Lincoln, said, just before his assassination: “I see a crisis approaching in the near future that unsettles me and makes me fear for the safety of my country. . . . Corporations have taken control, an era of corruption in high places will follow, and the financial power of the country will try to maintain its dominance by exploiting the biases of the people until wealth is concentrated in a few hands and the Republic is destroyed.

“But it would be cowardly,” was the protest.

"But that would be cowardly," was the objection.

“Not at all. You are an old man. You have done your work in the world, and a great work. Leave the present battle to youth and strength. We young fellows have our work yet to do. Avis will stand by my side in what is to come. She will be your representative in the battle-front.”

“Not at all. You’re an old man. You’ve done your part in the world, and you’ve done great work. Let the younger generation handle the current struggle. We young guys still have our work to do. Avis will stand by me in what’s ahead. She’ll be your representative on the front lines.”

“But they can’t hurt me,” father objected. “Thank God I am independent. Oh, I assure you, I know the frightful persecution they can wage on a professor who is economically dependent on his university. But I am independent. I have not been a professor for the sake of my salary. I can get along very comfortably on my own income, and the salary is all they can take away from me.”

“But they can’t hurt me,” Dad insisted. “Thank God I’m independent. Oh, believe me, I understand the terrible persecution they can unleash on a professor who relies on his university for money. But I am independent. I haven’t been a professor just for the paycheck. I can live quite comfortably on my own income, and the salary is all they can take from me.”

“But you do not realize,” Ernest answered. “If all that I fear be so, your private income, your principal itself, can be taken from you just as easily as your salary.”

“But you don’t understand,” Ernest replied. “If everything I fear is true, your personal income, your main funds, can be taken from you just as easily as your salary.”

Father was silent for a few minutes. He was thinking deeply, and I could see the lines of decision forming in his face. At last he spoke.

Father was quiet for a few minutes. He was deep in thought, and I could see the signs of a decision forming in his expression. Finally, he said something.

“I shall not take the vacation.” He paused again. “I shall go on with my book.[3] You may be wrong, but whether you are wrong or right, I shall stand by my guns.”

“I’m not going to take the vacation.” He paused again. “I’ll keep working on my book.[3] You might be wrong, but regardless of whether you are wrong or right, I’ll stick to my beliefs.”

[3] This book, “Economics and Education,” was published in that year. Three copies of it are extant; two at Ardis, and one at Asgard. It dealt, in elaborate detail, with one factor in the persistence of the established, namely, the capitalistic bias of the universities and common schools. It was a logical and crushing indictment of the whole system of education that developed in the minds of the students only such ideas as were favorable to the capitalistic regime, to the exclusion of all ideas that were inimical and subversive. The book created a furor, and was promptly suppressed by the Oligarchy.

[3] This book, “Economics and Education,” was published that year. Three copies still exist; two at Ardis and one at Asgard. It explored, in great detail, one reason why the established order persists: the capitalistic bias in universities and public schools. It provided a logical and damning critique of the entire education system, which only cultivated ideas in students that supported the capitalist regime, while ignoring any ideas that were contrary or disruptive. The book sparked a huge controversy and was quickly banned by the Oligarchy.

“All right,” Ernest said. “You are travelling the same path that Bishop Morehouse is, and toward a similar smash-up. You’ll both be proletarians before you’re done with it.”

“All right,” Ernest said. “You’re on the same path as Bishop Morehouse, heading for a similar disaster. You’ll both end up as working-class stiffs by the time this is over.”

The conversation turned upon the Bishop, and we got Ernest to explain what he had been doing with him.

The conversation shifted to the Bishop, and we had Ernest explain what he had been doing with him.

“He is soul-sick from the journey through hell I have given him. I took him through the homes of a few of our factory workers. I showed him the human wrecks cast aside by the industrial machine, and he listened to their life stories. I took him through the slums of San Francisco, and in drunkenness, prostitution, and criminality he learned a deeper cause than innate depravity. He is very sick, and, worse than that, he has got out of hand. He is too ethical. He has been too severely touched. And, as usual, he is unpractical. He is up in the air with all kinds of ethical delusions and plans for mission work among the cultured. He feels it is his bounden duty to resurrect the ancient spirit of the Church and to deliver its message to the masters. He is overwrought. Sooner or later he is going to break out, and then there’s going to be a smash-up. What form it will take I can’t even guess. He is a pure, exalted soul, but he is so unpractical. He’s beyond me. I can’t keep his feet on the earth. And through the air he is rushing on to his Gethsemane. And after this his crucifixion. Such high souls are made for crucifixion.”

“He is emotionally exhausted from the hellish journey I’ve put him through. I took him to see the homes of some of our factory workers. I showed him the broken lives discarded by the industrial machine, and he listened to their stories. I took him through the slums of San Francisco, and amidst the drunkenness, prostitution, and crime, he realized there’s a deeper cause than just inherent immorality. He’s really struggling now, and even worse, he’s lost control. He’s too principled. He’s been deeply affected. And, like usual, he’s impractical. He’s caught up in all sorts of ethical fantasies and plans for charitable work among the educated. He believes it’s his moral obligation to revive the true spirit of the Church and share its message with the powerful. He’s overwhelmed. Sooner or later, he’s going to explode, and then there’s going to be chaos. I can’t even predict what form it will take. He is a pure, elevated soul, but he’s just too impractical. He’s beyond my understanding. I can’t keep him grounded. And through the clouds, he’s rushing toward his moment of suffering. And after that, his downfall. Such elevated souls are destined for sacrifice.”

“And you?” I asked; and beneath my smile was the seriousness of the anxiety of love.

“And you?” I asked, and behind my smile was the weight of love's anxiety.

“Not I,” he laughed back. “I may be executed, or assassinated, but I shall never be crucified. I am planted too solidly and stolidly upon the earth.”

"Not me," he laughed back. "I might be executed or assassinated, but I will never be crucified. I'm too firmly and resolutely grounded here."

“But why should you bring about the crucifixion of the Bishop?” I asked. “You will not deny that you are the cause of it.”

“But why are you going to cause the Bishop's crucifixion?” I asked. “You can't deny that you are responsible for it.”

“Why should I leave one comfortable soul in comfort when there are millions in travail and misery?” he demanded back.

“Why should I let one person stay comfortable when there are millions suffering and in pain?” he replied.

“Then why did you advise father to accept the vacation?”

“Then why did you tell Dad to accept the vacation?”

“Because I am not a pure, exalted soul,” was the answer. “Because I am solid and stolid and selfish. Because I love you and, like Ruth of old, thy people are my people. As for the Bishop, he has no daughter. Besides, no matter how small the good, nevertheless his little inadequate wail will be productive of some good in the revolution, and every little bit counts.”

“Because I am not a pure, exalted soul,” was the answer. “Because I am solid and unchanging and selfish. Because I love you and, like Ruth of old, your people are my people. As for the Bishop, he has no daughter. Besides, no matter how small the good is, his little inadequate wail will still bring about some good in the revolution, and every little bit matters.”

I could not agree with Ernest. I knew well the noble nature of Bishop Morehouse, and I could not conceive that his voice raised for righteousness would be no more than a little inadequate wail. But I did not yet have the harsh facts of life at my fingers’ ends as Ernest had. He saw clearly the futility of the Bishop’s great soul, as coming events were soon to show as clearly to me.

I couldn't agree with Ernest. I knew well the noble character of Bishop Morehouse, and I couldn't imagine that his call for justice would be anything less than a strong statement. But I still didn't fully grasp the harsh realities of life like Ernest did. He clearly recognized the futility of the Bishop’s great spirit, as upcoming events would soon make clear to me as well.

It was shortly after this day that Ernest told me, as a good story, the offer he had received from the government, namely, an appointment as United States Commissioner of Labor. I was overjoyed. The salary was comparatively large, and would make safe our marriage. And then it surely was congenial work for Ernest, and, furthermore, my jealous pride in him made me hail the proffered appointment as a recognition of his abilities.

It was shortly after this day that Ernest shared with me, like a great story, the offer he had received from the government to become the United States Commissioner of Labor. I was thrilled. The salary was quite good, and it would secure our marriage. Plus, it was undoubtedly a fitting job for Ernest, and my jealous pride in him made me celebrate the offer as a recognition of his skills.

Then I noticed the twinkle in his eyes. He was laughing at me.

Then I saw the sparkle in his eyes. He was laughing at me.

“You are not going to . . . to decline?” I quavered.

"You aren't going to... decline?" I asked, trembling.

“It is a bribe,” he said. “Behind it is the fine hand of Wickson, and behind him the hands of greater men than he. It is an old trick, old as the class struggle is old—stealing the captains from the army of labor. Poor betrayed labor! If you but knew how many of its leaders have been bought out in similar ways in the past. It is cheaper, so much cheaper, to buy a general than to fight him and his whole army. There was—but I’ll not call any names. I’m bitter enough over it as it is. Dear heart, I am a captain of labor. I could not sell out. If for no other reason, the memory of my poor old father and the way he was worked to death would prevent.”

“It’s a bribe,” he said. “Wickson is behind it, and behind him are people with even more power. It’s an old trick, as old as the class struggle itself—stealing leaders from the labor movement. Poor betrayed labor! If only you knew how many of its leaders have been bought off like this in the past. It’s much cheaper to bribe a general than to fight him and his entire army. There was—but I won’t name names. I’m bitter enough about it already. Dear heart, I’m a leader of labor. I could never sell out. For no other reason, the memory of my poor old father and how he was worked to death would stop me.”

The tears were in his eyes, this great, strong hero of mine. He never could forgive the way his father had been malformed—the sordid lies and the petty thefts he had been compelled to, in order to put food in his children’s mouths.

The tears filled his eyes, this great, strong hero of mine. He could never forgive the way his father had been twisted— the disgusting lies and the petty thefts he had to commit to put food on the table for his kids.

“My father was a good man,” Ernest once said to me. “The soul of him was good, and yet it was twisted, and maimed, and blunted by the savagery of his life. He was made into a broken-down beast by his masters, the arch-beasts. He should be alive to-day, like your father. He had a strong constitution. But he was caught in the machine and worked to death—for profit. Think of it. For profit—his life blood transmuted into a wine-supper, or a jewelled gewgaw, or some similar sense-orgy of the parasitic and idle rich, his masters, the arch-beasts.”

“My father was a good man,” Ernest once told me. “He had a good soul, but it was twisted, damaged, and dulled by the brutality of his life. He became a broken-down beast because of his masters, the ultimate beasts. He should be alive today, like your father. He had a strong constitution. But he got trapped in the system and worked to death—for profit. Just think about it. For profit—his lifeblood turned into a lavish dinner, or a sparkling trinket, or some other indulgence for the parasitic and idle rich, his masters, the ultimate beasts.”

CHAPTER VII.
THE BISHOP’S VISION

“The Bishop is out of hand,” Ernest wrote me. “He is clear up in the air. Tonight he is going to begin putting to rights this very miserable world of ours. He is going to deliver his message. He has told me so, and I cannot dissuade him. To-night he is chairman of the I.P.H.,[1] and he will embody his message in his introductory remarks.

“The Bishop is out of control,” Ernest wrote to me. “He’s completely lost his grip. Tonight he’s going to start fixing this very miserable world of ours. He’s going to deliver his message. He told me so, and I can’t change his mind. Tonight he’s the chairman of the I.P.H.,[1] and he’ll include his message in his opening remarks.

[1] There is no clew to the name of the organization for which these initials stand.

[1] There’s no clue about the name of the organization that these initials represent.

“May I bring you to hear him? Of course, he is foredoomed to futility. It will break your heart—it will break his; but for you it will be an excellent object lesson. You know, dear heart, how proud I am because you love me. And because of that I want you to know my fullest value, I want to redeem, in your eyes, some small measure of my unworthiness. And so it is that my pride desires that you shall know my thinking is correct and right. My views are harsh; the futility of so noble a soul as the Bishop will show you the compulsion for such harshness. So come to-night. Sad though this night’s happening will be, I feel that it will but draw you more closely to me.”

“Can I take you to hear him? Of course, he's destined for failure. It will break your heart—it will break his; but for you, it will be a valuable lesson. You know, dear heart, how proud I am that you love me. And because of that, I want you to see my true worth; I want to redeem, in your eyes, some small part of my unworthiness. So my pride wants you to see that my perspective is correct and justified. My views are tough; the futility of a soul as noble as the Bishop will show you why I feel this way. So come tonight. Even though this evening's events will be sad, I believe it will only bring us closer together.”

The I.P.H. held its convention that night in San Francisco.[2] This convention had been called to consider public immorality and the remedy for it. Bishop Morehouse presided. He was very nervous as he sat on the platform, and I could see the high tension he was under. By his side were Bishop Dickinson; H. H. Jones, the head of the ethical department in the University of California; Mrs. W. W. Hurd, the great charity organizer; Philip Ward, the equally great philanthropist; and several lesser luminaries in the field of morality and charity. Bishop Morehouse arose and abruptly began:

The I.P.H. held its convention that night in San Francisco.[2] This convention had been called to discuss public immorality and ways to address it. Bishop Morehouse presided over the meeting. He seemed quite anxious as he sat on the platform, and I could see the significant stress he was under. Next to him were Bishop Dickinson; H. H. Jones, the head of the ethical department at the University of California; Mrs. W. W. Hurd, a prominent charity organizer; Philip Ward, a notable philanthropist; and several other figures in the fields of morality and charity. Bishop Morehouse stood up and started speaking abruptly:

[2] It took but a few minutes to cross by ferry from Berkeley to San Francisco. These, and the other bay cities, practically composed one community.

[2] It only took a few minutes to take the ferry from Berkeley to San Francisco. These cities, along with the others in the bay area, really made up one community.

“I was in my brougham, driving through the streets. It was night-time. Now and then I looked through the carriage windows, and suddenly my eyes seemed to be opened, and I saw things as they really are. At first I covered my eyes with my hands to shut out the awful sight, and then, in the darkness, the question came to me: What is to be done? What is to be done? A little later the question came to me in another way: What would the Master do? And with the question a great light seemed to fill the place, and I saw my duty sun-clear, as Saul saw his on the way to Damascus.

“I was in my carriage, driving through the streets at night. Occasionally, I glanced out the windows, and suddenly it felt like my eyes were opened, revealing things as they truly are. At first, I covered my eyes with my hands to block out the horrifying scene, and then, in the darkness, a thought struck me: What should I do? What should I do? A little later, the thought came to me in a different way: What would the Master do? And with that thought, a great light seemed to illuminate the space, and I clearly saw my duty, just as Saul did on his way to Damascus.”

“I stopped the carriage, got out, and, after a few minutes’ conversation, persuaded two of the public women to get into the brougham with me. If Jesus was right, then these two unfortunates were my sisters, and the only hope of their purification was in my affection and tenderness.

“I stopped the carriage, got out, and, after a few minutes of conversation, convinced two of the women to get into the brougham with me. If Jesus was right, then these two unfortunate women were my sisters, and the only hope for their redemption was in my love and kindness.”

“I live in one of the loveliest localities of San Francisco. The house in which I live cost a hundred thousand dollars, and its furnishings, books, and works of art cost as much more. The house is a mansion. No, it is a palace, wherein there are many servants. I never knew what palaces were good for. I had thought they were to live in. But now I know. I took the two women of the street to my palace, and they are going to stay with me. I hope to fill every room in my palace with such sisters as they.”

“I live in one of the nicest areas of San Francisco. The house I live in cost a hundred thousand dollars, and its furnishings, books, and artwork cost just as much again. The house is a mansion. No, it’s a palace, where there are many servants. I never understood what palaces were meant for. I thought they were just for living in. But now I know. I brought two women from the street to my palace, and they are going to stay with me. I hope to fill every room in my palace with sisters like them.”

The audience had been growing more and more restless and unsettled, and the faces of those that sat on the platform had been betraying greater and greater dismay and consternation. And at this point Bishop Dickinson arose, and with an expression of disgust on his face, fled from the platform and the hall. But Bishop Morehouse, oblivious to all, his eyes filled with his vision, continued:

The audience was becoming increasingly restless and uneasy, and the expressions of those on the platform showed more and more dismay and concern. At this moment, Bishop Dickinson stood up, his face reflecting disgust, and rushed off the platform and out of the hall. However, Bishop Morehouse, unaware of everything around him, with his eyes filled with vision, kept going:

“Oh, sisters and brothers, in this act of mine I find the solution of all my difficulties. I didn’t know what broughams were made for, but now I know. They are made to carry the weak, the sick, and the aged; they are made to show honor to those who have lost the sense even of shame.

“Oh, siblings, in this action of mine I discover the answer to all my challenges. I didn’t understand what broughams were for, but now I do. They are meant to transport the weak, the sick, and the elderly; they are meant to honor those who have even lost the sense of shame.”

“I did not know what palaces were made for, but now I have found a use for them. The palaces of the Church should be hospitals and nurseries for those who have fallen by the wayside and are perishing.”

“I didn’t understand what palaces were for, but now I see their purpose. The Church’s palaces should be hospitals and nurseries for those who have fallen by the wayside and are suffering.”

He made a long pause, plainly overcome by the thought that was in him, and nervous how best to express it.

He paused for a long time, clearly overwhelmed by the thought in his mind and unsure of how to express it.

“I am not fit, dear brethren, to tell you anything about morality. I have lived in shame and hypocrisies too long to be able to help others; but my action with those women, sisters of mine, shows me that the better way is easy to find. To those who believe in Jesus and his gospel there can be no other relation between man and man than the relation of affection. Love alone is stronger than sin—stronger than death. I therefore say to the rich among you that it is their duty to do what I have done and am doing. Let each one of you who is prosperous take into his house some thief and treat him as his brother, some unfortunate and treat her as his sister, and San Francisco will need no police force and no magistrates; the prisons will be turned into hospitals, and the criminal will disappear with his crime.

“I’m not the right person, dear friends, to discuss morality with you. I’ve lived in shame and hypocrisy for too long to be able to help others; however, my actions with those women, my sisters, show me that the better way is easy to find. For those who believe in Jesus and his gospel, there can be no greater relationship between people than that of love. Love is stronger than sin—stronger than death. Therefore, I urge the wealthy among you to do what I have done and continue to do. Let each of you who is well-off take in a thief and treat him as a brother, take in an unfortunate woman and treat her as a sister, and San Francisco will need no police force or magistrates; the prisons will become hospitals, and the criminal will vanish along with his crime.

“We must give ourselves and not our money alone. We must do as Christ did; that is the message of the Church today. We have wandered far from the Master’s teaching. We are consumed in our own flesh-pots. We have put mammon in the place of Christ. I have here a poem that tells the whole story. I should like to read it to you. It was written by an erring soul who yet saw clearly.[3] It must not be mistaken for an attack upon the Catholic Church. It is an attack upon all churches, upon the pomp and splendor of all churches that have wandered from the Master’s path and hedged themselves in from his lambs. Here it is:

“We need to give ourselves, not just our money. We must follow Christ's example; that's the message of the Church today. We've strayed far from the Master’s teachings. We're caught up in our own desires. We've placed money above Christ. I have a poem here that captures the entire story. I’d like to read it to you. It was written by a lost soul who still saw things clearly.[3] It shouldn't be seen as an attack on the Catholic Church, but rather a critique of all churches and the grandeur that have drifted away from the Master’s path and isolated themselves from his followers. Here it is:

“The silver trumpets rang across the Dome;
    The people knelt upon the ground with awe;
    And borne upon the necks of men I saw,
Like some great God, the Holy Lord of Rome.

“Priest-like, he wore a robe more white than foam,
    And, king-like, swathed himself in royal red,
    Three crowns of gold rose high upon his head;
In splendor and in light the Pope passed home.

“My heart stole back across wide wastes of years
    To One who wandered by a lonely sea;
And sought in vain for any place of rest:
‘Foxes have holes, and every bird its nest,
    I, only I, must wander wearily,
And bruise my feet, and drink wine salt with tears.’”

“The silver trumpets sounded throughout the Dome;
    The people knelt on the ground in reverence;
    And carried on the shoulders of men, I saw,
Like a great God, the Holy Lord of Rome.

“Like a priest, he wore a robe whiter than foam,
    And like a king, wrapped himself in royal red,
    Three gold crowns rose high on his head;
In splendor and light, the Pope made his way home.

“My heart traveled back across vast stretches of years
    To One who walked by a lonely sea;
And sought in vain for any place to rest:
‘Foxes have holes, and every bird has its nest,
    I, only I, must wander wearily,
And hurt my feet, and drink wine mixed with tears.’”

[3] Oscar Wilde, one of the lords of language of the nineteenth century of the Christian Era.

[3] Oscar Wilde, one of the masters of language of the nineteenth century of the Common Era.

The audience was agitated, but unresponsive. Yet Bishop Morehouse was not aware of it. He held steadily on his way.

The audience was restless, but silent. Yet Bishop Morehouse didn’t notice. He continued on his path with determination.

“And so I say to the rich among you, and to all the rich, that bitterly you oppress the Master’s lambs. You have hardened your hearts. You have closed your ears to the voices that are crying in the land—the voices of pain and sorrow that you will not hear but that some day will be heard. And so I say—”

“And so I say to the wealthy among you, and to all the rich, that you cruelly oppress the Master’s lambs. You have hardened your hearts. You have shut your ears to the cries in the land—the cries of pain and sorrow that you refuse to hear but that one day will be heard. And so I say—”

But at this point H. H. Jones and Philip Ward, who had already risen from their chairs, led the Bishop off the platform, while the audience sat breathless and shocked.

But at this point, H. H. Jones and Philip Ward, who had already gotten up from their chairs, took the Bishop off the stage, while the audience sat in stunned silence.

Ernest laughed harshly and savagely when he had gained the street. His laughter jarred upon me. My heart seemed ready to burst with suppressed tears.

Ernest laughed bitterly and wildly as soon as he hit the street. His laughter grated on me. My heart felt like it was about to explode with trapped tears.

“He has delivered his message,” Ernest cried. “The manhood and the deep-hidden, tender nature of their Bishop burst out, and his Christian audience, that loved him, concluded that he was crazy! Did you see them leading him so solicitously from the platform? There must have been laughter in hell at the spectacle.”

“He’s delivered his message,” Ernest exclaimed. “The strength and the deeply hidden, gentle side of their Bishop came out, and his Christian audience, who loved him, thought he was insane! Did you see how they were leading him off the stage so carefully? There must have been laughter in hell at that sight.”

“Nevertheless, it will make a great impression, what the Bishop did and said to-night,” I said.

"Still, it will leave a strong impression what the Bishop did and said tonight," I said.

“Think so?” Ernest queried mockingly.

"Really?" Ernest asked mockingly.

“It will make a sensation,” I asserted. “Didn’t you see the reporters scribbling like mad while he was speaking?”

“It’s going to create quite a buzz,” I insisted. “Didn’t you see the reporters frantically taking notes while he was talking?”

“Not a line of which will appear in to-morrow’s papers.”

“Not a single line of this will be in tomorrow's papers.”

“I can’t believe it,” I cried.

“I can't believe this,” I exclaimed.

“Just wait and see,” was the answer. “Not a line, not a thought that he uttered. The daily press? The daily suppressage!”

“Just wait and see,” was the response. “Not a word, not a thought that he expressed. The daily news? The daily cover-up!”

“But the reporters,” I objected. “I saw them.”

“But the reporters,” I said. “I saw them.”

“Not a word that he uttered will see print. You have forgotten the editors. They draw their salaries for the policy they maintain. Their policy is to print nothing that is a vital menace to the established. The Bishop’s utterance was a violent assault upon the established morality. It was heresy. They led him from the platform to prevent him from uttering more heresy. The newspapers will purge his heresy in the oblivion of silence. The press of the United States? It is a parasitic growth that battens on the capitalist class. Its function is to serve the established by moulding public opinion, and right well it serves it.

“Not a single word he said will be published. You've forgotten about the editors. They get paid to uphold the status quo. Their job is to avoid printing anything that threatens the establishment. The Bishop’s comments were a direct attack on accepted morality. It was heresy. They took him off the stage to stop him from saying more heresy. The newspapers will erase his heresy in the silence of neglect. The press in the United States? It's a parasitic entity that feeds off the capitalist class. Its role is to support the establishment by shaping public opinion, and it does that job very well.”

“Let me prophesy. To-morrow’s papers will merely mention that the Bishop is in poor health, that he has been working too hard, and that he broke down last night. The next mention, some days hence, will be to the effect that he is suffering from nervous prostration and has been given a vacation by his grateful flock. After that, one of two things will happen: either the Bishop will see the error of his way and return from his vacation a well man in whose eyes there are no more visions, or else he will persist in his madness, and then you may expect to see in the papers, couched pathetically and tenderly, the announcement of his insanity. After that he will be left to gibber his visions to padded walls.”

"Let me predict. Tomorrow's newspapers will just say that the Bishop is in bad health, that he has been working too hard, and that he broke down last night. A few days later, the next update will mention that he is suffering from nervous exhaustion and has been given a break by his thankful congregation. After that, one of two things will happen: either the Bishop will realize his mistakes and come back from his break as a healthy man with no more delusions, or he will continue in his madness, and then you can expect to see in the papers, written with sympathy and care, the news of his insanity. After that, he will be left to mumble his visions to padded walls."

“Now there you go too far!” I cried out.

“Now you’ve gone too far!” I exclaimed.

“In the eyes of society it will truly be insanity,” he replied. “What honest man, who is not insane, would take lost women and thieves into his house to dwell with him sisterly and brotherly? True, Christ died between two thieves, but that is another story. Insanity? The mental processes of the man with whom one disagrees, are always wrong. Therefore the mind of the man is wrong. Where is the line between wrong mind and insane mind? It is inconceivable that any sane man can radically disagree with one’s most sane conclusions.

“In the eyes of society, that would definitely be madness,” he replied. “What decent person, who isn't crazy, would invite lost women and thieves into their home to live with them as if they were family? It's true, Christ was crucified between two thieves, but that's another matter. Madness? The thought processes of someone you disagree with are always seen as flawed. So, the mind of that person is flawed. Where do you draw the line between a flawed mind and an insane mind? It's hard to believe that any sane person could fundamentally disagree with what you consider to be completely reasonable conclusions.”

“There is a good example of it in this evening’s paper. Mary McKenna lives south of Market Street. She is a poor but honest woman. She is also patriotic. But she has erroneous ideas concerning the American flag and the protection it is supposed to symbolize. And here’s what happened to her. Her husband had an accident and was laid up in hospital three months. In spite of taking in washing, she got behind in her rent. Yesterday they evicted her. But first, she hoisted an American flag, and from under its folds she announced that by virtue of its protection they could not turn her out on to the cold street. What was done? She was arrested and arraigned for insanity. To-day she was examined by the regular insanity experts. She was found insane. She was consigned to the Napa Asylum.”

“There’s a clear example of this in today’s paper. Mary McKenna lives south of Market Street. She’s a poor but honest woman. She’s also patriotic. But she has some misconceptions about the American flag and the protection it’s meant to represent. Here’s what happened to her. Her husband had an accident and was in the hospital for three months. Despite taking in laundry, she fell behind on her rent. Yesterday, they evicted her. But first, she raised an American flag and declared that, under its protection, they couldn’t throw her out onto the cold street. What happened next? She was arrested and charged with insanity. Today, she was evaluated by the usual mental health professionals. They found her insane. She was sent to the Napa Asylum.”

“But that is far-fetched,” I objected. “Suppose I should disagree with everybody about the literary style of a book. They wouldn’t send me to an asylum for that.”

“But that seems unlikely,” I argued. “What if I disagreed with everyone about the writing style of a book? They wouldn’t send me to a mental hospital for that.”

“Very true,” he replied. “But such divergence of opinion would constitute no menace to society. Therein lies the difference. The divergence of opinion on the parts of Mary McKenna and the Bishop do menace society. What if all the poor people should refuse to pay rent and shelter themselves under the American flag? Landlordism would go crumbling. The Bishop’s views are just as perilous to society. Ergo, to the asylum with him.”

“That's very true,” he replied. “But differing opinions like that wouldn’t threaten society. That’s the key difference. The conflicting views of Mary McKenna and the Bishop do pose a threat to society. Imagine if all the poor people stopped paying rent and took shelter under the American flag? Landlordism would collapse. The Bishop’s views are equally dangerous to society. So, he should end up in the asylum.”

But still I refused to believe.

But I still refused to believe.

“Wait and see,” Ernest said, and I waited.

“Wait and see,” Ernest said, and I waited.

Next morning I sent out for all the papers. So far Ernest was right. Not a word that Bishop Morehouse had uttered was in print. Mention was made in one or two of the papers that he had been overcome by his feelings. Yet the platitudes of the speakers that followed him were reported at length.

The next morning I ordered all the papers. So far, Ernest was right. Not a single word Bishop Morehouse had said appeared in print. A couple of papers mentioned that he had been overwhelmed by his emotions. However, the clichés from the speakers who followed him were reported in detail.

Several days later the brief announcement was made that he had gone away on a vacation to recover from the effects of overwork. So far so good, but there had been no hint of insanity, nor even of nervous collapse. Little did I dream the terrible road the Bishop was destined to travel—the Gethsemane and crucifixion that Ernest had pondered about.

Several days later, a short announcement was made that he had gone on a vacation to recover from working too much. So far, so good, but there was no mention of insanity or even a nervous breakdown. Little did I know the terrible journey the Bishop was meant to take—the Gethsemane and crucifixion that Ernest had thought about.

CHAPTER VIII.
THE MACHINE BREAKERS

It was just before Ernest ran for Congress, on the socialist ticket, that father gave what he privately called his “Profit and Loss” dinner. Ernest called it the dinner of the Machine Breakers. In point of fact, it was merely a dinner for business men—small business men, of course. I doubt if one of them was interested in any business the total capitalization of which exceeded a couple of hundred thousand dollars. They were truly representative middle-class business men.

It was just before Ernest ran for Congress on the socialist ticket that Dad held what he privately called his “Profit and Loss” dinner. Ernest referred to it as the dinner of the Machine Breakers. In reality, it was just a dinner for business people—small business people, of course. I doubt any of them were involved in any business with a total capitalization over a couple of hundred thousand dollars. They were truly representative of middle-class business people.

There was Owen, of Silverberg, Owen & Company—a large grocery firm with several branch stores. We bought our groceries from them. There were both partners of the big drug firm of Kowalt & Washburn, and Mr. Asmunsen, the owner of a large granite quarry in Contra Costa County. And there were many similar men, owners or part-owners in small factories, small businesses and small industries—small capitalists, in short.

There was Owen from Silverberg, Owen & Company—a big grocery business with multiple branch stores. We got our groceries from them. There were also the partners from the large drug company Kowalt & Washburn, and Mr. Asmunsen, who owned a big granite quarry in Contra Costa County. Plus, there were many similar guys, who were owners or partial owners of small factories, small businesses, and small industries—basically, small capitalists.

They were shrewd-faced, interesting men, and they talked with simplicity and clearness. Their unanimous complaint was against the corporations and trusts. Their creed was, “Bust the Trusts.” All oppression originated in the trusts, and one and all told the same tale of woe. They advocated government ownership of such trusts as the railroads and telegraphs, and excessive income taxes, graduated with ferocity, to destroy large accumulations. Likewise they advocated, as a cure for local ills, municipal ownership of such public utilities as water, gas, telephones, and street railways.

They were sharp-faced, intriguing men, and they spoke with clarity and straightforwardness. Their shared complaint was against the corporations and trusts. Their motto was, “Break the Trusts.” All oppression stemmed from these trusts, and each of them shared the same story of suffering. They supported government ownership of trusts like railroads and telegraphs, along with steep income taxes that increased significantly to eliminate large wealth accumulations. They also promoted, as a solution for local problems, municipal ownership of public utilities such as water, gas, telephones, and streetcars.

Especially interesting was Mr. Asmunsen’s narrative of his tribulations as a quarry owner. He confessed that he never made any profits out of his quarry, and this, in spite of the enormous volume of business that had been caused by the destruction of San Francisco by the big earthquake. For six years the rebuilding of San Francisco had been going on, and his business had quadrupled and octupled, and yet he was no better off.

Especially interesting was Mr. Asmunsen’s story about his struggles as a quarry owner. He admitted that he never made any profits from his quarry, despite the huge amount of business generated by the destruction of San Francisco from the big earthquake. For six years, the rebuilding of San Francisco had been happening, and his business had quadrupled and even octupled, yet he was still no better off.

“The railroad knows my business just a little bit better than I do,” he said. “It knows my operating expenses to a cent, and it knows the terms of my contracts. How it knows these things I can only guess. It must have spies in my employ, and it must have access to the parties to all my contracts. For look you, when I place a big contract, the terms of which favor me a goodly profit, the freight rate from my quarry to market is promptly raised. No explanation is made. The railroad gets my profit. Under such circumstances I have never succeeded in getting the railroad to reconsider its raise. On the other hand, when there have been accidents, increased expenses of operating, or contracts with less profitable terms, I have always succeeded in getting the railroad to lower its rate. What is the result? Large or small, the railroad always gets my profits.”

“The railroad knows my business just a little better than I do,” he said. “It knows my operating costs down to the last cent, and it knows the terms of my contracts. How it knows all this, I can only guess. It must have spies among my staff, and it must have access to everyone involved in my contracts. Because when I land a big contract that guarantees me a good profit, the freight rate from my quarry to market gets bumped up right away. No explanation is given. The railroad claims my profit. In those situations, I’ve never managed to get the railroad to reconsider its price increase. On the flip side, whenever there are accidents, rising operating costs, or contracts with less favorable terms, I’ve always been able to persuade the railroad to lower its rate. What’s the outcome? Whether large or small, the railroad always takes my profits.”

“What remains to you over and above,” Ernest interrupted to ask, “would roughly be the equivalent of your salary as a manager did the railroad own the quarry.”

“What’s left for you, on top of that,” Ernest interrupted to ask, “would be about the same as your salary as a manager if the railroad owned the quarry.”

“The very thing,” Mr. Asmunsen replied. “Only a short time ago I had my books gone through for the past ten years. I discovered that for those ten years my gain was just equivalent to a manager’s salary. The railroad might just as well have owned my quarry and hired me to run it.”

“The very thing,” Mr. Asmunsen replied. “Just a little while ago, I reviewed my books from the past ten years. I found that during those ten years, my earnings were basically equal to a manager’s salary. The railroad could have just as easily owned my quarry and paid me to manage it.”

“But with this difference,” Ernest laughed; “the railroad would have had to assume all the risk which you so obligingly assumed for it.”

“But with this difference,” Ernest laughed; “the railroad would have had to take on all the risk that you so kindly took on for it.”

“Very true,” Mr. Asmunsen answered sadly.

“Very true,” Mr. Asmunsen replied with a heavy heart.

Having let them have their say, Ernest began asking questions right and left. He began with Mr. Owen.

Having given them a chance to speak, Ernest started asking questions all around. He began with Mr. Owen.

“You started a branch store here in Berkeley about six months ago?”

“You opened a branch store here in Berkeley about six months ago?”

“Yes,” Mr. Owen answered.

“Yes,” Mr. Owen replied.

“And since then I’ve noticed that three little corner groceries have gone out of business. Was your branch store the cause of it?”

“And since then I’ve noticed that three small corner grocery stores have closed down. Was your branch store the reason for that?”

Mr. Owen affirmed with a complacent smile. “They had no chance against us.”

Mr. Owen said with a satisfied smile, “They didn’t stand a chance against us.”

“Why not?”

"Why not?"

“We had greater capital. With a large business there is always less waste and greater efficiency.”

“We had more capital. In a big business, there’s always less waste and more efficiency.”

“And your branch store absorbed the profits of the three small ones. I see. But tell me, what became of the owners of the three stores?”

“And your branch store took in the profits from the three smaller ones. I understand. But tell me, what happened to the owners of those three stores?”

“One is driving a delivery wagon for us. I don’t know what happened to the other two.”

"One person is driving a delivery wagon for us. I’m not sure what happened to the other two."

Ernest turned abruptly on Mr. Kowalt.

Ernest suddenly turned to Mr. Kowalt.

“You sell a great deal at cut-rates.[1] What have become of the owners of the small drug stores that you forced to the wall?”

“You sell a lot at rock-bottom prices.[1] What happened to the owners of the small drug stores that you pushed out of business?”

[1] A lowering of selling price to cost, and even to less than cost. Thus, a large company could sell at a loss for a longer period than a small company, and so drive the small company out of business. A common device of competition.

[1] A decrease in selling price to cost, or even below cost. This means a big company can sell at a loss for a longer time than a small company can, which can push the small company out of business. It's a common tactic in competition.

“One of them, Mr. Haasfurther, has charge now of our prescription department,” was the answer.

“One of them, Mr. Haasfurther, is now in charge of our prescription department,” was the answer.

“And you absorbed the profits they had been making?”

“And you took the profits they had been making?”

“Surely. That is what we are in business for.”

“Of course. That's what we're in this for.”

“And you?” Ernest said suddenly to Mr. Asmunsen. “You are disgusted because the railroad has absorbed your profits?”

“And you?” Ernest said suddenly to Mr. Asmunsen. “Are you upset because the railroad has taken away your profits?”

Mr. Asmunsen nodded.

Mr. Asmunsen nodded.

“What you want is to make profits yourself?”

“What you want is to make profits for yourself?”

Again Mr. Asmunsen nodded.

Mr. Asmunsen nodded again.

“Out of others?”

"Out of everyone?"

There was no answer.

No answer.

“Out of others?” Ernest insisted.

“Excluded from the others?” Ernest insisted.

“That is the way profits are made,” Mr. Asmunsen replied curtly.

“That’s how profits are made,” Mr. Asmunsen responded sharply.

“Then the business game is to make profits out of others, and to prevent others from making profits out of you. That’s it, isn’t it?”

“Then the business game is to profit from others while making sure others don’t profit from you. That’s it, right?”

Ernest had to repeat his question before Mr. Asmunsen gave an answer, and then he said:

Ernest had to ask his question again before Mr. Asmunsen responded, and then he said:

“Yes, that’s it, except that we do not object to the others making profits so long as they are not extortionate.”

“Yes, that’s it, but we don’t mind if others make profits as long as they’re not outrageous.”

“By extortionate you mean large; yet you do not object to making large profits yourself? . . . Surely not?”

“By extortionate, you mean big; yet you don’t mind making big profits yourself? . . . Surely not?”

And Mr. Asmunsen amiably confessed to the weakness. There was one other man who was quizzed by Ernest at this juncture, a Mr. Calvin, who had once been a great dairy-owner.

And Mr. Asmunsen kindly admitted to the weakness. There was another man who was questioned by Ernest at this point, a Mr. Calvin, who had once been a successful dairy owner.

“Some time ago you were fighting the Milk Trust,” Ernest said to him; “and now you are in Grange politics.[2] How did it happen?”

“Some time ago you were battling the Milk Trust,” Ernest said to him; “and now you’re involved in Grange politics.[2] How did that happen?”

[2] Many efforts were made during this period to organize the perishing farmer class into a political party, the aim of which was to destroy the trusts and corporations by drastic legislation. All such attempts ended in failure.

[2] Many attempts were made during this time to rally struggling farmers into a political party, with the goal of dismantling trusts and corporations through aggressive legislation. All these efforts ended up failing.

“Oh, I haven’t quit the fight,” Mr. Calvin answered, and he looked belligerent enough. “I’m fighting the Trust on the only field where it is possible to fight—the political field. Let me show you. A few years ago we dairymen had everything our own way.”

“Oh, I haven’t given up the fight,” Mr. Calvin replied, looking quite aggressive. “I’m battling the Trust on the only front where it’s possible to fight—the political front. Let me explain. A few years back, we dairymen had everything going our way.”

“But you competed among yourselves?” Ernest interrupted.

“But you were competing against each other?” Ernest interrupted.

“Yes, that was what kept the profits down. We did try to organize, but independent dairymen always broke through us. Then came the Milk Trust.”

“Yes, that was what held the profits back. We did try to organize, but independent dairymen always undermined us. Then the Milk Trust came along.”

“Financed by surplus capital from Standard Oil,”[3] Ernest said.

“Financed by extra funds from Standard Oil,”[3] Ernest said.

[3] The first successful great trust—almost a generation in advance of the rest.

[3] The first successful major trust—nearly a generation ahead of the others.

“Yes,” Mr. Calvin acknowledged. “But we did not know it at the time. Its agents approached us with a club. “Come in and be fat,” was their proposition, “or stay out and starve.” Most of us came in. Those that didn’t, starved. Oh, it paid us . . . at first. Milk was raised a cent a quart. One-quarter of this cent came to us. Three-quarters of it went to the Trust. Then milk was raised another cent, only we didn’t get any of that cent. Our complaints were useless. The Trust was in control. We discovered that we were pawns. Finally, the additional quarter of a cent was denied us. Then the Trust began to squeeze us out. What could we do? We were squeezed out. There were no dairymen, only a Milk Trust.”

“Yes,” Mr. Calvin acknowledged. “But we didn’t realize it at the time. Their agents approached us with a threat. ‘Come in and thrive,’ was their offer, ‘or stay out and suffer.’ Most of us joined in. Those who didn’t, suffered. Oh, it benefited us... at first. Milk prices went up a cent per quart. We got a quarter of that cent. Three-quarters went to the Trust. Then milk increased another cent, but we didn’t see any of that cent. Our complaints were pointless. The Trust had the power. We found out we were just pawns. Eventually, that last quarter of a cent was taken away from us. Then the Trust started to push us out. What could we do? We were pushed out. There were no local dairymen, just a Milk Trust.”

“But with milk two cents higher, I should think you could have competed,” Ernest suggested slyly.

“But with milk two cents more expensive, I would think you could have competed,” Ernest remarked with a smirk.

“So we thought. We tried it.” Mr. Calvin paused a moment. “It broke us. The Trust could put milk upon the market more cheaply than we. It could sell still at a slight profit when we were selling at actual loss. I dropped fifty thousand dollars in that venture. Most of us went bankrupt.[4] The dairymen were wiped out of existence.”

“So that’s what we thought. We gave it a shot.” Mr. Calvin paused for a moment. “It crushed us. The Trust could sell milk on the market for less than we could. It could still make a small profit while we were losing money. I lost fifty thousand dollars on that venture. Most of us went bankrupt. [4] The dairymen were completely wiped out.”

[4] Bankruptcy—a peculiar institution that enabled an individual, who had failed in competitive industry, to forego paying his debts. The effect was to ameliorate the too savage conditions of the fang-and-claw social struggle.

[4] Bankruptcy—a strange system that allowed someone who had failed in business to avoid repaying their debts. The result was to soften the harsh realities of the ruthless social competition.

“So the Trust took your profits away from you,” Ernest said, “and you’ve gone into politics in order to legislate the Trust out of existence and get the profits back?”

“So the Trust took your profits away from you,” Ernest said, “and now you’ve entered politics to get rid of the Trust and reclaim your profits?”

Mr. Calvin’s face lighted up. “That is precisely what I say in my speeches to the farmers. That’s our whole idea in a nutshell.”

Mr. Calvin’s face lit up. “That’s exactly what I say in my speeches to the farmers. That’s our whole idea in a nutshell.”

“And yet the Trust produces milk more cheaply than could the independent dairymen?” Ernest queried.

“And yet the Trust produces milk more cheaply than independent dairymen could?” Ernest asked.

“Why shouldn’t it, with the splendid organization and new machinery its large capital makes possible?”

“Why wouldn’t it, with the great organization and new equipment its significant capital allows?”

“There is no discussion,” Ernest answered. “It certainly should, and, furthermore, it does.”

“There’s no discussion,” Ernest replied. “It definitely should, and, besides, it does.”

Mr. Calvin here launched out into a political speech in exposition of his views. He was warmly followed by a number of the others, and the cry of all was to destroy the trusts.

Mr. Calvin started giving a political speech to explain his views. He was enthusiastically supported by several others, and everyone was calling for the destruction of the trusts.

“Poor simple folk,” Ernest said to me in an undertone. “They see clearly as far as they see, but they see only to the ends of their noses.”

“Poor simple folks,” Ernest said to me quietly. “They see clearly as far as they can, but they only see what's right in front of them.”

A little later he got the floor again, and in his characteristic way controlled it for the rest of the evening.

A little later, he took control of the floor again and, in his usual manner, held it for the rest of the evening.

“I have listened carefully to all of you,” he began, “and I see plainly that you play the business game in the orthodox fashion. Life sums itself up to you in profits. You have a firm and abiding belief that you were created for the sole purpose of making profits. Only there is a hitch. In the midst of your own profit-making along comes the trust and takes your profits away from you. This is a dilemma that interferes somehow with the aim of creation, and the only way out, as it seems to you, is to destroy that which takes from you your profits.

“I’ve paid close attention to everything you’ve said,” he began, “and it’s clear to me that you approach business in a traditional way. To you, life is all about profits. You truly believe that your main purpose is to make money. But there’s a problem. While you’re trying to make your profits, along comes the trust and takes that money away from you. This creates a dilemma that somehow conflicts with your purpose, and the only solution you see is to eliminate whatever is taking your profits.”

“I have listened carefully, and there is only one name that will epitomize you. I shall call you that name. You are machine-breakers. Do you know what a machine-breaker is? Let me tell you. In the eighteenth century, in England, men and women wove cloth on hand-looms in their own cottages. It was a slow, clumsy, and costly way of weaving cloth, this cottage system of manufacture. Along came the steam-engine and labor-saving machinery. A thousand looms assembled in a large factory, and driven by a central engine wove cloth vastly more cheaply than could the cottage weavers on their hand-looms. Here in the factory was combination, and before it competition faded away. The men and women who had worked the hand-looms for themselves now went into the factories and worked the machine-looms, not for themselves, but for the capitalist owners. Furthermore, little children went to work on the machine-looms, at lower wages, and displaced the men. This made hard times for the men. Their standard of living fell. They starved. And they said it was all the fault of the machines. Therefore, they proceeded to break the machines. They did not succeed, and they were very stupid.

“I’ve listened carefully, and there’s only one name that defines you. I’m going to call you that name. You are machine-breakers. Do you know what a machine-breaker is? Let me explain. In the 18th century, in England, men and women wove cloth on hand-looms in their own homes. It was a slow, awkward, and expensive way to make cloth; this cottage system of production. Then came the steam engine and labor-saving machines. A thousand looms were brought together in a large factory, and powered by a central engine, they wove cloth much more cheaply than the cottage weavers on their hand-looms. In the factory, there was cooperation, and competition faded away. The men and women who once worked the hand-looms for themselves now worked the machine-looms, not for themselves, but for the capitalist owners. Additionally, young children started working on the machine-looms for lower wages, taking jobs away from men. This created tough times for the men. Their standard of living dropped. They starved. They blamed it all on the machines. So, they tried to break the machines. They didn’t succeed, and they were quite foolish.”

“Yet you have not learned their lesson. Here are you, a century and a half later, trying to break machines. By your own confession the trust machines do the work more efficiently and more cheaply than you can. That is why you cannot compete with them. And yet you would break those machines. You are even more stupid than the stupid workmen of England. And while you maunder about restoring competition, the trusts go on destroying you.

“Yet you haven’t learned their lesson. Here you are, a century and a half later, trying to break machines. By your own admission, the trust machines work more efficiently and more cheaply than you can. That’s why you can’t compete with them. And still, you want to break those machines. You’re even more foolish than the ignorant workers of England. And while you ramble on about restoring competition, the trusts keep destroying you."

“One and all you tell the same story,—the passing away of competition and the coming on of combination. You, Mr. Owen, destroyed competition here in Berkeley when your branch store drove the three small groceries out of business. Your combination was more effective. Yet you feel the pressure of other combinations on you, the trust combinations, and you cry out. It is because you are not a trust. If you were a grocery trust for the whole United States, you would be singing another song. And the song would be, ‘Blessed are the trusts.’ And yet again, not only is your small combination not a trust, but you are aware yourself of its lack of strength. You are beginning to divine your own end. You feel yourself and your branch stores a pawn in the game. You see the powerful interests rising and growing more powerful day by day; you feel their mailed hands descending upon your profits and taking a pinch here and a pinch there—the railroad trust, the oil trust, the steel trust, the coal trust; and you know that in the end they will destroy you, take away from you the last per cent of your little profits.

“You all tell the same story—the end of competition and the rise of consolidation. You, Mr. Owen, put an end to competition here in Berkeley when your branch store pushed the three small grocery stores out of business. Your combination was more effective. Yet you feel the pressure from other combinations—the trust combinations—and you complain. It’s because you’re not a trust. If you were a grocery trust for the entire United States, you’d be singing a different tune. And that song would be, ‘Blessed are the trusts.’ Furthermore, not only is your small combination not a trust, but you also recognize its lack of strength. You're starting to see your own downfall. You feel like you and your branch stores are just pawns in a larger game. You see the powerful interests emerging and becoming more powerful every day; you sense their grip tightening on your profits, taking a bit here and a bit there—the railroad trust, the oil trust, the steel trust, the coal trust; and you know that in the end, they will destroy you, taking away the last percentage of your small profits.”

“You, sir, are a poor gamester. When you squeezed out the three small groceries here in Berkeley by virtue of your superior combination, you swelled out your chest, talked about efficiency and enterprise, and sent your wife to Europe on the profits you had gained by eating up the three small groceries. It is dog eat dog, and you ate them up. But, on the other hand, you are being eaten up in turn by the bigger dogs, wherefore you squeal. And what I say to you is true of all of you at this table. You are all squealing. You are all playing the losing game, and you are all squealing about it.

“You, sir, are a terrible gambler. When you squeezed out the three small grocery stores here in Berkeley because of your supposed better strategy, you puffed up your chest, bragged about efficiency and ambition, and sent your wife to Europe with the profits you made by taking those three grocery stores down. It’s a dog-eat-dog world, and you did the eating. But now, you’re getting eaten by the bigger players, which is why you’re whining. And what I’m saying to you applies to everyone at this table. You’re all whining. You’re all playing a losing game, and you’re all complaining about it.

“But when you squeal you don’t state the situation flatly, as I have stated it. You don’t say that you like to squeeze profits out of others, and that you are making all the row because others are squeezing your profits out of you. No, you are too cunning for that. You say something else. You make small-capitalist political speeches such as Mr. Calvin made. What did he say? Here are a few of his phrases I caught: ‘Our original principles are all right,’ ‘What this country requires is a return to fundamental American methods—free opportunity for all,’ ‘The spirit of liberty in which this nation was born,’ ‘Let us return to the principles of our forefathers.’

“But when you complain, you don’t lay it out as clearly as I have. You don’t admit that you like to profit off others and that you’re causing a fuss because others are cutting into your profits. No, you’re too smart for that. You say something different. You give small-business political speeches like Mr. Calvin did. What did he say? Here are a few of his phrases I caught: ‘Our original principles are all right,’ ‘What this country needs is a return to fundamental American methods—free opportunity for everyone,’ ‘The spirit of liberty in which this nation was born,’ ‘Let’s go back to the principles of our forefathers.’

“When he says ‘free opportunity for all,’ he means free opportunity to squeeze profits, which freedom of opportunity is now denied him by the great trusts. And the absurd thing about it is that you have repeated these phrases so often that you believe them. You want opportunity to plunder your fellow-men in your own small way, but you hypnotize yourselves into thinking you want freedom. You are piggish and acquisitive, but the magic of your phrases leads you to believe that you are patriotic. Your desire for profits, which is sheer selfishness, you metamorphose into altruistic solicitude for suffering humanity. Come on now, right here amongst ourselves, and be honest for once. Look the matter in the face and state it in direct terms.”

“When he says ‘free opportunity for all,’ he means free chance to make profits, which that freedom is now blocked for him by the big corporations. The ridiculous part is that you’ve repeated these phrases so often that you actually believe them. You want the chance to take advantage of others in your own small way, but you convince yourselves that you want freedom. You’re greedy and selfish, but the power of your words makes you think you’re being patriotic. Your desire for profits, which is pure selfishness, you transform into a caring concern for suffering humanity. Let’s be real for a moment, just among us, and be honest. Look at the situation directly and say it plainly.”

There were flushed and angry faces at the table, and withal a measure of awe. They were a little frightened at this smooth-faced young fellow, and the swing and smash of his words, and his dreadful trait of calling a spade a spade. Mr. Calvin promptly replied.

There were flushed and angry faces at the table, mixed with a bit of awe. They were slightly intimidated by this smooth-faced young guy, the forcefulness of his words, and his boldness in being straightforward. Mr. Calvin promptly replied.

“And why not?” he demanded. “Why can we not return to the ways of our fathers when this republic was founded? You have spoken much truth, Mr. Everhard, unpalatable though it has been. But here amongst ourselves let us speak out. Let us throw off all disguise and accept the truth as Mr. Everhard has flatly stated it. It is true that we smaller capitalists are after profits, and that the trusts are taking our profits away from us. It is true that we want to destroy the trusts in order that our profits may remain to us. And why can we not do it? Why not? I say, why not?”

“And why not?” he demanded. “Why can’t we go back to the ways of our forefathers when this republic was founded? You’ve spoken a lot of truth, Mr. Everhard, even if it’s been hard to hear. But here in private, let’s speak honestly. Let’s shed all pretense and accept the truth as Mr. Everhard has boldly put it. It’s true that we smaller capitalists are after profits, and that the trusts are taking those profits away from us. It’s true that we want to dismantle the trusts so our profits can stay with us. And why can’t we do that? Why not? I ask, why not?”

“Ah, now we come to the gist of the matter,” Ernest said with a pleased expression. “I’ll try to tell you why not, though the telling will be rather hard. You see, you fellows have studied business, in a small way, but you have not studied social evolution at all. You are in the midst of a transition stage now in economic evolution, but you do not understand it, and that’s what causes all the confusion. Why cannot you return? Because you can’t. You can no more make water run up hill than can you cause the tide of economic evolution to flow back in its channel along the way it came. Joshua made the sun stand still upon Gibeon, but you would outdo Joshua. You would make the sun go backward in the sky. You would have time retrace its steps from noon to morning.

“Ah, now we get to the main point,” Ernest said with a satisfied look. “I’ll do my best to explain why not, though it won’t be easy. You see, you guys have studied business, in a limited way, but you haven’t looked into social evolution at all. Right now, you’re in the middle of a transitional phase in economic evolution, but you don’t get it, and that’s what's causing all the confusion. Why can’t you go back? Because you can’t. You can no more make water flow uphill than you can reverse the tide of economic evolution. Joshua made the sun stand still at Gibeon, but you would surpass Joshua. You’d want to make the sun move backwards in the sky. You’d have time go back from noon to morning.

“In the face of labor-saving machinery, of organized production, of the increased efficiency of combination, you would set the economic sun back a whole generation or so to the time when there were no great capitalists, no great machinery, no railroads—a time when a host of little capitalists warred with each other in economic anarchy, and when production was primitive, wasteful, unorganized, and costly. Believe me, Joshua’s task was easier, and he had Jehovah to help him. But God has forsaken you small capitalists. The sun of the small capitalists is setting. It will never rise again. Nor is it in your power even to make it stand still. You are perishing, and you are doomed to perish utterly from the face of society.

“In the face of labor-saving machines, organized production, and the increased efficiency of collaboration, you would push the economy back a generation or so to a time without big capitalists, no advanced machinery, and no railroads—a time when a lot of small business owners fought against each other in economic chaos, and when production was basic, wasteful, uncoordinated, and expensive. Trust me, Joshua’s job was easier, and he had God on his side. But God has abandoned you small business owners. The era of the small capitalists is ending. It will never rise again. Nor can you make it stay put. You are fading away, and you are destined to disappear completely from society.

“This is the fiat of evolution. It is the word of God. Combination is stronger than competition. Primitive man was a puny creature hiding in the crevices of the rocks. He combined and made war upon his carnivorous enemies. They were competitive beasts. Primitive man was a combinative beast, and because of it he rose to primacy over all the animals. And man has been achieving greater and greater combinations ever since. It is combination versus competition, a thousand centuries long struggle, in which competition has always been worsted. Whoso enlists on the side of competition perishes.”

“This is the law of evolution. It is the word of God. Teamwork is stronger than competition. Early humans were weak beings hiding in the cracks of rocks. They came together and fought against their meat-eating enemies. Those were competitive animals. Early man was a collaborative being, and because of that, he became dominant over all other animals. And humanity has been forming greater and greater alliances ever since. It’s cooperation versus competition, a struggle that has lasted a thousand centuries, in which competition has always lost. Anyone who sides with competition will fail.”

“But the trusts themselves arose out of competition,” Mr. Calvin interrupted.

“But the trusts themselves came from competition,” Mr. Calvin interrupted.

“Very true,” Ernest answered. “And the trusts themselves destroyed competition. That, by your own word, is why you are no longer in the dairy business.”

“Very true,” Ernest replied. “And the trusts themselves wiped out competition. That, as you said, is why you’re no longer in the dairy business.”

The first laughter of the evening went around the table, and even Mr. Calvin joined in the laugh against himself.

The first laugh of the evening spread around the table, and even Mr. Calvin laughed at his own expense.

“And now, while we are on the trusts,” Ernest went on, “let us settle a few things. I shall make certain statements, and if you disagree with them, speak up. Silence will mean agreement. Is it not true that a machine-loom will weave more cloth and weave more cheaply than a hand-loom?” He paused, but nobody spoke up. “Is it not then highly irrational to break the machine-loom and go back to the clumsy and more costly hand-loom method of weaving?” Heads nodded in acquiescence. “Is it not true that that known as a trust produces more efficiently and cheaply than can a thousand competing small concerns?” Still no one objected. “Then is it not irrational to destroy that cheap and efficient combination?”

“And now, since we’re talking about trusts,” Ernest continued, “let’s clarify a few things. I’ll make some statements, and if you disagree with any of them, speak up. If you stay silent, I’ll take it as agreement. Isn’t it true that a machine loom can produce more cloth and do it more cheaply than a hand loom?” He paused, but nobody said anything. “Isn’t it then completely unreasonable to destroy the machine loom and revert to the clumsy and more expensive hand loom method?” Heads nodded in agreement. “Isn’t it true that what we call a trust creates goods more efficiently and cheaply than a thousand competing small businesses?” Still, no one objected. “Then isn’t it irrational to eliminate that cost-effective and efficient operation?”

No one answered for a long time. Then Mr. Kowalt spoke.

No one replied for a long time. Then Mr. Kowalt spoke up.

“What are we to do, then?” he demanded. “To destroy the trusts is the only way we can see to escape their domination.”

“What are we supposed to do, then?” he asked. “The only way we can think of to escape their control is to break up the trusts.”

Ernest was all fire and aliveness on the instant.

Ernest was full of energy and life in that moment.

“I’ll show you another way!” he cried. “Let us not destroy those wonderful machines that produce efficiently and cheaply. Let us control them. Let us profit by their efficiency and cheapness. Let us run them for ourselves. Let us oust the present owners of the wonderful machines, and let us own the wonderful machines ourselves. That, gentlemen, is socialism, a greater combination than the trusts, a greater economic and social combination than any that has as yet appeared on the planet. It is in line with evolution. We meet combination with greater combination. It is the winning side. Come on over with us socialists and play on the winning side.”

“I’ll show you another way!” he shouted. “Let’s not destroy those amazing machines that work efficiently and affordably. Let’s take control of them. Let’s benefit from their efficiency and low cost. Let’s operate them for ourselves. Let’s replace the current owners of these amazing machines and own them ourselves. That, gentlemen, is socialism—a greater union than the trusts, a more significant economic and social structure than any that has appeared on this planet so far. It aligns with evolution. We counter one combination with an even bigger combination. It’s the winning side. Come join us socialists and be on the winning side.”

Here arose dissent. There was a shaking of heads, and mutterings arose.

Here came disagreement. People shook their heads, and murmurs started.

“All right, then, you prefer to be anachronisms,” Ernest laughed. “You prefer to play atavistic rôles. You are doomed to perish as all atavisms perish. Have you ever asked what will happen to you when greater combinations than even the present trusts arise? Have you ever considered where you will stand when the great trusts themselves combine into the combination of combinations—into the social, economic, and political trust?”

“All right, then, you choose to be outdated,” Ernest laughed. “You like to take on primitive roles. You're destined to disappear just like all outdated things do. Have you ever thought about what will happen to you when even bigger groups than the current trusts emerge? Have you ever considered where you'll be when the big trusts themselves come together to form the ultimate combination—the social, economic, and political trust?”

He turned abruptly and irrelevantly upon Mr. Calvin.

He turned suddenly and inappropriately towards Mr. Calvin.

“Tell me,” Ernest said, “if this is not true. You are compelled to form a new political party because the old parties are in the hands of the trusts. The chief obstacle to your Grange propaganda is the trusts. Behind every obstacle you encounter, every blow that smites you, every defeat that you receive, is the hand of the trusts. Is this not so? Tell me.”

“Tell me,” Ernest said, “if this isn’t true. You have to create a new political party because the old ones are controlled by the trusts. The biggest barrier to your Grange efforts is the trusts. Behind every challenge you face, every hit you take, every loss you suffer, is the influence of the trusts. Isn’t that right? Tell me.”

Mr. Calvin sat in uncomfortable silence.

Mr. Calvin sat in awkward silence.

“Go ahead,” Ernest encouraged.

"Go for it," Ernest encouraged.

“It is true,” Mr. Calvin confessed. “We captured the state legislature of Oregon and put through splendid protective legislation, and it was vetoed by the governor, who was a creature of the trusts. We elected a governor of Colorado, and the legislature refused to permit him to take office. Twice we have passed a national income tax, and each time the supreme court smashed it as unconstitutional. The courts are in the hands of the trusts. We, the people, do not pay our judges sufficiently. But there will come a time—”

“It’s true,” Mr. Calvin admitted. “We took control of the Oregon state legislature and pushed through some great protective laws, but the governor, who was a puppet of the trusts, vetoed them. We elected a governor in Colorado, but the legislature wouldn’t let him take office. Twice, we passed a national income tax, and both times the Supreme Court deemed it unconstitutional. The courts are controlled by the trusts. We, the people, don’t pay our judges enough. But a time will come—”

“When the combination of the trusts will control all legislation, when the combination of the trusts will itself be the government,” Ernest interrupted.

“When the unions of the trusts will control all laws, when the unions of the trusts will be the government itself,” Ernest interrupted.

“Never! never!” were the cries that arose. Everybody was excited and belligerent.

“Never! Never!” were the shouts that rang out. Everyone was fired up and confrontational.

“Tell me,” Ernest demanded, “what will you do when such a time comes?”

“Tell me,” Ernest asked, “what will you do when that time comes?”

“We will rise in our strength!” Mr. Asmunsen cried, and many voices backed his decision.

“We will rise in our strength!” Mr. Asmunsen shouted, and many voices supported his decision.

“That will be civil war,” Ernest warned them.

"That will lead to civil war," Ernest warned them.

“So be it, civil war,” was Mr. Asmunsen’s answer, with the cries of all the men at the table behind him. “We have not forgotten the deeds of our forefathers. For our liberties we are ready to fight and die.”

“Then let it be civil war,” Mr. Asmunsen replied, echoed by the shouts of all the men at the table behind him. “We haven’t forgotten the actions of our ancestors. We are ready to fight and die for our freedoms.”

Ernest smiled.

Ernest grinned.

“Do not forget,” he said, “that we had tacitly agreed that liberty in your case, gentlemen, means liberty to squeeze profits out of others.”

“Don’t forget,” he said, “that we quietly agreed that freedom for you, gentlemen, means the freedom to profit off of others.”

The table was angry, now, fighting angry; but Ernest controlled the tumult and made himself heard.

The table was furious, now, raging with anger; but Ernest managed to calm the chaos and made himself heard.

“One more question. When you rise in your strength, remember, the reason for your rising will be that the government is in the hands of the trusts. Therefore, against your strength the government will turn the regular army, the navy, the militia, the police—in short, the whole organized war machinery of the United States. Where will your strength be then?”

“One more question. When you rise in your power, remember that the reason you're rising will be that the government is controlled by the trusts. So, against your strength, the government will unleash the regular army, the navy, the militia, and the police—in short, the entire organized military machine of the United States. Where will your strength be then?”

Dismay sat on their faces, and before they could recover, Ernest struck again.

Dismay was written all over their faces, and before they could bounce back, Ernest hit again.

“Do you remember, not so long ago, when our regular army was only fifty thousand? Year by year it has been increased until to-day it is three hundred thousand.”

“Do you remember, not too long ago, when our regular army was just fifty thousand? Year after year it has grown until today it is three hundred thousand.”

Again he struck.

He struck again.

“Nor is that all. While you diligently pursued that favorite phantom of yours, called profits, and moralized about that favorite fetich of yours, called competition, even greater and more direful things have been accomplished by combination. There is the militia.”

“That's not all. While you tirelessly chased that elusive dream of yours, called profits, and lectured about that preferred obsession of yours, called competition, even bigger and more serious things have been achieved through collaboration. There is the militia.”

“It is our strength!” cried Mr. Kowalt. “With it we would repel the invasion of the regular army.”

“It’s our strength!” shouted Mr. Kowalt. “With it, we can push back the invasion of the regular army.”

“You would go into the militia yourself,” was Ernest’s retort, “and be sent to Maine, or Florida, or the Philippines, or anywhere else, to drown in blood your own comrades civil-warring for their liberties. While from Kansas, or Wisconsin, or any other state, your own comrades would go into the militia and come here to California to drown in blood your own civil-warring.”

“You would join the militia yourself,” Ernest shot back, “and get sent to Maine, Florida, the Philippines, or anywhere else, to spill blood against your own comrades fighting for their freedom. Meanwhile, comrades from Kansas, Wisconsin, or any other state would join the militia and come here to California to spill blood against your own people.”

Now they were really shocked, and they sat wordless, until Mr. Owen murmured:

Now they were truly shocked, and they sat in silence until Mr. Owen softly said:

“We would not go into the militia. That would settle it. We would not be so foolish.”

“We won’t join the militia. That’s final. We’re not that naive.”

Ernest laughed outright.

Ernest burst out laughing.

“You do not understand the combination that has been effected. You could not help yourself. You would be drafted into the militia.”

“You don’t understand the situation that has come about. You couldn’t do anything to change it. You would be conscripted into the military.”

“There is such a thing as civil law,” Mr. Owen insisted.

“There is such a thing as civil law,” Mr. Owen insisted.

“Not when the government suspends civil law. In that day when you speak of rising in your strength, your strength would be turned against yourself. Into the militia you would go, willy-nilly. Habeas corpus, I heard some one mutter just now. Instead of habeas corpus you would get post mortems. If you refused to go into the militia, or to obey after you were in, you would be tried by drumhead court martial and shot down like dogs. It is the law.”

“Not when the government suspends civil law. On that day when you talk about rising up in your strength, that strength would turn against you. You would be forced into the militia, whether you like it or not. I just heard someone mumble about habeas corpus. Instead of habeas corpus, you'd end up with post mortems. If you refused to join the militia, or disobeyed once you were in, you would be tried by a quick court martial and shot down like dogs. That's the law.”

“It is not the law!” Mr. Calvin asserted positively. “There is no such law. Young man, you have dreamed all this. Why, you spoke of sending the militia to the Philippines. That is unconstitutional. The Constitution especially states that the militia cannot be sent out of the country.”

“It’s not the law!” Mr. Calvin insisted firmly. “There’s no such law. Young man, you’ve made all this up. You mentioned sending the militia to the Philippines. That’s unconstitutional. The Constitution clearly states that the militia cannot be sent outside the country.”

“What’s the Constitution got to do with it?” Ernest demanded. “The courts interpret the Constitution, and the courts, as Mr. Asmunsen agreed, are the creatures of the trusts. Besides, it is as I have said, the law. It has been the law for years, for nine years, gentlemen.”

“What does the Constitution have to do with it?” Ernest asked. “The courts interpret the Constitution, and as Mr. Asmunsen agreed, the courts are controlled by the trusts. Besides, as I’ve said, it’s the law. It has been the law for years, for nine years, gentlemen.”

“That we can be drafted into the militia?” Mr. Calvin asked incredulously. “That they can shoot us by drumhead court martial if we refuse?”

"Are you telling me we can be drafted into the militia?" Mr. Calvin asked, astonished. "That they can execute us without proper trial if we refuse?"

“Yes,” Ernest answered, “precisely that.”

“Yep,” Ernest answered, “exactly that.”

“How is it that we have never heard of this law?” my father asked, and I could see that it was likewise new to him.

“How come we’ve never heard of this law?” my father asked, and I could tell it was also new to him.

“For two reasons,” Ernest said. “First, there has been no need to enforce it. If there had, you’d have heard of it soon enough. And secondly, the law was rushed through Congress and the Senate secretly, with practically no discussion. Of course, the newspapers made no mention of it. But we socialists knew about it. We published it in our papers. But you never read our papers.”

“For two reasons,” Ernest said. “First, there’s been no need to enforce it. If there had been, you would have heard about it pretty quickly. Second, the law was rushed through Congress and the Senate in secret, with almost no discussion. Naturally, the newspapers didn’t mention it. But we socialists knew about it. We published it in our papers. But you never read our papers.”

“I still insist you are dreaming,” Mr. Calvin said stubbornly. “The country would never have permitted it.”

“I still insist you're dreaming,” Mr. Calvin said stubbornly. “The country would never have allowed it.”

“But the country did permit it,” Ernest replied. “And as for my dreaming—” he put his hand in his pocket and drew out a small pamphlet—“tell me if this looks like dream-stuff.”

“But the country allowed it,” Ernest replied. “And about my dreaming—” he put his hand in his pocket and pulled out a small pamphlet—“tell me if this looks like some fantasy.”

He opened it and began to read:

He opened it and started reading:

“‘Section One, be it enacted, and so forth and so forth, that the militia shall consist of every able-bodied male citizen of the respective states, territories, and District of Columbia, who is more than eighteen and less than forty-five years of age.’

“‘Section One, it is enacted that the militia shall include every able-bodied male citizen of the respective states, territories, and the District of Columbia, who is over eighteen and under forty-five years old.’”

“‘Section Seven, that any officer or enlisted man’—remember Section One, gentlemen, you are all enlisted men—‘that any enlisted man of the militia who shall refuse or neglect to present himself to such mustering officer upon being called forth as herein prescribed, shall be subject to trial by court martial, and shall be punished as such court martial shall direct.’

“‘Section Seven, that any officer or enlisted man’—remember Section One, gentlemen, you are all enlisted men—‘that any enlisted man of the militia who refuses or fails to show up to the mustering officer when called as described here, will be subject to trial by court martial and will be punished as determined by that court martial.’”

“‘Section Eight, that courts martial, for the trial of officers or men of the militia, shall be composed of militia officers only.’

“‘Section Eight states that courts martial, for the trial of officers or men of the militia, shall consist only of militia officers.’”

“‘Section Nine, that the militia, when called into the actual service of the United States, shall be subject to the same rules and articles of war as the regular troops of the United States.’

“‘Section Nine, that the militia, when called into actual service of the United States, will be subject to the same rules and articles of war as the regular troops of the United States.’”

“There you are gentlemen, American citizens, and fellow-militiamen. Nine years ago we socialists thought that law was aimed against labor. But it would seem that it was aimed against you, too. Congressman Wiley, in the brief discussion that was permitted, said that the bill ‘provided for a reserve force to take the mob by the throat’—you’re the mob, gentlemen—‘and protect at all hazards life, liberty, and property.’ And in the time to come, when you rise in your strength, remember that you will be rising against the property of the trusts, and the liberty of the trusts, according to the law, to squeeze you. Your teeth are pulled, gentlemen. Your claws are trimmed. In the day you rise in your strength, toothless and clawless, you will be as harmless as any army of clams.”

“There you are, gentlemen, American citizens, and fellow militiamen. Nine years ago, we socialists thought that the law was aimed at labor. But it seems like it was aimed at you too. Congressman Wiley, in the brief discussion that we had, mentioned that the bill ‘provided for a reserve force to take the mob by the throat’—you’re the mob, gentlemen—‘and protect at all hazards life, liberty, and property.’ And in the future, when you rise up in your strength, remember that you will be rising against the property of the trusts and their claimed liberty to exploit you, according to the law. Your teeth are pulled, gentlemen. Your claws are trimmed. When you finally rise in your strength, toothless and clawless, you will be as harmless as any army of clams.”

“I don’t believe it!” Kowalt cried. “There is no such law. It is a canard got up by you socialists.”

“I can’t believe it!” Kowalt exclaimed. “There’s no such law. It’s a myth created by you socialists.”

“This bill was introduced in the House of Representatives on July 30, 1902,” was the reply. “It was introduced by Representative Dick of Ohio. It was rushed through. It was passed unanimously by the Senate on January 14, 1903. And just seven days afterward was approved by the President of the United States.”[5]

“This bill was introduced in the House of Representatives on July 30, 1902,” was the reply. “It was introduced by Representative Dick from Ohio. It was fast-tracked. It passed unanimously in the Senate on January 14, 1903. And just a week later, it was approved by the President of the United States.”[5]

[5] Everhard was right in the essential particulars, though his date of the introduction of the bill is in error. The bill was introduced on June 30, and not on July 30. The Congressional Record is here in Ardis, and a reference to it shows mention of the bill on the following dates: June 30, December 9, 15, 16, and 17, 1902, and January 7 and 14, 1903. The ignorance evidenced by the business men at the dinner was nothing unusual. Very few people knew of the existence of this law. E. Untermann, a revolutionist, in July, 1903, published a pamphlet at Girard, Kansas, on the “Militia Bill.” This pamphlet had a small circulation among workingmen; but already had the segregation of classes proceeded so far, that the members of the middle class never heard of the pamphlet at all, and so remained in ignorance of the law.

[5] Everhard was correct in the key details, although he got the date of the bill's introduction wrong. The bill was introduced on June 30, not July 30. The Congressional Record is available here in Ardis, and a look at it shows mentions of the bill on these dates: June 30, December 9, 15, 16, and 17, 1902, and January 7 and 14, 1903. The ignorance shown by the business people at the dinner was nothing surprising. Very few people knew this law existed. E. Untermann, a revolutionary, published a pamphlet on the “Militia Bill” in July 1903 in Girard, Kansas. This pamphlet had a limited readership among workingmen; by this time, class segregation had progressed so much that middle-class members were completely unaware of the pamphlet and, as a result, remained ignorant of the law.

CHAPTER IX.
THE MATHEMATICS OF A DREAM

In the midst of the consternation his revelation had produced, Ernest began again to speak.

In the middle of the confusion his revelation had caused, Ernest started to speak again.

“You have said, a dozen of you to-night, that socialism is impossible. You have asserted the impossible, now let me demonstrate the inevitable. Not only is it inevitable that you small capitalists shall pass away, but it is inevitable that the large capitalists, and the trusts also, shall pass away. Remember, the tide of evolution never flows backward. It flows on and on, and it flows from competition to combination, and from little combination to large combination, and from large combination to colossal combination, and it flows on to socialism, which is the most colossal combination of all.

“You all have said tonight that socialism is impossible. You’ve declared the impossible, so let me show you what’s inevitable. It’s not just that you small capitalists will fade away, but it’s also clear that the large capitalists and the trusts will disappear too. Remember, the tide of evolution never goes backward. It moves forward and onward, from competition to cooperation, from small groups to larger ones, and from large groups to colossal ones, ultimately leading to socialism, which is the biggest combination of all.”

“You tell me that I dream. Very good. I’ll give you the mathematics of my dream; and here, in advance, I challenge you to show that my mathematics are wrong. I shall develop the inevitability of the breakdown of the capitalist system, and I shall demonstrate mathematically why it must break down. Here goes, and bear with me if at first I seem irrelevant.

“You say that I’m just dreaming. Fine. I’ll share the logic behind my dream; and here, I challenge you to prove me wrong. I’ll explain why the collapse of the capitalist system is unavoidable, and I’ll show mathematically why it has to happen. Here we go, and please be patient if I seem off-topic at first.”

“Let us, first of all, investigate a particular industrial process, and whenever I state something with which you disagree, please interrupt me. Here is a shoe factory. This factory takes leather and makes it into shoes. Here is one hundred dollars’ worth of leather. It goes through the factory and comes out in the form of shoes, worth, let us say, two hundred dollars. What has happened? One hundred dollars has been added to the value of the leather. How was it added? Let us see.

“First, let’s take a look at a specific industrial process, and if I say anything you disagree with, please feel free to interrupt me. Here’s a shoe factory. This factory takes leather and turns it into shoes. Here’s a hundred dollars’ worth of leather. It goes through the factory and comes out as shoes worth, let’s say, two hundred dollars. What just happened? One hundred dollars has been added to the value of the leather. How was that value added? Let’s find out.”

“Capital and labor added this value of one hundred dollars. Capital furnished the factory, the machines, and paid all the expenses. Labor furnished labor. By the joint effort of capital and labor one hundred dollars of value was added. Are you all agreed so far?”

“Capital and labor contributed to this value of one hundred dollars. Capital supplied the factory, the machines, and covered all the expenses. Labor provided the workforce. Through the combined efforts of capital and labor, one hundred dollars of value was created. Is everyone on the same page so far?”

Heads nodded around the table in affirmation.

Heads nodded around the table in agreement.

“Labor and capital having produced this one hundred dollars, now proceed to divide it. The statistics of this division are fractional; so let us, for the sake of convenience, make them roughly approximate. Capital takes fifty dollars as its share, and labor gets in wages fifty dollars as its share. We will not enter into the squabbling over the division.[1] No matter how much squabbling takes place, in one percentage or another the division is arranged. And take notice here, that what is true of this particular industrial process is true of all industrial processes. Am I right?”

“Labor and capital have produced this one hundred dollars, and now they need to divide it. The details of this division are complicated, so for simplicity, let's estimate them. Capital takes fifty dollars as its share, and labor receives fifty dollars in wages as its share. We won't get into the arguments about the division. No matter how much arguing happens, the division gets sorted out in some way or another. And keep in mind that what applies to this specific industrial process applies to all industrial processes. Am I right?”

[1] Everhard here clearly develops the cause of all the labor troubles of that time. In the division of the joint-product, capital wanted all it could get, and labor wanted all it could get. This quarrel over the division was irreconcilable. So long as the system of capitalistic production existed, labor and capital continued to quarrel over the division of the joint-product. It is a ludicrous spectacle to us, but we must not forget that we have seven centuries’ advantage over those that lived in that time.

[1] Everhard clearly explains the root of all the labor issues of that time. Capital wanted to take as much as possible from the joint product, while labor wanted the same for themselves. This disagreement over the division was impossible to resolve. As long as the capitalist production system was in place, labor and capital kept arguing over how to split the joint product. It seems ridiculous to us now, but we shouldn't forget that we have seven centuries of progress over those who lived then.

Again the whole table agreed with Ernest.

Again, everyone at the table agreed with Ernest.

“Now, suppose labor, having received its fifty dollars, wanted to buy back shoes. It could only buy back fifty dollars’ worth. That’s clear, isn’t it?

“Now, let’s say labor, after getting its fifty dollars, wanted to buy back shoes. It could only get fifty dollars’ worth. That’s pretty clear, right?”

“And now we shift from this particular process to the sum total of all industrial processes in the United States, which includes the leather itself, raw material, transportation, selling, everything. We will say, for the sake of round figures, that the total production of wealth in the United States in one year is four billion dollars. Then labor has received in wages, during the same period, two billion dollars. Four billion dollars has been produced. How much of this can labor buy back? Two billions. There is no discussion of this, I am sure. For that matter, my percentages are mild. Because of a thousand capitalistic devices, labor cannot buy back even half of the total product.

“And now we move from this specific process to the overall total of all industrial processes in the United States, which includes leather, raw materials, transportation, sales, everything. For the sake of simplicity, let’s say that the total wealth produced in the United States in one year is four billion dollars. Labor has received two billion dollars in wages during the same period. Four billion dollars has been produced. How much of this can labor actually buy back? Two billion. There’s no argument about this, I’m sure. In fact, my percentages are conservative. Due to countless capitalist systems, labor can’t even buy back half of the total production.

“But to return. We will say labor buys back two billions. Then it stands to reason that labor can consume only two billions. There are still two billions to be accounted for, which labor cannot buy back and consume.”

“But to get back to the point. Let’s say labor generates two billion dollars. It logically follows that labor can only consume two billion dollars. There are still two billion dollars unaccounted for, which labor cannot buy back and consume.”

“Labor does not consume its two billions, even,” Mr. Kowalt spoke up. “If it did, it would not have any deposits in the savings banks.”

“Labor doesn’t even spend its two billion,” Mr. Kowalt said. “If it did, it wouldn’t have any savings in the banks.”

“Labor’s deposits in the savings banks are only a sort of reserve fund that is consumed as fast as it accumulates. These deposits are saved for old age, for sickness and accident, and for funeral expenses. The savings bank deposit is simply a piece of the loaf put back on the shelf to be eaten next day. No, labor consumes all of the total product that its wages will buy back.

“Labor’s deposits in the savings banks are just a kind of reserve fund that gets used up as quickly as it builds up. These deposits are meant for retirement, for illness and accidents, and for funeral costs. The savings bank deposit is just a slice of bread set aside to be eaten the next day. No, labor uses up all of the total product that its wages can buy back."

“Two billions are left to capital. After it has paid its expenses, does it consume the remainder? Does capital consume all of its two billions?”

“Two billion remains with capital. After it has covered its expenses, does it use up the rest? Does capital use all of its two billion?”

Ernest stopped and put the question point blank to a number of the men. They shook their heads.

Ernest paused and directly asked several of the men the question. They shook their heads.

“I don’t know,” one of them frankly said.

“I don’t know,” one of them said honestly.

“Of course you do,” Ernest went on. “Stop and think a moment. If capital consumed its share, the sum total of capital could not increase. It would remain constant. If you will look at the economic history of the United States, you will see that the sum total of capital has continually increased. Therefore capital does not consume its share. Do you remember when England owned so much of our railroad bonds? As the years went by, we bought back those bonds. What does that mean? That part of capital’s unconsumed share bought back the bonds. What is the meaning of the fact that to-day the capitalists of the United States own hundreds and hundreds of millions of dollars of Mexican bonds, Russian bonds, Italian bonds, Grecian bonds? The meaning is that those hundreds and hundreds of millions were part of capital’s share which capital did not consume. Furthermore, from the very beginning of the capitalist system, capital has never consumed all of its share.

“Of course you do,” Ernest continued. “Just pause and think for a moment. If capital used up its share, the total amount of capital couldn’t grow. It would stay the same. If you look at the economic history of the United States, you’ll see that the total amount of capital has continually increased. Therefore, capital doesn’t use up its share. Do you remember when England held so much of our railroad bonds? Over the years, we repurchased those bonds. What does that signify? It means that part of capital’s unconsumed share bought back the bonds. What does it mean that today, capitalists in the United States own hundreds of millions of dollars in Mexican bonds, Russian bonds, Italian bonds, and Greek bonds? It means that those hundreds of millions were part of capital’s share that it didn’t consume. Moreover, from the very start of the capitalist system, capital has never consumed all of its share.”

“And now we come to the point. Four billion dollars of wealth is produced in one year in the United States. Labor buys back and consumes two billions. Capital does not consume the remaining two billions. There is a large balance left over unconsumed. What is done with this balance? What can be done with it? Labor cannot consume any of it, for labor has already spent all its wages. Capital will not consume this balance, because, already, according to its nature, it has consumed all it can. And still remains the balance. What can be done with it? What is done with it?”

“And now we get to the main point. Four billion dollars in wealth is generated in one year in the United States. Workers buy back and consume two billion. Capital doesn’t consume the other two billion. There’s a significant leftover balance that goes unconsumed. What happens to this balance? What can be done with it? Workers can’t consume any of it because they’ve already spent all their wages. Capital won’t consume this leftover amount either, since, by its very nature, it has consumed all it can. And yet, the balance still remains. What can be done with it? What does happen with it?”

“It is sold abroad,” Mr. Kowalt volunteered.

“It’s sold overseas,” Mr. Kowalt offered.

“The very thing,” Ernest agreed. “Because of this balance arises our need for a foreign market. This is sold abroad. It has to be sold abroad. There is no other way of getting rid of it. And that unconsumed surplus, sold abroad, becomes what we call our favorable balance of trade. Are we all agreed so far?”

“The very thing,” Ernest agreed. “Because of this balance, we need a foreign market. It has to be sold overseas. That’s the only way to get rid of it. And that surplus, which isn’t consumed here and is sold abroad, creates what we refer to as our favorable balance of trade. Are we all on the same page so far?”

“Surely it is a waste of time to elaborate these A B C’s of commerce,” Mr. Calvin said tartly. “We all understand them.”

“Surely it's a waste of time to go over these basics of commerce,” Mr. Calvin said sharply. “We all get it.”

“And it is by these A B C’s I have so carefully elaborated that I shall confound you,” Ernest retorted. “There’s the beauty of it. And I’m going to confound you with them right now. Here goes.

“And it’s with these A B C’s I’ve worked out so meticulously that I’m going to surprise you,” Ernest shot back. “That’s the beauty of it. And I’m about to do it right now. Here we go.”

“The United States is a capitalist country that has developed its resources. According to its capitalist system of industry, it has an unconsumed surplus that must be got rid of, and that must be got rid of abroad.[2] What is true of the United States is true of every other capitalist country with developed resources. Every one of such countries has an unconsumed surplus. Don’t forget that they have already traded with one another, and that these surpluses yet remain. Labor in all these countries has spent its wages, and cannot buy any of the surpluses. Capital in all these countries has already consumed all it is able according to its nature. And still remain the surpluses. They cannot dispose of these surpluses to one another. How are they going to get rid of them?”

“The United States is a capitalist country that has developed its resources. According to its capitalist system, there’s an unconsumed surplus that needs to be eliminated, and it must be done abroad.[2] What applies to the United States also applies to every other capitalist country with developed resources. Each of these countries has an unconsumed surplus. Keep in mind that they have already traded with each other, yet these surpluses still exist. Workers in all these countries have spent their wages and can’t buy any of the surplus. Capital in these countries has consumed everything it can according to its nature. And still, the surpluses remain. They can’t sell these surpluses to one another. So how are they going to get rid of them?”

[2] Theodore Roosevelt, President of the United States a few years prior to this time, made the following public declaration: “A more liberal and extensive reciprocity in the purchase and sale of commodities is necessary, so that the overproduction of the United States can be satisfactorily disposed of to foreign countries.” Of course, this overproduction he mentions was the profits of the capitalist system over and beyond the consuming power of the capitalists. It was at this time that Senator Mark Hanna said: “The production of wealth in the United States is one-third larger annually than its consumption.” Also a fellow-Senator, Chauncey Depew, said: “The American people produce annually two billions more wealth than they consume.

[2] Theodore Roosevelt, President of the United States not long before this period, made the following public statement: “We need a more open and extensive exchange in buying and selling goods so that the U.S. can effectively manage its overproduction in foreign markets.” Naturally, the overproduction he refers to was the excess profits of the capitalist system beyond what capitalists could consume. At that time, Senator Mark Hanna noted: “The wealth produced in the United States each year is one-third greater than its consumption.” Another senator, Chauncey Depew, added: “The American people produce two billion more in wealth each year than they consume.

“Sell them to countries with undeveloped resources,” Mr. Kowalt suggested.

“Sell them to countries with underdeveloped resources,” Mr. Kowalt suggested.

“The very thing. You see, my argument is so clear and simple that in your own minds you carry it on for me. And now for the next step. Suppose the United States disposes of its surplus to a country with undeveloped resources like, say, Brazil. Remember this surplus is over and above trade, which articles of trade have been consumed. What, then, does the United States get in return from Brazil?”

“The exact point. You see, my argument is so straightforward that you already understand it in your own minds. Now, let’s move to the next part. Let’s say the United States sells its surplus to a country with undeveloped resources, like Brazil. Keep in mind that this surplus is in addition to the trade where the items have already been used. So, what does the United States receive in return from Brazil?”

“Gold,” said Mr. Kowalt.

“Gold,” Mr. Kowalt said.

“But there is only so much gold, and not much of it, in the world,” Ernest objected.

“But there’s only so much gold in the world, and not a lot of it,” Ernest argued.

“Gold in the form of securities and bonds and so forth,” Mr. Kowalt amended.

“Gold in the form of securities, bonds, and so on,” Mr. Kowalt adjusted.

“Now you’ve struck it,” Ernest said. “From Brazil the United States, in return for her surplus, gets bonds and securities. And what does that mean? It means that the United States is coming to own railroads in Brazil, factories, mines, and lands in Brazil. And what is the meaning of that in turn?”

“Now you’ve hit the nail on the head,” Ernest said. “From Brazil, the United States, in exchange for its surplus, gets bonds and securities. And what does that mean? It means that the United States is starting to own railroads, factories, mines, and land in Brazil. And what does that mean in turn?”

Mr. Kowalt pondered and shook his head.

Mr. Kowalt thought about it and shook his head.

“I’ll tell you,” Ernest continued. “It means that the resources of Brazil are being developed. And now, the next point. When Brazil, under the capitalist system, has developed her resources, she will herself have an unconsumed surplus. Can she get rid of this surplus to the United States? No, because the United States has herself a surplus. Can the United States do what she previously did—get rid of her surplus to Brazil? No, for Brazil now has a surplus, too.

“I’ll tell you,” Ernest continued. “It means that Brazil is developing its resources. Now, the next point. Once Brazil has developed its resources under the capitalist system, it will have an unconsumed surplus. Can it sell this surplus to the United States? No, because the United States has a surplus of its own. Can the United States do what it did before—sell its surplus to Brazil? No, because Brazil also has a surplus now.”

“What happens? The United States and Brazil must both seek out other countries with undeveloped resources, in order to unload the surpluses on them. But by the very process of unloading the surpluses, the resources of those countries are in turn developed. Soon they have surpluses, and are seeking other countries on which to unload. Now, gentlemen, follow me. The planet is only so large. There are only so many countries in the world. What will happen when every country in the world, down to the smallest and last, with a surplus in its hands, stands confronting every other country with surpluses in their hands?”

“What happens? The United States and Brazil both need to find other countries with untapped resources so they can offload their surpluses. But by offloading these surpluses, they end up developing those countries' resources. Soon, those countries will also have surpluses and will be looking for other places to offload them. Now, gentlemen, think about this. The planet is only so big. There aren't that many countries in the world. What will happen when every country, even the smallest ones, has a surplus and is facing other countries that also have surpluses?”

He paused and regarded his listeners. The bepuzzlement in their faces was delicious. Also, there was awe in their faces. Out of abstractions Ernest had conjured a vision and made them see it. They were seeing it then, as they sat there, and they were frightened by it.

He stopped and looked at his audience. The confusion on their faces was delightful. They also looked awed. Ernest had taken abstract ideas and turned them into a vision that they could see. They were seeing it right then as they sat there, and it scared them.

“We started with A B C, Mr. Calvin,” Ernest said slyly. “I have now given you the rest of the alphabet. It is very simple. That is the beauty of it. You surely have the answer forthcoming. What, then, when every country in the world has an unconsumed surplus? Where will your capitalist system be then?”

“We started with A B C, Mr. Calvin,” Ernest said slyly. “I’ve now given you the rest of the alphabet. It’s very simple. That’s the beauty of it. You must have the answer by now. So, what happens when every country in the world has an unconsumed surplus? Where will your capitalist system be then?”

But Mr. Calvin shook a troubled head. He was obviously questing back through Ernest’s reasoning in search of an error.

But Mr. Calvin shook his head, looking worried. He was clearly trying to retrace Ernest's reasoning to find a mistake.

“Let me briefly go over the ground with you again,” Ernest said. “We began with a particular industrial process, the shoe factory. We found that the division of the joint product that took place there was similar to the division that took place in the sum total of all industrial processes. We found that labor could buy back with its wages only so much of the product, and that capital did not consume all of the remainder of the product. We found that when labor had consumed to the full extent of its wages, and when capital had consumed all it wanted, there was still left an unconsumed surplus. We agreed that this surplus could only be disposed of abroad. We agreed, also, that the effect of unloading this surplus on another country would be to develop the resources of that country, and that in a short time that country would have an unconsumed surplus. We extended this process to all the countries on the planet, till every country was producing every year, and every day, an unconsumed surplus, which it could dispose of to no other country. And now I ask you again, what are we going to do with those surpluses?”

“Let me quickly recap our discussion,” Ernest said. “We started with a specific industrial process, the shoe factory. We found that the way the joint product was divided there was similar to how it was divided across all industrial processes. We realized that labor could only purchase a portion of the product with its wages, and that capital didn’t use up all of the remaining product. We discovered that when labor had consumed everything it could afford with its wages, and when capital had used all it needed, there was still an excess that went unused. We agreed that this surplus could only be sold overseas. We also agreed that dumping this surplus in another country would help develop that country’s resources, and soon enough, that country would have its own surplus that it couldn't use. We applied this idea to every country in the world, until every country was generating an unconsumed surplus every year, every day, which it could not sell to any other country. And now I ask you again, what are we going to do with those surpluses?”

Still no one answered.

Still no one replied.

“Mr. Calvin?” Ernest queried.

“Mr. Calvin?” Ernest asked.

“It beats me,” Mr. Calvin confessed.

“I don't know,” Mr. Calvin confessed.

“I never dreamed of such a thing,” Mr. Asmunsen said. “And yet it does seem clear as print.”

“I never imagined anything like this,” Mr. Asmunsen said. “And yet it does seem obvious.”

It was the first time I had ever heard Karl Marx’s[3] doctrine of surplus value elaborated, and Ernest had done it so simply that I, too, sat puzzled and dumbfounded.

It was the first time I had ever heard Karl Marx’s[3] idea of surplus value explained, and Ernest had done it so simply that I, too, sat confused and amazed.

[3] Karl Marx—the great intellectual hero of Socialism. A German Jew of the nineteenth century. A contemporary of John Stuart Mill. It seems incredible to us that whole generations should have elapsed after the enunciation of Marx’s economic discoveries, in which time he was sneered at by the world’s accepted thinkers and scholars. Because of his discoveries he was banished from his native country, and he died an exile in England.

[3] Karl Marx—the iconic figure of Socialism. A German Jew from the nineteenth century. He was a contemporary of John Stuart Mill. It's hard to believe that generations went by after Marx shared his economic insights, during which he was ridiculed by the established thinkers and scholars of his time. Because of his theories, he was forced to leave his home country, and he died in exile in England.

“I’ll tell you a way to get rid of the surplus,” Ernest said. “Throw it into the sea. Throw every year hundreds of millions of dollars’ worth of shoes and wheat and clothing and all the commodities of commerce into the sea. Won’t that fix it?”

“I’ll show you how to get rid of the surplus,” Ernest said. “Just toss it into the ocean. Toss hundreds of millions of dollars’ worth of shoes, wheat, clothing, and all the goods we trade into the ocean. Won’t that solve the problem?”

“It will certainly fix it,” Mr. Calvin answered. “But it is absurd for you to talk that way.”

“It will definitely fix it,” Mr. Calvin replied. “But it's ridiculous for you to talk like that.”

Ernest was upon him like a flash.

Ernest was on him in a flash.

“Is it a bit more absurd than what you advocate, you machine-breaker, returning to the antediluvian ways of your forefathers? What do you propose in order to get rid of the surplus? You would escape the problem of the surplus by not producing any surplus. And how do you propose to avoid producing a surplus? By returning to a primitive method of production, so confused and disorderly and irrational, so wasteful and costly, that it will be impossible to produce a surplus.”

“Is it a bit more ridiculous than what you support, you machine-breaker, going back to the ancient ways of your ancestors? What’s your plan to eliminate the surplus? You think you can solve the surplus issue by just not creating any surplus. But how do you plan to avoid creating a surplus? By reverting to a primitive production method, so chaotic and irrational, so wasteful and expensive, that it will be impossible to produce any surplus.”

Mr. Calvin swallowed. The point had been driven home. He swallowed again and cleared his throat.

Mr. Calvin swallowed. The message was clear. He swallowed again and cleared his throat.

“You are right,” he said. “I stand convicted. It is absurd. But we’ve got to do something. It is a case of life and death for us of the middle class. We refuse to perish. We elect to be absurd and to return to the truly crude and wasteful methods of our forefathers. We will put back industry to its pre-trust stage. We will break the machines. And what are you going to do about it?”

“You're right,” he said. “I admit it. It’s ridiculous. But we have to take action. This is a matter of life and death for us in the middle class. We refuse to vanish. We're choosing to be ridiculous and going back to the basic and wasteful methods of our ancestors. We’re going to roll back industry to before the monopolies. We will dismantle the machines. So, what are you going to do about it?”

“But you can’t break the machines,” Ernest replied. “You cannot make the tide of evolution flow backward. Opposed to you are two great forces, each of which is more powerful than you of the middle class. The large capitalists, the trusts, in short, will not let you turn back. They don’t want the machines destroyed. And greater than the trusts, and more powerful, is labor. It will not let you destroy the machines. The ownership of the world, along with the machines, lies between the trusts and labor. That is the battle alignment. Neither side wants the destruction of the machines. But each side wants to possess the machines. In this battle the middle class has no place. The middle class is a pygmy between two giants. Don’t you see, you poor perishing middle class, you are caught between the upper and nether millstones, and even now has the grinding begun.

“But you can’t break the machines,” Ernest replied. “You can’t make evolution go backwards. You’re up against two huge forces, each of which is stronger than you in the middle class. The big capitalists, the trusts—they won’t let you go back. They don’t want the machines destroyed. And even more powerful than the trusts is labor. It won’t let you destroy the machines. The ownership of the world, along with the machines, lies between the trusts and labor. That’s the battle line. Neither side wants the machines gone. But each side wants to control the machines. In this fight, the middle class has no role. The middle class is like a small creature caught between two giants. Don’t you see, you struggling middle class, you are trapped between the upper and lower grindstones, and the grinding has already begun.

“I have demonstrated to you mathematically the inevitable breakdown of the capitalist system. When every country stands with an unconsumed and unsalable surplus on its hands, the capitalist system will break down under the terrific structure of profits that it itself has reared. And in that day there won’t be any destruction of the machines. The struggle then will be for the ownership of the machines. If labor wins, your way will be easy. The United States, and the whole world for that matter, will enter upon a new and tremendous era. Instead of being crushed by the machines, life will be made fairer, and happier, and nobler by them. You of the destroyed middle class, along with labor—there will be nothing but labor then; so you, and all the rest of labor, will participate in the equitable distribution of the products of the wonderful machines. And we, all of us, will make new and more wonderful machines. And there won’t be any unconsumed surplus, because there won’t be any profits.”

“I have mathematically shown you that the capitalist system is bound to fail. When every country has a surplus of goods that can’t be sold, the capitalist system will collapse under the enormous profits it has created. When that happens, no machines will be destroyed. The fight will be over who owns the machines. If labor prevails, the path will be clear. The United States, and the entire world, will enter a new and amazing era. Instead of being overwhelmed by machines, life will become fairer, happier, and more dignified because of them. You, from the ruined middle class, alongside labor—because then there will only be labor—will take part in the fair sharing of the products made by these incredible machines. Together, we will create new and even better machines. And there won’t be any surplus going unsold because there won’t be any profits.”

“But suppose the trusts win in this battle over the ownership of the machines and the world?” Mr. Kowalt asked.

"But what if the trusts win this struggle over who owns the machines and the world?" Mr. Kowalt asked.

“Then,” Ernest answered, “you, and labor, and all of us, will be crushed under the iron heel of a despotism as relentless and terrible as any despotism that has blackened the pages of the history of man. That will be a good name for that despotism, the Iron Heel.”[4]

“Then,” Ernest replied, “you, and work, and all of us, will be crushed under the iron boot of a tyranny as harsh and awful as any tyranny that has stained the pages of human history. That would be a fitting name for that tyranny, the Iron Heel.”[4]

[4] The earliest known use of that name to designate the Oligarchy.

[4] The first recorded use of that name to refer to the Oligarchy.

There was a long pause, and every man at the table meditated in ways unwonted and profound.

There was a long pause, and each man at the table thought deeply in ways that were unusual and meaningful.

“But this socialism of yours is a dream,” Mr. Calvin said; and repeated, “a dream.”

“But this socialism of yours is just a fantasy,” Mr. Calvin said; and repeated, “a fantasy.”

“I’ll show you something that isn’t a dream, then,” Ernest answered. “And that something I shall call the Oligarchy. You call it the Plutocracy. We both mean the same thing, the large capitalists or the trusts. Let us see where the power lies today. And in order to do so, let us apportion society into its class divisions.

“I’ll show you something that isn’t a dream, then,” Ernest replied. “And that something I’ll call the Oligarchy. You refer to it as the Plutocracy. We’re both talking about the same thing: the big capitalists or the trusts. Let’s find out where the power really is today. To do that, let’s break society down into its class divisions.

“There are three big classes in society. First comes the Plutocracy, which is composed of wealthy bankers, railway magnates, corporation directors, and trust magnates. Second, is the middle class, your class, gentlemen, which is composed of farmers, merchants, small manufacturers, and professional men. And third and last comes my class, the proletariat, which is composed of the wage-workers.[5]

“There are three main classes in society. First is the Plutocracy, made up of rich bankers, railway tycoons, corporate executives, and trust owners. Second is the middle class, your class, gentlemen, which includes farmers, merchants, small manufacturers, and professionals. And third and finally is my class, the proletariat, which consists of the wage-workers.[5]

[5] This division of society made by Everhard is in accordance with that made by Lucien Sanial, one of the statistical authorities of that time. His calculation of the membership of these divisions by occupation, from the United States Census of 1900, is as follows: Plutocratic class, 250,251; Middle class, 8,429,845; and Proletariat class, 20,393,137.

[5] Everhard's division of society lines up with the one created by Lucien Sanial, a statistical authority of that time. His estimate of the membership in these divisions by occupation, based on the United States Census of 1900, is as follows: Plutocratic class, 250,251; Middle class, 8,429,845; and Proletariat class, 20,393,137.

“You cannot but grant that the ownership of wealth constitutes essential power in the United States to-day. How is this wealth owned by these three classes? Here are the figures. The Plutocracy owns sixty-seven billions of wealth. Of the total number of persons engaged in occupations in the United States, only nine-tenths of one per cent are from the Plutocracy, yet the Plutocracy owns seventy per cent of the total wealth. The middle class owns twenty-four billions. Twenty-nine per cent of those in occupations are from the middle class, and they own twenty-five per cent of the total wealth. Remains the proletariat. It owns four billions. Of all persons in occupations, seventy per cent come from the proletariat; and the proletariat owns four per cent of the total wealth. Where does the power lie, gentlemen?”

“You have to admit that owning wealth is a key source of power in the United States today. How is this wealth distributed among these three classes? Here are the numbers. The Plutocracy possesses sixty-seven billion dollars in wealth. Of all the people working in the United States, only 0.9% belong to the Plutocracy, yet they own seventy percent of the total wealth. The middle class owns twenty-four billion dollars. Twenty-nine percent of those in occupations are from the middle class, and they own twenty-five percent of the total wealth. Finally, we have the proletariat. It owns four billion dollars. Seventy percent of all workers belong to the proletariat, and they only own four percent of the total wealth. So where does the power really lie, gentlemen?”

“From your own figures, we of the middle class are more powerful than labor,” Mr. Asmunsen remarked.

“According to your own data, we in the middle class are stronger than labor,” Mr. Asmunsen noted.

“Calling us weak does not make you stronger in the face of the strength of the Plutocracy,” Ernest retorted. “And furthermore, I’m not done with you. There is a greater strength than wealth, and it is greater because it cannot be taken away. Our strength, the strength of the proletariat, is in our muscles, in our hands to cast ballots, in our fingers to pull triggers. This strength we cannot be stripped of. It is the primitive strength, it is the strength that is to life germane, it is the strength that is stronger than wealth, and that wealth cannot take away.

“Calling us weak doesn’t make you stronger against the power of the wealthy elite,” Ernest shot back. “And I’m not finished with you yet. There’s a strength greater than money, and it’s greater because it can’t be taken away. Our strength, the strength of the working class, is in our muscles, in our ability to vote, in our fingers ready to pull triggers. This is strength that can never be stripped from us. It’s a primal strength, it’s the kind of strength that is essential to life, it’s the strength that eclipses wealth, and wealth can’t take it away.”

“But your strength is detachable. It can be taken away from you. Even now the Plutocracy is taking it away from you. In the end it will take it all away from you. And then you will cease to be the middle class. You will descend to us. You will become proletarians. And the beauty of it is that you will then add to our strength. We will hail you brothers, and we will fight shoulder to shoulder in the cause of humanity.

“But your strength can be taken away. Right now, the wealthy elite is stripping it from you. In the end, they will take everything. Then you will no longer be the middle class. You will join us. You will become the working class. And the great part is that you will then add to our strength. We will call you brothers, and we will fight side by side for humanity’s cause.”

“You see, labor has nothing concrete of which to be despoiled. Its share of the wealth of the country consists of clothes and household furniture, with here and there, in very rare cases, an unencumbered home. But you have the concrete wealth, twenty-four billions of it, and the Plutocracy will take it away from you. Of course, there is the large likelihood that the proletariat will take it away first. Don’t you see your position, gentlemen? The middle class is a wobbly little lamb between a lion and a tiger. If one doesn’t get you, the other will. And if the Plutocracy gets you first, why it’s only a matter of time when the Proletariat gets the Plutocracy.

“You see, labor doesn’t have anything solid to lose. Its share of the country’s wealth consists of clothes and home furniture, and in very rare cases, a debt-free home. But you have the real wealth, twenty-four billion of it, and the wealthy elite will take it from you. Of course, there's a good chance that the working class will take it from you first. Don’t you understand your position, gentlemen? The middle class is a shaky little lamb caught between a lion and a tiger. If one doesn’t get you, the other will. And if the wealthy elite get to you first, it’s just a matter of time before the working class gets to the wealthy elite.”

“Even your present wealth is not a true measure of your power. The strength of your wealth at this moment is only an empty shell. That is why you are crying out your feeble little battle-cry, ‘Return to the ways of our fathers.’ You are aware of your impotency. You know that your strength is an empty shell. And I’ll show you the emptiness of it.

“Even your current wealth isn't a real measure of your power. The strength of your wealth right now is just an empty shell. That's why you're shouting your weak little battle-cry, ‘Return to the ways of our fathers.’ You're aware of your helplessness. You know that your strength is an empty shell. And I’ll show you how hollow it is."

“What power have the farmers? Over fifty per cent are thralls by virtue of the fact that they are merely tenants or are mortgaged. And all of them are thralls by virtue of the fact that the trusts already own or control (which is the same thing only better)—own and control all the means of marketing the crops, such as cold storage, railroads, elevators, and steamship lines. And, furthermore, the trusts control the markets. In all this the farmers are without power. As regards their political and governmental power, I’ll take that up later, along with the political and governmental power of the whole middle class.

"What power do farmers have? More than fifty percent are basically slaves because they are just tenants or are in debt. And all of them are essentially powerless because the trusts already own or control—it's really the same thing but even worse—all the ways to sell their crops, like cold storage facilities, railroads, grain elevators, and shipping lines. Plus, the trusts have control over the markets. In all this, farmers lack power. As for their political and governmental power, I'll address that later, along with the political and governmental power of the entire middle class."

“Day by day the trusts squeeze out the farmers as they squeezed out Mr. Calvin and the rest of the dairymen. And day by day are the merchants squeezed out in the same way. Do you remember how, in six months, the Tobacco Trust squeezed out over four hundred cigar stores in New York City alone? Where are the old-time owners of the coal fields? You know today, without my telling you, that the Railroad Trust owns or controls the entire anthracite and bituminous coal fields. Doesn’t the Standard Oil Trust[6] own a score of the ocean lines? And does it not also control copper, to say nothing of running a smelter trust as a little side enterprise? There are ten thousand cities in the United States to-night lighted by the companies owned or controlled by Standard Oil, and in as many cities all the electric transportation,—urban, suburban, and interurban,—is in the hands of Standard Oil. The small capitalists who were in these thousands of enterprises are gone. You know that. It’s the same way that you are going.

“Day by day, the trusts push out the farmers just like they pushed out Mr. Calvin and the other dairymen. And day by day, the merchants are being pushed out in the same way. Do you remember how, in just six months, the Tobacco Trust drove away over four hundred cigar stores in New York City alone? Where are the old-time coal field owners? You know today, without me telling you, that the Railroad Trust owns or controls all of the anthracite and bituminous coal fields. Doesn’t the Standard Oil Trust own a number of shipping lines? And doesn’t it also control copper, not to mention running a smelter trust as a little side business? There are ten thousand cities in the United States tonight that are lit by companies owned or controlled by Standard Oil, and in just as many cities, all the electric transportation—urban, suburban, and interurban—is controlled by Standard Oil. The small investors who were part of these thousands of businesses are gone. You know that. It’s the same way you’re heading.”

[6] Standard Oil and Rockefeller—see footnote [10]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Standard Oil and Rockefeller—see footnote __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__

“The small manufacturer is like the farmer; and small manufacturers and farmers to-day are reduced, to all intents and purposes, to feudal tenure. For that matter, the professional men and the artists are at this present moment villeins in everything but name, while the politicians are henchmen. Why do you, Mr. Calvin, work all your nights and days to organize the farmers, along with the rest of the middle class, into a new political party? Because the politicians of the old parties will have nothing to do with your atavistic ideas; and with your atavistic ideas, they will have nothing to do because they are what I said they are, henchmen, retainers of the Plutocracy.

The small manufacturer is like the farmer; and today, small manufacturers and farmers are essentially stuck in a feudal system. In fact, professional people and artists are, in every way that counts, serfs in name only, while politicians act as their enforcers. Why do you, Mr. Calvin, spend all your nights and days trying to unite the farmers and the rest of the middle class into a new political group? Because the politicians from the old parties won’t engage with your outdated ideas; and they refuse to engage because, as I mentioned, they are just henchmen, servants of the wealthy elite.

“I spoke of the professional men and the artists as villeins. What else are they? One and all, the professors, the preachers, and the editors, hold their jobs by serving the Plutocracy, and their service consists of propagating only such ideas as are either harmless to or commendatory of the Plutocracy. Whenever they propagate ideas that menace the Plutocracy, they lose their jobs, in which case, if they have not provided for the rainy day, they descend into the proletariat and either perish or become working-class agitators. And don’t forget that it is the press, the pulpit, and the university that mould public opinion, set the thought-pace of the nation. As for the artists, they merely pander to the little less than ignoble tastes of the Plutocracy.

“I referred to the professionals and artists as peasants. What else could they be? All of them—professors, preachers, and editors—keep their positions by serving the wealthy elite, and their service involves spreading only those ideas that are either safe for or favorable to the wealthy. Whenever they promote ideas that threaten the wealthy, they lose their jobs, and if they haven’t saved for tough times, they fall into the working class and either struggle to survive or become labor activists. And let’s not forget that it’s the media, the clergy, and the universities that shape public opinion and set the intellectual pace of the country. As for the artists, they merely cater to the barely respectable tastes of the wealthy elite.”

“But after all, wealth in itself is not the real power; it is the means to power, and power is governmental. Who controls the government to-day? The proletariat with its twenty millions engaged in occupations? Even you laugh at the idea. Does the middle class, with its eight million occupied members? No more than the proletariat. Who, then, controls the government? The Plutocracy, with its paltry quarter of a million of occupied members. But this quarter of a million does not control the government, though it renders yeoman service. It is the brain of the Plutocracy that controls the government, and this brain consists of seven[7] small and powerful groups of men. And do not forget that these groups are working to-day practically in unison.

“But after all, wealth itself isn’t real power; it’s just a way to achieve power, and power is about government. Who controls the government today? The working class with its twenty million people in jobs? Even you would laugh at that. What about the middle class, with its eight million working members? Not any more than the working class. So, who controls the government? The wealthy elite, with their meager quarter of a million working members. But this quarter of a million doesn’t truly control the government, even though they do important work. It’s the minds of the wealthy elite that actually run the government, and this group consists of seven[7] small, powerful groups of men. And don’t forget that these groups are almost working together today.”

[7] Even as late as 1907, it was considered that eleven groups dominated the country, but this number was reduced by the amalgamation of the five railroad groups into a supreme combination of all the railroads. These five groups so amalgamated, along with their financial and political allies, were (1) James J. Hill with his control of the Northwest; (2) the Pennsylvania railway group, Schiff financial manager, with big banking firms of Philadelphia and New York; (3) Harriman, with Frick for counsel and Odell as political lieutenant, controlling the central continental, Southwestern and Southern Pacific Coast lines of transportation; (4) the Gould family railway interests; and (5) Moore, Reid, and Leeds, known as the “Rock Island crowd.” These strong oligarchs arose out of the conflict of competition and travelled the inevitable road toward combination.

[7] Even as late as 1907, it was believed that eleven groups dominated the country, but this number was reduced when five railroad groups merged into a powerful combination of all the railroads. These five groups, along with their financial and political allies, included (1) James J. Hill, who controlled the Northwest; (2) the Pennsylvania railway group led by Schiff, with major banks from Philadelphia and New York; (3) Harriman, with Frick as advisor and Odell as political deputy, controlling the central continental, Southwestern, and Southern Pacific Coast transportation lines; (4) the railway interests of the Gould family; and (5) Moore, Reid, and Leeds, known as the “Rock Island crowd.” These powerful oligarchs emerged from competitive conflicts and followed the inevitable path toward consolidation.

“Let me point out the power of but one of them, the railroad group. It employs forty thousand lawyers to defeat the people in the courts. It issues countless thousands of free passes to judges, bankers, editors, ministers, university men, members of state legislatures, and of Congress. It maintains luxurious lobbies[8] at every state capital, and at the national capital; and in all the cities and towns of the land it employs an immense army of pettifoggers and small politicians whose business is to attend primaries, pack conventions, get on juries, bribe judges, and in every way to work for its interests.[9]

“Let me highlight the influence of just one of them, the railroad group. It has forty thousand lawyers working to outmaneuver the public in courts. It hands out countless free passes to judges, bankers, editors, ministers, university professors, state legislators, and Congress members. It maintains lavish lobbies [8] in every state capital and at the national level; and in all the cities and towns, it employs a vast number of unscrupulous lawyers and minor politicians whose job is to attend primaries, pack conventions, serve on juries, bribe judges, and do whatever it takes to promote its interests. [9]

[8] Lobby—a peculiar institution for bribing, bulldozing, and corrupting the legislators who were supposed to represent the people’s interests.

[8] Lobby—a strange system for bribing, pressuring, and corrupting the lawmakers who were meant to represent the people’s interests.

[9] A decade before this speech of Everhard’s, the New York Board of Trade issued a report from which the following is quoted: “The railroads control absolutely the legislatures of a majority of the states of the Union; they make and unmake United States Senators, congressmen, and governors, and are practically dictators of the governmental policy of the United States.

[9] Ten years before Everhard’s speech, the New York Board of Trade released a report from which this quote is taken: “The railroads have complete control over the legislatures of most states in the Union; they create and destroy United States Senators, congress members, and governors, and are essentially the dictators of the government's policy in the United States.

“Gentlemen, I have merely sketched the power of one of the seven groups that constitute the brain of the Plutocracy.[10] Your twenty-four billions of wealth does not give you twenty-five cents’ worth of governmental power. It is an empty shell, and soon even the empty shell will be taken away from you. The Plutocracy has all power in its hands to-day. It to-day makes the laws, for it owns the Senate, Congress, the courts, and the state legislatures. And not only that. Behind law must be force to execute the law. To-day the Plutocracy makes the law, and to enforce the law it has at its beck and call the police, the army, the navy, and, lastly, the militia, which is you, and me, and all of us.”

“Gentlemen, I have simply outlined the influence of one of the seven groups that make up the brain of the Plutocracy. Your twenty-four billion dollars in wealth doesn't give you even a quarter's worth of governmental power. It's an empty facade, and soon even that facade will be taken from you. The Plutocracy has all the power today. It creates the laws because it controls the Senate, Congress, the courts, and the state legislatures. And that's not all. Behind every law, there must be force to enforce it. Right now, the Plutocracy makes the laws, and to enforce them, it has access to the police, the army, the navy, and ultimately, the militia—which includes you, me, and all of us.”

[10] Rockefeller began as a member of the proletariat, and through thrift and cunning succeeded in developing the first perfect trust, namely that known as Standard Oil. We cannot forbear giving the following remarkable page from the history of the times, to show how the need for reinvestment of the Standard Oil surplus crushed out small capitalists and hastened the breakdown of the capitalist system. David Graham Phillips was a radical writer of the period, and the quotation, by him, is taken from a copy of the Saturday Evening Post, dated October 4, 1902 A.D. This is the only copy of this publication that has come down to us, and yet, from its appearance and content, we cannot but conclude that it was one of the popular periodicals with a large circulation. The quotation here follows:
    “About ten years ago Rockefeller’s income was given as thirty millions by an excellent authority. He had reached the limit of profitable investment of profits in the oil industry. Here, then, were these enormous sums in cash pouring in—more than $2,000,000 a month for John Davison Rockefeller alone. The problem of reinvestment became more serious. It became a nightmare. The oil income was swelling, swelling, and the number of sound investments limited, even more limited than it is now. It was through no special eagerness for more gains that the Rockefellers began to branch out from oil into other things. They were forced, swept on by this inrolling tide of wealth which their monopoly magnet irresistibly attracted. They developed a staff of investment seekers and investigators. It is said that the chief of this staff has a salary of $125,000 a year.
    “The first conspicuous excursion and incursion of the Rockefellers was into the railway field. By 1895 they controlled one-fifth of the railway mileage of the country. What do they own or, through dominant ownership, control to-day? They are powerful in all the great railways of New York, north, east, and west, except one, where their share is only a few millions. They are in most of the great railways radiating from Chicago. They dominate in several of the systems that extend to the Pacific. It is their votes that make Mr. Morgan so potent, though, it may be added, they need his brains more than he needs their votes— at present, and the combination of the two constitutes in large measure the ‘community of interest.’
    “But railways could not alone absorb rapidly enough those mighty floods of gold. Presently John D. Rockefeller’s $2,500,000 a month had increased to four, to five, to six millions a month, to $75,000,000 a year. Illuminating oil was becoming all profit. The reinvestments of income were adding their mite of many annual millions.
    “The Rockefellers went into gas and electricity when those industries had developed to the safe investment stage. And now a large part of the American people must begin to enrich the Rockefellers as soon as the sun goes down, no matter what form of illuminant they use. They went into farm mortgages. It is said that when prosperity a few years ago enabled the farmers to rid themselves of their mortgages, John D. Rockefeller was moved almost to tears; eight millions which he had thought taken care of for years to come at a good interest were suddenly dumped upon his doorstep and there set up a-squawking for a new home. This unexpected addition to his worriments in finding places for the progeny of his petroleum and their progeny and their progeny’s progeny was too much for the equanimity of a man without a digestion. . . .
    “The Rockefellers went into mines—iron and coal and copper and lead; into other industrial companies; into street railways, into national, state, and municipal bonds; into steamships and steamboats and telegraphy; into real estate, into skyscrapers and residences and hotels and business blocks; into life insurance, into banking. There was soon literally no field of industry where their millions were not at work. . . .
    “The Rockefeller bank—the National City Bank—is by itself far and away the biggest bank in the United States. It is exceeded in the world only by the Bank of England and the Bank of France. The deposits average more than one hundred millions a day; and it dominates the call loan market on Wall Street and the stock market. But it is not alone; it is the head of the Rockefeller chain of banks, which includes fourteen banks and trust companies in New York City, and banks of great strength and influence in every large money center in the country.
    “John D. Rockefeller owns Standard Oil stock worth between four and five hundred millions at the market quotations. He has a hundred millions in the steel trust, almost as much in a single western railway system, half as much in a second, and so on and on and on until the mind wearies of the cataloguing. His income last year was about $100,000,000— it is doubtful if the incomes of all the Rothschilds together make a greater sum. And it is going up by leaps and bounds.

[10] Rockefeller started out as part of the working class, and through frugality and smart moves, he successfully created the first perfect trust, known as Standard Oil. We can't help but share this remarkable excerpt from that era's history to illustrate how the need to reinvest Standard Oil’s profits pushed out small business owners and sped up the decline of the capitalist system. David Graham Phillips was a radical writer of the time, and the quote is taken from a copy of the Saturday Evening Post, dated October 4, 1902. This is the only known copy of this publication that has survived, and judging by its appearance and content, we can conclude it was a popular magazine with a wide readership. The quote is as follows:
    “About ten years ago, an excellent source reported Rockefeller’s income to be thirty million. He had reached the limit of profitable investment of profits in the oil industry. So, there were these huge cash inflows—over $2,000,000 a month just for John Davison Rockefeller. The challenge of reinvestment became more serious. It turned into a nightmare. The oil profits kept growing, and the number of good investments was limited, even more so than now. It wasn't out of a special desire for more profits that the Rockefellers started branching out from oil into other sectors. They were compelled, carried along by this overwhelming surge of wealth that their monopoly attracted. They built a team of investment seekers and researchers. It is said that the head of this team earns a $125,000 annual salary.
    “The first noticeable venture of the Rockefellers was in the railway industry. By 1895, they controlled one-fifth of the railway mileage in the country. What do they own or control through significant ownership today? They have considerable influence over all the major railways in New York—north, east, and west—except one, where their stake is only a few million. They are involved in most of the major rail lines radiating from Chicago. They have significant control in several systems extending to the Pacific. It's their votes that make Mr. Morgan powerful, although it may be added that they rely more on his brains than he does on their votes—at least for now, and the combination of the two largely forms the ‘community of interest.’
    “But railways alone couldn't absorb the massive waves of wealth quickly enough. Soon, John D. Rockefeller’s income of $2,500,000 a month had increased to four, then five, then six million a month, reaching $75,000,000 a year. The oil business was becoming incredibly profitable. The reinvested income was contributing millions annually.
    “The Rockefellers ventured into gas and electricity after those industries became safe investments. Now, a large portion of Americans enrich the Rockefellers as soon as the sun sets, regardless of what kind of lights they use. They invested in farm mortgages. It is said that when farmers, aided by prosperity a few years ago, managed to pay off their mortgages, John D. Rockefeller was nearly in tears; eight million dollars that he thought were secured for years to come at a good interest rate suddenly landed on his doorstep, clamoring for a new home. This unexpected addition to his worries in finding places for his wealth's offspring and their offspring's offspring was too much for a man without a strong constitution. . . .
    “The Rockefellers expanded into mining—iron, coal, copper, and lead; into various industrial companies; into street railways, national, state, and municipal bonds; into steamships and telegraph services; into real estate, skyscrapers, residences, hotels, and commercial buildings; into life insurance, and banking. There was practically no industry where their millions weren't at work. . . .
    “The Rockefeller bank—the National City Bank—is far and away the largest bank in the United States. It is surpassed only by the Bank of England and the Bank of France on a global scale. It has deposits averaging over one hundred million dollars a day; it dominates the call loan market on Wall Street and the stock market. But it’s not alone; it's the head of the Rockefeller chain of banks, which includes fourteen banks and trust companies in New York City and banks with significant strength and influence in every major financial center in the country.
    “John D. Rockefeller owns Standard Oil stock valued at between four and five hundred million dollars at the current market rates. He has a hundred million in the steel trust, almost as much in a single western railway system, and half as much in a second, and so on, until it becomes exhausting to list. His income last year was about $100,000,000—it's uncertain whether the combined incomes of all the Rothschilds exceed this amount. And it continues to grow rapidly.

Little discussion took place after this, and the dinner soon broke up. All were quiet and subdued, and leave-taking was done with low voices. It seemed almost that they were scared by the vision of the times they had seen.

Little discussion took place after this, and the dinner soon broke up. Everyone was quiet and subdued, and farewells were said in hushed tones. It almost felt like they were frightened by the sight of the times they had witnessed.

“The situation is, indeed, serious,” Mr. Calvin said to Ernest. “I have little quarrel with the way you have depicted it. Only I disagree with you about the doom of the middle class. We shall survive, and we shall overthrow the trusts.”

“The situation is definitely serious,” Mr. Calvin said to Ernest. “I don’t really disagree with how you’ve portrayed it. I just think you're wrong about the fate of the middle class. We will survive, and we will take down the trusts.”

“And return to the ways of your fathers,” Ernest finished for him.

“And go back to the ways of your fathers,” Ernest finished for him.

“Even so,” Mr. Calvin answered gravely. “I know it’s a sort of machine-breaking, and that it is absurd. But then life seems absurd to-day, what of the machinations of the Plutocracy. And at any rate, our sort of machine-breaking is at least practical and possible, which your dream is not. Your socialistic dream is . . . well, a dream. We cannot follow you.”

“Even so,” Mr. Calvin replied seriously. “I realize it’s a form of sabotage, and that it sounds ridiculous. But life feels absurd today, given the schemes of the wealthy elite. And at least our form of sabotage is practical and doable, which your vision isn’t. Your socialist vision is... well, just a vision. We can’t support you.”

“I only wish you fellows knew a little something about evolution and sociology,” Ernest said wistfully, as they shook hands. “We would be saved so much trouble if you did.”

“I just wish you guys knew a bit about evolution and sociology,” Ernest said with a hint of regret as they shook hands. “It would save us all so much hassle if you did.”

CHAPTER X.
THE VORTEX

Following like thunder claps upon the Business Men’s dinner, occurred event after event of terrifying moment; and I, little I, who had lived so placidly all my days in the quiet university town, found myself and my personal affairs drawn into the vortex of the great world-affairs. Whether it was my love for Ernest, or the clear sight he had given me of the society in which I lived, that made me a revolutionist, I know not; but a revolutionist I became, and I was plunged into a whirl of happenings that would have been inconceivable three short months before.

After the thunderous applause at the Business Men’s dinner, a series of terrifying events unfolded, and I, someone who had always lived peacefully in the quiet university town, found my life and personal matters pulled into the chaos of world affairs. I’m not sure whether it was my love for Ernest or the clear perspective he gave me about the society I was part of that turned me into a revolutionary, but a revolutionary I became, and I was thrown into a whirlwind of events that would have seemed unimaginable just three months earlier.

The crisis in my own fortunes came simultaneously with great crises in society. First of all, father was discharged from the university. Oh, he was not technically discharged. His resignation was demanded, that was all. This, in itself, did not amount to much. Father, in fact, was delighted. He was especially delighted because his discharge had been precipitated by the publication of his book, “Economics and Education.” It clinched his argument, he contended. What better evidence could be advanced to prove that education was dominated by the capitalist class?

The crisis in my life came at the same time as significant upheavals in society. First off, my dad was let go from the university. Well, he wasn’t technically fired. They just asked for his resignation, that’s all. This didn’t really mean much. In fact, my dad was thrilled. He was especially happy because his departure was triggered by the release of his book, “Economics and Education.” He argued that it solidified his point. What better proof could there be that education was controlled by the capitalist class?

But this proof never got anywhere. Nobody knew he had been forced to resign from the university. He was so eminent a scientist that such an announcement, coupled with the reason for his enforced resignation, would have created somewhat of a furor all over the world. The newspapers showered him with praise and honor, and commended him for having given up the drudgery of the lecture room in order to devote his whole time to scientific research.

But this proof never gained any traction. No one knew he had been forced to resign from the university. He was such a prominent scientist that an announcement like that, along with the reason for his forced resignation, would have caused quite a stir globally. The newspapers praised and honored him, commending him for leaving the grind of teaching to dedicate his entire time to scientific research.

At first father laughed. Then he became angry—tonic angry. Then came the suppression of his book. This suppression was performed secretly, so secretly that at first we could not comprehend. The publication of the book had immediately caused a bit of excitement in the country. Father had been politely abused in the capitalist press, the tone of the abuse being to the effect that it was a pity so great a scientist should leave his field and invade the realm of sociology, about which he knew nothing and wherein he had promptly become lost. This lasted for a week, while father chuckled and said the book had touched a sore spot on capitalism. And then, abruptly, the newspapers and the critical magazines ceased saying anything about the book at all. Also, and with equal suddenness, the book disappeared from the market. Not a copy was obtainable from any bookseller. Father wrote to the publishers and was informed that the plates had been accidentally injured. An unsatisfactory correspondence followed. Driven finally to an unequivocal stand, the publishers stated that they could not see their way to putting the book into type again, but that they were willing to relinquish their rights in it.

At first, Dad laughed. Then he got angry—really angry. Then came the suppression of his book. This suppression was carried out so quietly that we initially couldn't understand it. The book's publication had immediately stirred up some excitement in the country. Dad had been politely criticized in the capitalist press, with the tone of the criticisms suggesting that it was a shame such a brilliant scientist would leave his field and dive into sociology, which he knew nothing about and where he had quickly gotten lost. This went on for a week, while Dad chuckled and said the book had hit a nerve with capitalism. Then, suddenly, the newspapers and critical magazines stopped mentioning the book entirely. Just as suddenly, the book disappeared from the market. Not a single copy could be found at any bookstore. Dad wrote to the publishers and was told the plates had been accidentally damaged. An unsatisfactory exchange followed. Finally taking a clear position, the publishers stated that they couldn't see a way to set the book in type again, but they were willing to give up their rights to it.

“And you won’t find another publishing house in the country to touch it,” Ernest said. “And if I were you, I’d hunt cover right now. You’ve merely got a foretaste of the Iron Heel.”

“And you won’t find another publishing house in the country that can compare,” Ernest said. “If I were you, I’d start looking for a cover right now. You’ve only had a glimpse of the Iron Heel.”

But father was nothing if not a scientist. He never believed in jumping to conclusions. A laboratory experiment was no experiment if it were not carried through in all its details. So he patiently went the round of the publishing houses. They gave a multitude of excuses, but not one house would consider the book.

But Dad was nothing if not a scientist. He never believed in jumping to conclusions. A lab experiment wasn’t really an experiment if it wasn’t carried out in full detail. So he patiently visited all the publishing houses. They gave a lot of excuses, but not a single house would consider the book.

When father became convinced that the book had actually been suppressed, he tried to get the fact into the newspapers; but his communications were ignored. At a political meeting of the socialists, where many reporters were present, father saw his chance. He arose and related the history of the suppression of the book. He laughed next day when he read the newspapers, and then he grew angry to a degree that eliminated all tonic qualities. The papers made no mention of the book, but they misreported him beautifully. They twisted his words and phrases away from the context, and turned his subdued and controlled remarks into a howling anarchistic speech. It was done artfully. One instance, in particular, I remember. He had used the phrase “social revolution.” The reporter merely dropped out “social.” This was sent out all over the country in an Associated Press despatch, and from all over the country arose a cry of alarm. Father was branded as a nihilist and an anarchist, and in one cartoon that was copied widely he was portrayed waving a red flag at the head of a mob of long-haired, wild-eyed men who bore in their hands torches, knives, and dynamite bombs.

When my dad became convinced that the book had actually been suppressed, he tried to get the story published in the newspapers, but his efforts were ignored. At a political meeting of the socialists, where many reporters were present, he saw his opportunity. He stood up and shared the story of the book's suppression. The next day, he laughed when he read the newspapers, but then he became so angry that it took away all his energy. The papers didn’t mention the book at all, but they reported on him inaccurately. They twisted his words and phrases out of context, turning his calm and measured remarks into a wildly radical speech. It was done very cleverly. There was one particular example that I remember. He had used the phrase “social revolution.” The reporter just dropped the word “social.” This got sent out across the country in an Associated Press dispatch, and a wave of panic arose nationwide. My dad was branded as a nihilist and an anarchist, and in one cartoon that circulated widely, he was depicted waving a red flag at the front of a mob of wild-eyed men with long hair, who were holding torches, knives, and dynamite bombs.

He was assailed terribly in the press, in long and abusive editorials, for his anarchy, and hints were made of mental breakdown on his part. This behavior, on the part of the capitalist press, was nothing new, Ernest told us. It was the custom, he said, to send reporters to all the socialist meetings for the express purpose of misreporting and distorting what was said, in order to frighten the middle class away from any possible affiliation with the proletariat. And repeatedly Ernest warned father to cease fighting and to take to cover.

He was attacked harshly in the media, with long and abusive editorials criticizing his anarchy and suggesting he was having a mental breakdown. Ernest told us this kind of behavior from the capitalist press wasn't new. He explained that it was common practice to send reporters to socialist meetings specifically to misreport and distort what was said, aiming to scare the middle class away from getting involved with the working class. Over and over, Ernest urged our father to stop fighting and to stay out of sight.

The socialist press of the country took up the fight, however, and throughout the reading portion of the working class it was known that the book had been suppressed. But this knowledge stopped with the working class. Next, the “Appeal to Reason,” a big socialist publishing house, arranged with father to bring out the book. Father was jubilant, but Ernest was alarmed.

The socialist media in the country took on the struggle, and among the working class, it was well-known that the book had been banned. However, this awareness didn't extend beyond the working class. Then, the “Appeal to Reason,” a major socialist publishing house, teamed up with Dad to publish the book. Dad was thrilled, but Ernest was worried.

“I tell you we are on the verge of the unknown,” he insisted. “Big things are happening secretly all around us. We can feel them. We do not know what they are, but they are there. The whole fabric of society is a-tremble with them. Don’t ask me. I don’t know myself. But out of this flux of society something is about to crystallize. It is crystallizing now. The suppression of the book is a precipitation. How many books have been suppressed? We haven’t the least idea. We are in the dark. We have no way of learning. Watch out next for the suppression of the socialist press and socialist publishing houses. I’m afraid it’s coming. We are going to be throttled.”

“I’m telling you we’re on the brink of the unknown,” he insisted. “Big things are happening secretly all around us. We can feel them. We don’t know what they are, but they’re there. The entire fabric of society is trembling with them. Don’t ask me. I don’t know either. But within this turmoil of society, something is about to take shape. It’s happening now. The censorship of the book is a sign of that. How many books have been banned? We have no idea. We’re in the dark. We have no way to find out. Be prepared for the censorship of the socialist press and socialist publishing houses next. I’m worried it’s coming. We’re going to be choked.”

Ernest had his hand on the pulse of events even more closely than the rest of the socialists, and within two days the first blow was struck. The Appeal to Reason was a weekly, and its regular circulation amongst the proletariat was seven hundred and fifty thousand. Also, it very frequently got out special editions of from two to five millions. These great editions were paid for and distributed by the small army of voluntary workers who had marshalled around the Appeal. The first blow was aimed at these special editions, and it was a crushing one. By an arbitrary ruling of the Post Office, these editions were decided to be not the regular circulation of the paper, and for that reason were denied admission to the mails.

Ernest was even more in tune with the events than the other socialists, and within two days, the first strike happened. The Appeal to Reason was a weekly publication, with a regular circulation of seven hundred fifty thousand among the working class. It also often released special editions ranging from two to five million copies. These large editions were funded and distributed by a dedicated group of volunteers who rallied around the Appeal. The first hit was directed at these special editions, and it was a significant blow. An arbitrary decision by the Post Office classified these editions as not part of the paper's regular circulation, which resulted in them being banned from the mail.

A week later the Post Office Department ruled that the paper was seditious, and barred it entirely from the mails. This was a fearful blow to the socialist propaganda. The Appeal was desperate. It devised a plan of reaching its subscribers through the express companies, but they declined to handle it. This was the end of the Appeal. But not quite. It prepared to go on with its book publishing. Twenty thousand copies of father’s book were in the bindery, and the presses were turning off more. And then, without warning, a mob arose one night, and, under a waving American flag, singing patriotic songs, set fire to the great plant of the Appeal and totally destroyed it.

A week later, the Post Office Department decided that the paper was seditious and completely banned it from the mail. This was a serious blow to socialist propaganda. The Appeal was in a tough spot. It came up with a plan to reach its subscribers through express companies, but they refused to handle it. This seemed like the end of the Appeal. But not quite. It prepared to continue with its book publishing. Twenty thousand copies of father’s book were in the bindery, and the presses were producing more. Then, without warning, a mob gathered one night, waving an American flag and singing patriotic songs, and set fire to the main facility of the Appeal, completely destroying it.

Now Girard, Kansas, was a quiet, peaceable town. There had never been any labor troubles there. The Appeal paid union wages; and, in fact, was the backbone of the town, giving employment to hundreds of men and women. It was not the citizens of Girard that composed the mob. This mob had risen up out of the earth apparently, and to all intents and purposes, its work done, it had gone back into the earth. Ernest saw in the affair the most sinister import.

Now Girard, Kansas, was a quiet, peaceful town. There had never been any labor issues there. The Appeal paid union wages and was, in fact, the backbone of the town, providing jobs for hundreds of men and women. It wasn't the citizens of Girard who made up the mob. This mob seemed to have risen from the ground, and once its purpose was fulfilled, it vanished back into the earth. Ernest perceived the situation with a sense of foreboding.

“The Black Hundreds[1] are being organized in the United States,” he said. “This is the beginning. There will be more of it. The Iron Heel is getting bold.”

“The Black Hundreds[1] are being organized in the United States,” he said. “This is just the start. There will be more of this. The Iron Heel is getting bold.”

[1] The Black Hundreds were reactionary mobs organized by the perishing Autocracy in the Russian Revolution. These reactionary groups attacked the revolutionary groups, and also, at needed moments, rioted and destroyed property so as to afford the Autocracy the pretext of calling out the Cossacks.

[1] The Black Hundreds were reactionary mobs set up by the declining Autocracy during the Russian Revolution. These groups attacked revolutionary factions and at times rioted and destroyed property to give the Autocracy a reason to call in the Cossacks.

And so perished father’s book. We were to see much of the Black Hundreds as the days went by. Week by week more of the socialist papers were barred from the mails, and in a number of instances the Black Hundreds destroyed the socialist presses. Of course, the newspapers of the land lived up to the reactionary policy of the ruling class, and the destroyed socialist press was misrepresented and vilified, while the Black Hundreds were represented as true patriots and saviours of society. So convincing was all this misrepresentation that even sincere ministers in the pulpit praised the Black Hundreds while regretting the necessity of violence.

And so father’s book was lost. We were to encounter the Black Hundreds increasingly in the days ahead. Week by week, more socialist papers were banned from the mail, and in several instances, the Black Hundreds destroyed the socialist printing presses. Naturally, the newspapers of the country supported the reactionary agenda of the ruling class, misrepresenting and vilifying the destroyed socialist press, while portraying the Black Hundreds as genuine patriots and saviors of society. This misrepresentation was so effective that even sincere ministers in the pulpit praised the Black Hundreds, lamenting the need for violence.

History was making fast. The fall elections were soon to occur, and Ernest was nominated by the socialist party to run for Congress. His chance for election was most favorable. The street-car strike in San Francisco had been broken. And following upon it the teamsters’ strike had been broken. These two defeats had been very disastrous to organized labor. The whole Water Front Federation, along with its allies in the structural trades, had backed up the teamsters, and all had been smashed down ingloriously. It had been a bloody strike. The police had broken countless heads with their riot clubs; and the death list had been augmented by the turning loose of a machine-gun on the strikers from the barns of the Marsden Special Delivery Company.

History was moving quickly. The fall elections were approaching, and Ernest was nominated by the socialist party to run for Congress. His chances of being elected were very promising. The streetcar strike in San Francisco had been resolved, and shortly after, the teamsters' strike had also been resolved. These two defeats were extremely damaging to organized labor. The entire Water Front Federation, along with its allies in the construction trades, had supported the teamsters, and all had been crushed in a humiliating defeat. It had been a violent strike. The police had inflicted serious injuries with their riot batons, and the casualty count had increased when a machine gun was unleashed on the strikers from the barns of the Marsden Special Delivery Company.

In consequence, the men were sullen and vindictive. They wanted blood, and revenge. Beaten on their chosen field, they were ripe to seek revenge by means of political action. They still maintained their labor organization, and this gave them strength in the political struggle that was on. Ernest’s chance for election grew stronger and stronger. Day by day unions and more unions voted their support to the socialists, until even Ernest laughed when the Undertakers’ Assistants and the Chicken Pickers fell into line. Labor became mulish. While it packed the socialist meetings with mad enthusiasm, it was impervious to the wiles of the old-party politicians. The old-party orators were usually greeted with empty halls, though occasionally they encountered full halls where they were so roughly handled that more than once it was necessary to call out the police reserves.

As a result, the men were angry and vengeful. They wanted blood and revenge. After being beaten on their chosen battleground, they were ready to seek retribution through political action. They still had their labor organization, which gave them power in the ongoing political struggle. Ernest’s chances for election grew stronger every day. More and more unions pledged their support to the socialists, and even Ernest found it amusing when the Undertakers’ Assistants and the Chicken Pickers joined in. Labor became stubborn. While they packed the socialist meetings with wild enthusiasm, they ignored the tricks of the old-party politicians. The speeches from the old-party leaders were usually met with empty halls, though sometimes they ended up in full halls where they were treated so roughly that more than once, the police reserves had to be called in.

History was making fast. The air was vibrant with things happening and impending. The country was on the verge of hard times,[2] caused by a series of prosperous years wherein the difficulty of disposing abroad of the unconsumed surplus had become increasingly difficult. Industries were working short time; many great factories were standing idle against the time when the surplus should be gone; and wages were being cut right and left.

History was moving quickly. The atmosphere was buzzing with events happening and on the horizon. The country was on the brink of tough times, caused by a series of prosperous years where exporting the unspent surplus had become harder and harder. Industries were operating on reduced hours; many large factories were sitting idle, waiting for the surplus to disappear; and wages were being slashed everywhere.

[2] Under the capitalist régime these periods of hard times were as inevitable as they were absurd. Prosperity always brought calamity. This, of course, was due to the excess of unconsumed profits that was piled up.

[2] Under capitalism, tough times were just as unavoidable as they were ridiculous. Every time there was prosperity, disaster followed. This was, of course, because a surplus of unspent profits kept accumulating.

Also, the great machinist strike had been broken. Two hundred thousand machinists, along with their five hundred thousand allies in the metalworking trades, had been defeated in as bloody a strike as had ever marred the United States. Pitched battles had been fought with the small armies of armed strike-breakers[3] put in the field by the employers’ associations; the Black Hundreds, appearing in scores of wide-scattered places, had destroyed property; and, in consequence, a hundred thousand regular soldiers of the United States had been called out to put a frightful end to the whole affair. A number of the labor leaders had been executed; many others had been sentenced to prison, while thousands of the rank and file of the strikers had been herded into bull-pens[4] and abominably treated by the soldiers.

Also, the major machinist strike had been crushed. Two hundred thousand machinists, along with their five hundred thousand supporters in the metalworking trades, had been defeated in one of the bloodiest strikes ever to occur in the United States. Violent clashes had taken place with the small armies of armed strike-breakers[3] deployed by the employers’ associations; violent groups, known as the Black Hundreds, had wreaked havoc in numerous scattered locations, destroying property; as a result, a hundred thousand regular soldiers of the United States had been mobilized to forcibly end the entire situation. Several labor leaders had been executed, many others had received prison sentences, while thousands of ordinary strikers had been rounded up into bullpens[4] and treated horribly by the soldiers.

[3] Strike-breakers—these were, in purpose and practice and everything except name, the private soldiers of the capitalists. They were thoroughly organized and well armed, and they were held in readiness to be hurled in special trains to any part of the country where labor went on strike or was locked out by the employers. Only those curious times could have given rise to the amazing spectacle of one, Farley, a notorious commander of strike-breakers, who, in 1906, swept across the United States in special trains from New York to San Francisco with an army of twenty-five hundred men, fully armed and equipped, to break a strike of the San Francisco street-car men. Such an act was in direct violation of the laws of the land. The fact that this act, and thousands of similar acts, went unpunished, goes to show how completely the judiciary was the creature of the Plutocracy.

[3] Strike-breakers—these were, in purpose and function and everything except name, the private soldiers of the wealthy. They were well-organized and armed, always on standby to be sent in special trains to any part of the country where workers were striking or had been locked out by their employers. Only those unusual times could have produced the remarkable sight of one, Farley, a well-known leader of strike-breakers, who, in 1906, traveled across the United States in special trains from New York to San Francisco with an army of twenty-five hundred fully armed and equipped men to break a strike by the San Francisco streetcar workers. Such an action was in clear violation of the country’s laws. The fact that this action, along with thousands of similar ones, went unpunished, shows how completely the judiciary was under the influence of the wealthy elite.

[4] Bull-pen—in a miners’ strike in Idaho, in the latter part of the nineteenth century, it happened that many of the strikers were confined in a bull-pen by the troops. The practice and the name continued in the twentieth century.

[4] Bull-pen—during a miners' strike in Idaho in the late nineteenth century, many of the strikers were held in a bull-pen by the military. This practice and the term continued into the twentieth century.

The years of prosperity were now to be paid for. All markets were glutted; all markets were falling; and amidst the general crumble of prices the price of labor crumbled fastest of all. The land was convulsed with industrial dissensions. Labor was striking here, there, and everywhere; and where it was not striking, it was being turned out by the capitalists. The papers were filled with tales of violence and blood. And through it all the Black Hundreds played their part. Riot, arson, and wanton destruction of property was their function, and well they performed it. The whole regular army was in the field, called there by the actions of the Black Hundreds.[5] All cities and towns were like armed camps, and laborers were shot down like dogs. Out of the vast army of the unemployed the strike-breakers were recruited; and when the strike-breakers were worsted by the labor unions, the troops always appeared and crushed the unions. Then there was the militia. As yet, it was not necessary to have recourse to the secret militia law. Only the regularly organized militia was out, and it was out everywhere. And in this time of terror, the regular army was increased an additional hundred thousand by the government.

The years of prosperity were now coming to an end. All markets were over-saturated; prices were dropping; and amid the general decline, the price of labor fell the fastest. The land was torn apart by industrial conflict. Workers were striking everywhere, and where they weren't striking, they were being fired by the capitalists. The newspapers were filled with stories of violence and bloodshed. Throughout it all, the Black Hundreds had their role. Rioting, arson, and senseless destruction of property were their tasks, and they executed them well. The entire regular army was deployed, called into action by the Black Hundreds. All cities and towns resembled armed camps, and laborers were shot down like animals. From the enormous pool of unemployed individuals, strike-breakers were recruited; when the strike-breakers were beaten by the labor unions, the troops always came in and crushed the unions. Then there was the militia. At this point, it wasn’t necessary to use the secret militia law. Only the officially organized militia was active, and it was present everywhere. During this time of fear, the government also increased the regular army by an additional hundred thousand troops.

[5] The name only, and not the idea, was imported from Russia. The Black Hundreds were a development out of the secret agents of the capitalists, and their use arose in the labor struggles of the nineteenth century. There is no discussion of this. No less an authority of the times than Carroll D. Wright, United States Commissioner of Labor, is responsible for the statement. From his book, entitled “The Battles of Labor,” is quoted the declaration that “in some of the great historic strikes the employers themselves have instigated acts of violence;” that manufacturers have deliberately provoked strikes in order to get rid of surplus stock; and that freight cars have been burned by employers’ agents during railroad strikes in order to increase disorder. It was out of these secret agents of the employers that the Black Hundreds arose; and it was they, in turn, that later became that terrible weapon of the Oligarchy, the agents-provocateurs.

[5] The name alone, not the idea, was brought over from Russia. The Black Hundreds emerged from the secret agents of the capitalists, and their use came about during the labor struggles of the nineteenth century. There's no debate about this. A prominent figure of that era, Carroll D. Wright, United States Commissioner of Labor, backs this claim. In his book, titled “The Battles of Labor,” he states that “in some of the great historic strikes the employers themselves have instigated acts of violence;” that manufacturers have intentionally provoked strikes to get rid of excess stock; and that freight cars have been set ablaze by employers' agents during railroad strikes to escalate chaos. The Black Hundreds originated from these secret agents of the employers, and they, in turn, later transformed into the frightening tool of the Oligarchy, the agents-provocateurs.

Never had labor received such an all-around beating. The great captains of industry, the oligarchs, had for the first time thrown their full weight into the breach the struggling employers’ associations had made. These associations were practically middle-class affairs, and now, compelled by hard times and crashing markets, and aided by the great captains of industry, they gave organized labor an awful and decisive defeat. It was an all-powerful alliance, but it was an alliance of the lion and the lamb, as the middle class was soon to learn.

Never had labor faced such a complete defeat. The top leaders of industry, the oligarchs, had for the first time fully stepped in to support the struggling employers’ associations. These associations were mostly middle-class organizations, but now, driven by tough times and collapsing markets, and backed by the powerful industrial leaders, they dealt organized labor a terrible and decisive blow. It was a formidable alliance, but it was an alliance of the lion and the lamb, as the middle class would soon discover.

Labor was bloody and sullen, but crushed. Yet its defeat did not put an end to the hard times. The banks, themselves constituting one of the most important forces of the Oligarchy, continued to call in credits. The Wall Street[6] group turned the stock market into a maelstrom where the values of all the land crumbled away almost to nothingness. And out of all the rack and ruin rose the form of the nascent Oligarchy, imperturbable, indifferent, and sure. Its serenity and certitude was terrifying. Not only did it use its own vast power, but it used all the power of the United States Treasury to carry out its plans.

Labor was rough and gloomy, but defeated. Still, its loss didn't bring an end to the tough times. The banks, which were one of the key forces of the Oligarchy, kept demanding repayments on debts. The Wall Street[6] group turned the stock market into a turmoil where the value of land shrank to nearly nothing. From all the chaos emerged the emerging Oligarchy, unshaken, indifferent, and confident. Its calmness and certainty were frightening. It not only wielded its own immense power but also used the full might of the United States Treasury to implement its plans.

[6] Wall Street—so named from a street in ancient New York, where was situated the stock exchange, and where the irrational organization of society permitted underhanded manipulation of all the industries of the country.

[6] Wall Street—named after a street in old New York, where the stock exchange was located, and where the chaotic structure of society allowed for shady manipulation of all the industries in the country.

The captains of industry had turned upon the middle class. The employers’ associations, that had helped the captains of industry to tear and rend labor, were now torn and rent by their quondam allies. Amidst the crashing of the middle men, the small business men and manufacturers, the trusts stood firm. Nay, the trusts did more than stand firm. They were active. They sowed wind, and wind, and ever more wind; for they alone knew how to reap the whirlwind and make a profit out of it. And such profits! Colossal profits! Strong enough themselves to weather the storm that was largely their own brewing, they turned loose and plundered the wrecks that floated about them. Values were pitifully and inconceivably shrunken, and the trusts added hugely to their holdings, even extending their enterprises into many new fields—and always at the expense of the middle class.

The leaders of industry had turned against the middle class. The employer associations that had helped these leaders attack labor were now being dismantled by their former allies. As the middlemen, small business owners, and manufacturers were being crushed, the trusts stood strong. In fact, the trusts did more than just stand their ground. They were proactive. They created chaos, and chaos, and more chaos; for they alone knew how to profit from the fallout. And what profits! Massive profits! Strong enough to survive the storm that they mostly caused themselves, they unleashed and exploited the wreckage that surrounded them. Values had fallen to a shocking degree, and the trusts expanded significantly, even branching into new areas—all at the expense of the middle class.

Thus the summer of 1912 witnessed the virtual death-thrust to the middle class. Even Ernest was astounded at the quickness with which it had been done. He shook his head ominously and looked forward without hope to the fall elections.

Thus the summer of 1912 saw the effective demise of the middle class. Even Ernest was shocked by how quickly it happened. He shook his head sadly and looked ahead with no hope for the upcoming fall elections.

“It’s no use,” he said. “We are beaten. The Iron Heel is here. I had hoped for a peaceable victory at the ballot-box. I was wrong. Wickson was right. We shall be robbed of our few remaining liberties; the Iron Heel will walk upon our faces; nothing remains but a bloody revolution of the working class. Of course we will win, but I shudder to think of it.”

“It’s pointless,” he said. “We’ve lost. The Iron Heel is here. I had hoped for a peaceful victory at the polls. I was wrong. Wickson was right. We’re going to lose our few remaining freedoms; the Iron Heel will stomp on us; all that’s left is a bloody revolution by the working class. Of course, we’ll win, but I dread to think about it.”

And from then on Ernest pinned his faith in revolution. In this he was in advance of his party. His fellow-socialists could not agree with him. They still insisted that victory could be gained through the elections. It was not that they were stunned. They were too cool-headed and courageous for that. They were merely incredulous, that was all. Ernest could not get them seriously to fear the coming of the Oligarchy. They were stirred by him, but they were too sure of their own strength. There was no room in their theoretical social evolution for an oligarchy, therefore the Oligarchy could not be.

And from that point on, Ernest put his faith in revolution. In this, he was ahead of his party. His fellow socialists couldn't agree with him. They still believed that victory could be achieved through elections. It wasn't that they were shocked; they were too level-headed and brave for that. They were just skeptical, that’s all. Ernest couldn't get them to truly fear the rise of the Oligarchy. They were inspired by him, but they were too confident in their own strength. There was no place in their idea of social evolution for an oligarchy, so they thought the Oligarchy couldn't exist.

“We’ll send you to Congress and it will be all right,” they told him at one of our secret meetings.

“We’ll send you to Congress, and everything will be fine,” they told him at one of our secret meetings.

“And when they take me out of Congress,” Ernest replied coldly, “and put me against a wall, and blow my brains out—what then?”

“And when they take me out of Congress,” Ernest replied coldly, “and put me against a wall and shoot me in the head—what then?”

“Then we’ll rise in our might,” a dozen voices answered at once.

“Then we’ll rise in our strength,” a dozen voices replied in unison.

“Then you’ll welter in your gore,” was his retort. “I’ve heard that song sung by the middle class, and where is it now in its might?”

“Then you’ll be drowning in your own blood,” was his reply. “I’ve heard that tune sung by the middle class, and where is its power now?”

CHAPTER XI.
THE GREAT ADVENTURE

Mr. Wickson did not send for father. They met by chance on the ferry-boat to San Francisco, so that the warning he gave father was not premeditated. Had they not met accidentally, there would not have been any warning. Not that the outcome would have been different, however. Father came of stout old Mayflower[1] stock, and the blood was imperative in him.

Mr. Wickson didn't call for Dad. They bumped into each other on the ferry to San Francisco, so the warning he gave Dad wasn't planned. If they hadn’t run into each other by chance, there wouldn’t have been any warning. Not that it would have changed the outcome, though. Dad came from strong old Mayflower stock, and that blood really mattered in him.

[1] One of the first ships that carried colonies to America, after the discovery of the New World. Descendants of these original colonists were for a while inordinately proud of their genealogy; but in time the blood became so widely diffused that it ran in the veins practically of all Americans.

[1] One of the first ships that brought settlers to America after the discovery of the New World. For a while, the descendants of these original settlers were extremely proud of their family heritage; but over time, the lineage became so widespread that it flowed in the veins of practically all Americans.

“Ernest was right,” he told me, as soon as he had returned home. “Ernest is a very remarkable young man, and I’d rather see you his wife than the wife of Rockefeller himself or the King of England.”

“Ernest was right,” he said to me as soon as he got home. “Ernest is an impressive young man, and I’d rather see you married to him than to Rockefeller himself or the King of England.”

“What’s the matter?” I asked in alarm.

"What's wrong?" I asked, concerned.

“The Oligarchy is about to tread upon our faces—yours and mine. Wickson as much as told me so. He was very kind—for an oligarch. He offered to reinstate me in the university. What do you think of that? He, Wickson, a sordid money-grabber, has the power to determine whether I shall or shall not teach in the university of the state. But he offered me even better than that—offered to make me president of some great college of physical sciences that is being planned—the Oligarchy must get rid of its surplus somehow, you see.

“The Oligarchy is about to step all over us—both you and me. Wickson practically told me as much. He was surprisingly nice—for an oligarch. He offered to reinstate me at the university. What do you think about that? He, Wickson, a greedy money-maker, has the power to decide whether I get to teach at the state university or not. But he proposed something even better—he offered to make me the president of some big college of physical sciences that’s in the works—the Oligarchy needs to offload its excess somehow, you see.”

“‘Do you remember what I told that socialist lover of your daughter’s?’ he said. ‘I told him that we would walk upon the faces of the working class. And so we shall. As for you, I have for you a deep respect as a scientist; but if you throw your fortunes in with the working class—well, watch out for your face, that is all.’ And then he turned and left me.”

“‘Do you remember what I said to that socialist who’s dating your daughter?’ he said. ‘I told him that we would walk all over the working class. And we will. As for you, I have a lot of respect for you as a scientist; but if you choose to side with the working class—well, just be careful of your face, that’s all.’ And then he turned and walked away.”

“It means we’ll have to marry earlier than you planned,” was Ernest’s comment when we told him.

“It means we’ll have to get married sooner than you planned,” was Ernest’s response when we told him.

I could not follow his reasoning, but I was soon to learn it. It was at this time that the quarterly dividend of the Sierra Mills was paid—or, rather, should have been paid, for father did not receive his. After waiting several days, father wrote to the secretary. Promptly came the reply that there was no record on the books of father’s owning any stock, and a polite request for more explicit information.

I couldn’t follow his logic, but I was about to find out. It was around this time that the quarterly dividend from the Sierra Mills was due—or, more accurately, should have been paid, because my dad didn’t receive his. After waiting a few days, my dad wrote to the secretary. A prompt reply came back saying there was no record of my dad owning any stock and politely asking for more details.

“I’ll make it explicit enough, confound him,” father declared, and departed for the bank to get the stock in question from his safe-deposit box.

“I’ll make it clear enough, damn him,” father declared, and left for the bank to get the stock in question from his safe-deposit box.

“Ernest is a very remarkable man,” he said when he got back and while I was helping him off with his overcoat. “I repeat, my daughter, that young man of yours is a very remarkable young man.”

“Ernest is a really impressive guy,” he said when he returned and while I was helping him take off his overcoat. “I’ll say it again, my daughter, that young man of yours is quite extraordinary.”

I had learned, whenever he praised Ernest in such fashion, to expect disaster.

I had learned that whenever he complimented Ernest like that, I should brace for trouble.

“They have already walked upon my face,” father explained. “There was no stock. The box was empty. You and Ernest will have to get married pretty quickly.”

“They have already walked on my face,” Dad explained. “There was no stock. The box was empty. You and Ernest will need to get married pretty soon.”

Father insisted on laboratory methods. He brought the Sierra Mills into court, but he could not bring the books of the Sierra Mills into court. He did not control the courts, and the Sierra Mills did. That explained it all. He was thoroughly beaten by the law, and the bare-faced robbery held good.

Father insisted on using laboratory methods. He brought the Sierra Mills to court, but he couldn't bring their records with him. He didn't have control over the courts, but the Sierra Mills did. That explained everything. He was completely defeated by the law, and the outright theft was allowed to stand.

It is almost laughable now, when I look back on it, the way father was beaten. He met Wickson accidentally on the street in San Francisco, and he told Wickson that he was a damned scoundrel. And then father was arrested for attempted assault, fined in the police court, and bound over to keep the peace. It was all so ridiculous that when he got home he had to laugh himself. But what a furor was raised in the local papers! There was grave talk about the bacillus of violence that infected all men who embraced socialism; and father, with his long and peaceful life, was instanced as a shining example of how the bacillus of violence worked. Also, it was asserted by more than one paper that father’s mind had weakened under the strain of scientific study, and confinement in a state asylum for the insane was suggested. Nor was this merely talk. It was an imminent peril. But father was wise enough to see it. He had the Bishop’s experience to lesson from, and he lessoned well. He kept quiet no matter what injustice was perpetrated on him, and really, I think, surprised his enemies.

It's almost laughable now, looking back, at how my father was beaten. He ran into Wickson by chance on the street in San Francisco and called Wickson a damned scoundrel. Then my father was arrested for attempted assault, fined in police court, and ordered to keep the peace. It was so ridiculous that when he got home, he had to laugh it off. But what a stir it caused in the local papers! There was serious talk about the violence bug that supposedly infected anyone who embraced socialism; and my father, with his long, peaceful life, was highlighted as a prime example of how this bug worked. More than one paper even claimed that my father’s mind had weakened from the pressure of his scientific studies and suggested confinement in a mental asylum. This wasn't just talk; it was a real threat. But my father was smart enough to recognize it. He had learned from the Bishop’s experience, and he learned well. He stayed quiet no matter what injustice was done to him, and honestly, I think he surprised his enemies.

There was the matter of the house—our home. A mortgage was foreclosed on it, and we had to give up possession. Of course there wasn’t any mortgage, and never had been any mortgage. The ground had been bought outright, and the house had been paid for when it was built. And house and lot had always been free and unencumbered. Nevertheless there was the mortgage, properly and legally drawn up and signed, with a record of the payments of interest through a number of years. Father made no outcry. As he had been robbed of his money, so was he now robbed of his home. And he had no recourse. The machinery of society was in the hands of those who were bent on breaking him. He was a philosopher at heart, and he was no longer even angry.

There was the issue of the house—our home. A mortgage had been foreclosed on it, and we had to give it up. Of course, there wasn't actually any mortgage, and there never had been. The land was bought outright, and the house was fully paid for when it was built. Both the house and the lot had always been free and clear of debt. Still, there was a mortgage, legally drawn up and signed, with records of interest payments made over several years. Father didn't complain. Just as he had been robbed of his money, now he was robbed of his home. And he had no options. The system was controlled by those who wanted to bring him down. He was a philosopher at heart, and he wasn’t even angry anymore.

“I am doomed to be broken,” he said to me; “but that is no reason that I should not try to be shattered as little as possible. These old bones of mine are fragile, and I’ve learned my lesson. God knows I don’t want to spend my last days in an insane asylum.”

“I’m destined to fall apart,” he told me; “but that doesn’t mean I shouldn’t try to break as little as possible. These old bones of mine are fragile, and I’ve learned my lesson. God knows I don’t want to spend my final days in a mental hospital.”

Which reminds me of Bishop Morehouse, whom I have neglected for many pages. But first let me tell of my marriage. In the play of events, my marriage sinks into insignificance, I know, so I shall barely mention it.

Which reminds me of Bishop Morehouse, whom I haven't talked about in a while. But first, let me share about my marriage. In the grand scheme of things, my marriage doesn't really stand out, I get that, so I’ll just touch on it briefly.

“Now we shall become real proletarians,” father said, when we were driven from our home. “I have often envied that young man of yours for his actual knowledge of the proletariat. Now I shall see and learn for myself.”

“Now we’re going to become real working-class people,” Dad said, when we were forced out of our home. “I’ve often envied that young man of yours for his actual understanding of the working class. Now I’ll get to see and learn for myself.”

Father must have had strong in him the blood of adventure. He looked upon our catastrophe in the light of an adventure. No anger nor bitterness possessed him. He was too philosophic and simple to be vindictive, and he lived too much in the world of mind to miss the creature comforts we were giving up. So it was, when we moved to San Francisco into four wretched rooms in the slum south of Market Street, that he embarked upon the adventure with the joy and enthusiasm of a child—combined with the clear sight and mental grasp of an extraordinary intellect. He really never crystallized mentally. He had no false sense of values. Conventional or habitual values meant nothing to him. The only values he recognized were mathematical and scientific facts. My father was a great man. He had the mind and the soul that only great men have. In ways he was even greater than Ernest, than whom I have known none greater.

Father must have had a strong sense of adventure in him. He saw our disaster as an adventure. He wasn't angry or bitter. He was too philosophical and genuine to seek revenge, and he was too focused on ideas to miss the physical comforts we were giving up. So when we moved to San Francisco into four miserable rooms in the slum south of Market Street, he approached the experience with the joy and enthusiasm of a child—combined with the insight and mental acuity of an extraordinary intellect. He never really solidified his thoughts. He had no misguided sense of values. Conventional or habitual values meant nothing to him. The only values he recognized were mathematical and scientific truths. My father was a remarkable man. He had the mind and the spirit that only great individuals possess. In some ways, he was even greater than Ernest, who I have known as the greatest of all.

Even I found some relief in our change of living. If nothing else, I was escaping from the organized ostracism that had been our increasing portion in the university town ever since the enmity of the nascent Oligarchy had been incurred. And the change was to me likewise adventure, and the greatest of all, for it was love-adventure. The change in our fortunes had hastened my marriage, and it was as a wife that I came to live in the four rooms on Pell Street, in the San Francisco slum.

Even I felt some relief with our change of living. At the very least, I was escaping the organized exclusion we had been facing in the university town ever since we incurred the hostility of the rising Oligarchy. And the shift felt like an adventure to me, the greatest adventure of all, because it was a love adventure. Our change in circumstances sped up my marriage, and I became a wife living in the four rooms on Pell Street, in the San Francisco slum.

And this out of all remains: I made Ernest happy. I came into his stormy life, not as a new perturbing force, but as one that made toward peace and repose. I gave him rest. It was the guerdon of my love for him. It was the one infallible token that I had not failed. To bring forgetfulness, or the light of gladness, into those poor tired eyes of his—what greater joy could have blessed me than that?

And this is what stands out: I made Ernest happy. I entered his chaotic life, not as a new source of trouble, but as someone who brought him peace and calm. I gave him a sense of rest. It was the reward for my love for him. It was the one sure sign that I hadn’t failed. To bring forgetfulness or the light of happiness into those weary eyes of his—what greater joy could I have received than that?

Those dear tired eyes. He toiled as few men ever toiled, and all his lifetime he toiled for others. That was the measure of his manhood. He was a humanist and a lover. And he, with his incarnate spirit of battle, his gladiator body and his eagle spirit—he was as gentle and tender to me as a poet. He was a poet. A singer in deeds. And all his life he sang the song of man. And he did it out of sheer love of man, and for man he gave his life and was crucified.

Those tired, dear eyes. He worked harder than most people ever do, and throughout his life, he labored for others. That was the true measure of his character. He was a humanist and a lover. He had the fighting spirit of a warrior, a strong body, and an eagle's spirit—yet he was as gentle and tender to me as a poet. He was a poet. A performer through his actions. And he spent his entire life singing the song of humanity. He did this out of pure love for people, and for them, he devoted his life and faced tremendous sacrifice.

And all this he did with no hope of future reward. In his conception of things there was no future life. He, who fairly burnt with immortality, denied himself immortality—such was the paradox of him. He, so warm in spirit, was dominated by that cold and forbidding philosophy, materialistic monism. I used to refute him by telling him that I measured his immortality by the wings of his soul, and that I should have to live endless aeons in order to achieve the full measurement. Whereat he would laugh, and his arms would leap out to me, and he would call me his sweet metaphysician; and the tiredness would pass out of his eyes, and into them would flood the happy love-light that was in itself a new and sufficient advertisement of his immortality.

And he did all this without any hope of future rewards. In his view, there was no afterlife. He, who was consumed by thoughts of immortality, denied himself that very idea—such was the paradox of his existence. He, so full of life and energy, was ruled by that cold and uninviting philosophy, materialistic monism. I would counter his beliefs by saying that I measured his immortality by the depth of his soul, and that I would need to live for endless ages to fully understand it. At that, he would laugh, reaching out to embrace me, calling me his sweet metaphysician; the weariness would fade from his eyes, replaced by the joyful light of love that in itself was a clear sign of his immortality.

Also, he used to call me his dualist, and he would explain how Kant, by means of pure reason, had abolished reason, in order to worship God. And he drew the parallel and included me guilty of a similar act. And when I pleaded guilty, but defended the act as highly rational, he but pressed me closer and laughed as only one of God’s own lovers could laugh. I was wont to deny that heredity and environment could explain his own originality and genius, any more than could the cold groping finger of science catch and analyze and classify that elusive essence that lurked in the constitution of life itself.

Also, he used to call me his dualist, and he would explain how Kant, through pure reason, had done away with reason in order to worship God. He made the comparison and accused me of a similar act. When I admitted my guilt but defended the act as very rational, he just pressed me further and laughed as only one of God’s true lovers could laugh. I tended to deny that heredity and environment could account for his originality and genius, just as the cold, probing finger of science couldn't capture and analyze the elusive essence that existed in the constitution of life itself.

I held that space was an apparition of God, and that soul was a projection of the character of God; and when he called me his sweet metaphysician, I called him my immortal materialist. And so we loved and were happy; and I forgave him his materialism because of his tremendous work in the world, performed without thought of soul-gain thereby, and because of his so exceeding modesty of spirit that prevented him from having pride and regal consciousness of himself and his soul.

I believed that space was a manifestation of God, and that the soul was a reflection of God's nature; when he referred to me as his sweet metaphysician, I called him my immortal materialist. And so we loved and were happy; I forgave him his materialism because of his incredible contributions to the world, done without any thought of personal gain, and because of his remarkable humility that kept him from feeling pride and a sense of superiority about himself and his soul.

But he had pride. How could he have been an eagle and not have pride? His contention was that it was finer for a finite mortal speck of life to feel Godlike, than for a god to feel godlike; and so it was that he exalted what he deemed his mortality. He was fond of quoting a fragment from a certain poem. He had never seen the whole poem, and he had tried vainly to learn its authorship. I here give the fragment, not alone because he loved it, but because it epitomized the paradox that he was in the spirit of him, and his conception of his spirit. For how can a man, with thrilling, and burning, and exaltation, recite the following and still be mere mortal earth, a bit of fugitive force, an evanescent form? Here it is:

But he had pride. How could he have been an eagle and not have pride? He believed it was more remarkable for a finite, mortal being to feel godlike than for a god to feel that way; so he celebrated what he considered his mortality. He liked to quote a line from a certain poem. He had never seen the whole poem and had tried unsuccessfully to find out who wrote it. I’ll share the line not just because he loved it, but because it captured the paradox of who he was and how he saw himself. How can a man, with excitement, passion, and joy, say the following and still be just a mere mortal, a fleeting force, a temporary form? Here it is:

“Joy upon joy and gain upon gain
Are the destined rights of my birth,
And I shout the praise of my endless days
To the echoing edge of the earth.
Though I suffer all deaths that a man can die
To the uttermost end of time,
I have deep-drained this, my cup of bliss,
In every age and clime—

“The froth of Pride, the tang of Power,
The sweet of Womanhood!
I drain the lees upon my knees,
For oh, the draught is good;
I drink to Life, I drink to Death,
And smack my lips with song,
For when I die, another ‘I’ shall pass the cup along.

“The man you drove from Eden’s grove
    Was I, my Lord, was I,
And I shall be there when the earth and the air
    Are rent from sea to sky;
For it is my world, my gorgeous world,
    The world of my dearest woes,
From the first faint cry of the newborn
    To the rack of the woman’s throes.

“Packed with the pulse of an unborn race,
Torn with a world’s desire,
The surging flood of my wild young blood
Would quench the judgment fire.
I am Man, Man, Man, from the tingling flesh
To the dust of my earthly goal,
From the nestling gloom of the pregnant womb
To the sheen of my naked soul.
Bone of my bone and flesh of my flesh
The whole world leaps to my will,
And the unslaked thirst of an Eden cursed
Shall harrow the earth for its fill.
Almighty God, when I drain life’s glass
Of all its rainbow gleams,
The hapless plight of eternal night
Shall be none too long for my dreams.

“The man you drove from Eden’s grove
    Was I, my Lord, was I,
And I shall be there when the earth and the air
    Are rent from sea to sky;
For it is my world, my gorgeous world,
    The world of my dear delight,
From the brightest gleam of the Arctic stream
    To the dusk of my own love-night.”

“Joy upon joy and gain upon gain
Are the destined rights of my birth,
And I shout the praise of my endless days
To the echoing edge of the earth.
Though I suffer all deaths that a man can die
To the uttermost end of time,
I have deep-drained this, my cup of bliss,
In every age and clime—

“The froth of Pride, the tang of Power,
The sweet of Womanhood!
I drain the lees upon my knees,
For oh, the draught is good;
I drink to Life, I drink to Death,
And smack my lips with song,
For when I die, another ‘I’ shall pass the cup along.

“The man you drove from Eden’s grove
    Was I, my Lord, was I,
And I shall be there when the earth and the air
    Are ripped apart from sea to sky;
For it is my world, my beautiful world,
    The world of my dearest troubles,
From the first faint cry of the newborn
    To the agony of a woman in labor.

“Packed with the pulse of an unborn generation,
Torn with a world’s desire,
The surging flood of my wild young blood
Would quench the judgment fire.
I am Man, Man, Man, from the tingling flesh
To the dust of my earthly goal,
From the shadowy sanctuary of the pregnant womb
To the shine of my naked soul.
Bone of my bone and flesh of my flesh
The whole world leaps to my will,
And the unquenched thirst of a cursed Eden
Shall disturb the earth for its fill.
Almighty God, when I drain life’s glass
Of all its rainbow gleams,
The unfortunate fate of eternal night
Shall be none too long for my dreams.

“The man you drove from Eden’s grove
    Was I, my Lord, was I,
And I shall be there when the earth and the air
    Are torn apart from sea to sky;
For it is my world, my beautiful world,
    The world of my greatest joy,
From the brightest shine of the Arctic stream
    To the dusk of my own love-night.”

Ernest always overworked. His wonderful constitution kept him up; but even that constitution could not keep the tired look out of his eyes. His dear, tired eyes! He never slept more than four and one-half hours a night; yet he never found time to do all the work he wanted to do. He never ceased from his activities as a propagandist, and was always scheduled long in advance for lectures to workingmen’s organizations. Then there was the campaign. He did a man’s full work in that alone. With the suppression of the socialist publishing houses, his meagre royalties ceased, and he was hard-put to make a living; for he had to make a living in addition to all his other labor. He did a great deal of translating for the magazines on scientific and philosophic subjects; and, coming home late at night, worn out from the strain of the campaign, he would plunge into his translating and toil on well into the morning hours. And in addition to everything, there was his studying. To the day of his death he kept up his studies, and he studied prodigiously.

Ernest was always overworked. His strong health kept him going, but even that couldn’t erase the tired look from his eyes. His dear, tired eyes! He never slept more than four and a half hours a night, yet he could never find enough time to finish all the work he wanted to do. He was constantly busy as a propagandist and always booked well in advance for lectures to workers' organizations. Then there was the campaign. He was doing a full workload just with that alone. With the shutdown of the socialist publishing houses, his meager royalties stopped, and he struggled to make a living; he needed to earn money on top of everything else he was doing. He translated a lot for magazines on scientific and philosophical topics, and after coming home late at night, exhausted from the campaign, he would dive into his translating and work late into the morning. And on top of all this, he kept studying. Right up until his death, he maintained his studies and was an incredibly dedicated learner.

And yet he found time in which to love me and make me happy. But this was accomplished only through my merging my life completely into his. I learned shorthand and typewriting, and became his secretary. He insisted that I succeeded in cutting his work in half; and so it was that I schooled myself to understand his work. Our interests became mutual, and we worked together and played together.

And yet he found time to love me and make me happy. But this only happened when I completely merged my life with his. I learned shorthand and typing and became his secretary. He claimed that I managed to cut his work in half; and so, I taught myself to understand his work. Our interests became shared, and we worked and played together.

And then there were our sweet stolen moments in the midst of our work—just a word, or caress, or flash of love-light; and our moments were sweeter for being stolen. For we lived on the heights, where the air was keen and sparkling, where the toil was for humanity, and where sordidness and selfishness never entered. We loved love, and our love was never smirched by anything less than the best. And this out of all remains: I did not fail. I gave him rest—he who worked so hard for others, my dear, tired-eyed mortalist.

And then there were our sweet stolen moments during work—just a word, a touch, or a spark of love; and those moments felt even sweeter because they were taken. We lived high up, where the air was fresh and lively, where our hard work was for the greater good, and where greed and selfishness never crept in. We cherished love, and our love was never tainted by anything less than the best. And through it all, what I hold onto is this: I didn’t let him down. I gave him peace—he who worked so hard for others, my dear, weary soul.

CHAPTER XII.
THE BISHOP

It was after my marriage that I chanced upon Bishop Morehouse. But I must give the events in their proper sequence. After his outbreak at the I. P. H. Convention, the Bishop, being a gentle soul, had yielded to the friendly pressure brought to bear upon him, and had gone away on a vacation. But he returned more fixed than ever in his determination to preach the message of the Church. To the consternation of his congregation, his first sermon was quite similar to the address he had given before the Convention. Again he said, and at length and with distressing detail, that the Church had wandered away from the Master’s teaching, and that Mammon had been instated in the place of Christ.

It was after my wedding that I ran into Bishop Morehouse. But I have to share the events in the right order. After his outburst at the I. P. H. Convention, the Bishop, being a kind-hearted person, had given in to the friendly pressure around him and took a vacation. However, he returned more determined than ever to spread the Church's message. To the shock of his congregation, his first sermon closely resembled the speech he had given before the Convention. Once again, he stated, in lengthy and troubling detail, that the Church had strayed from the Master's teachings and that wealth had taken the place of Christ.

And the result was, willy-nilly, that he was led away to a private sanitarium for mental disease, while in the newspapers appeared pathetic accounts of his mental breakdown and of the saintliness of his character. He was held a prisoner in the sanitarium. I called repeatedly, but was denied access to him; and I was terribly impressed by the tragedy of a sane, normal, saintly man being crushed by the brutal will of society. For the Bishop was sane, and pure, and noble. As Ernest said, all that was the matter with him was that he had incorrect notions of biology and sociology, and because of his incorrect notions he had not gone about it in the right way to rectify matters.

And the result was that he was taken to a private mental health facility, while the newspapers published heartbreaking stories about his mental breakdown and his saintly character. He was kept there against his will. I tried visiting multiple times, but they wouldn't let me see him; and I was deeply moved by the tragedy of a sane, normal, virtuous man being crushed by society's harsh demands. The Bishop was mentally sound, pure, and noble. As Ernest said, the only issue he had was that he held misguided views on biology and sociology, and because of those misunderstandings, he hadn't approached things in the right way to set them straight.

What terrified me was the Bishop’s helplessness. If he persisted in the truth as he saw it, he was doomed to an insane ward. And he could do nothing. His money, his position, his culture, could not save him. His views were perilous to society, and society could not conceive that such perilous views could be the product of a sane mind. Or, at least, it seems to me that such was society’s attitude.

What scared me was the Bishop’s powerlessness. If he held on to the truth as he understood it, he was headed for a mental institution. And he was completely powerless to change that. His wealth, his status, his education couldn’t protect him. His beliefs were dangerous to society, and society couldn’t imagine that such dangerous beliefs could come from a rational mind. At least, that’s how I see it as society’s mindset.

But the Bishop, in spite of the gentleness and purity of his spirit, was possessed of guile. He apprehended clearly his danger. He saw himself caught in the web, and he tried to escape from it. Denied help from his friends, such as father and Ernest and I could have given, he was left to battle for himself alone. And in the enforced solitude of the sanitarium he recovered. He became again sane. His eyes ceased to see visions; his brain was purged of the fancy that it was the duty of society to feed the Master’s lambs.

But the Bishop, despite his gentle and pure spirit, was sly. He clearly understood his danger. He recognized that he was trapped in a web, and he tried to break free. With no help from his friends, like Father and Ernest and the support I could have offered, he was left to fight for himself. In the enforced solitude of the sanitarium, he recovered. He became sane again. His eyes stopped seeing visions; his mind was cleared of the idea that it was society's duty to care for the Master’s lambs.

As I say, he became well, quite well, and the newspapers and the church people hailed his return with joy. I went once to his church. The sermon was of the same order as the ones he had preached long before his eyes had seen visions. I was disappointed, shocked. Had society then beaten him into submission? Was he a coward? Had he been bulldozed into recanting? Or had the strain been too great for him, and had he meekly surrendered to the juggernaut of the established?

As I said, he got better, really better, and the newspapers and church folks celebrated his return happily. I went to his church once. The sermon was the same kind he had given long before he had visions. I was let down, shocked. Had society pushed him into submission? Was he afraid? Had he been pressured into taking back what he said? Or had the pressure been too much for him, and had he quietly given in to the force of the established?

I called upon him in his beautiful home. He was woefully changed. He was thinner, and there were lines on his face which I had never seen before. He was manifestly distressed by my coming. He plucked nervously at his sleeve as we talked; and his eyes were restless, fluttering here, there, and everywhere, and refusing to meet mine. His mind seemed preoccupied, and there were strange pauses in his conversation, abrupt changes of topic, and an inconsecutiveness that was bewildering. Could this, then, be the firm-poised, Christ-like man I had known, with pure, limpid eyes and a gaze steady and unfaltering as his soul? He had been man-handled; he had been cowed into subjection. His spirit was too gentle. It had not been mighty enough to face the organized wolf-pack of society.

I visited him at his nice home. He looked so different. He had lost weight, and there were lines on his face that I had never noticed before. He clearly seemed upset by my visit. He nervously fidgeted with his sleeve as we chatted, and his eyes were all over the place, never meeting mine. He seemed lost in thought, with strange pauses in our conversation, sudden topic changes, and a disjointedness that was confusing. Could this really be the confident, Christ-like man I once knew, with clear, bright eyes and a steady gaze that reflected his strong spirit? He had been overwhelmed; he had been beaten down. His spirit was too gentle. It wasn't strong enough to stand up to the ruthless pack mentality of society.

I felt sad, unutterably sad. He talked ambiguously, and was so apprehensive of what I might say that I had not the heart to catechise him. He spoke in a far-away manner of his illness, and we talked disjointedly about the church, the alterations in the organ, and about petty charities; and he saw me depart with such evident relief that I should have laughed had not my heart been so full of tears.

I felt incredibly sad. He spoke in uncertain terms and was so worried about what I might say that I didn't have the heart to ask him anything directly. He talked about his illness in a distant way, and our conversation bounced around from the church, the changes to the organ, and small charities. He watched me leave with such clear relief that I would have laughed if my heart hadn't been so heavy with tears.

The poor little hero! If I had only known! He was battling like a giant, and I did not guess it. Alone, all alone, in the midst of millions of his fellow-men, he was fighting his fight. Torn by his horror of the asylum and his fidelity to truth and the right, he clung steadfastly to truth and the right; but so alone was he that he did not dare to trust even me. He had learned his lesson well—too well.

The poor little hero! If I had only known! He was fighting like a giant, and I had no idea. All alone, in the midst of millions of people, he was fighting his battle. Torn by his fear of the asylum and his commitment to truth and what’s right, he held firmly to truth and what’s right; but he was so alone that he didn’t even dare to trust me. He had learned his lesson well—too well.

But I was soon to know. One day the Bishop disappeared. He had told nobody that he was going away; and as the days went by and he did not reappear, there was much gossip to the effect that he had committed suicide while temporarily deranged. But this idea was dispelled when it was learned that he had sold all his possessions,—his city mansion, his country house at Menlo Park, his paintings, and collections, and even his cherished library. It was patent that he had made a clean and secret sweep of everything before he disappeared.

But I was about to find out. One day, the Bishop vanished without telling anyone he was leaving. As the days passed with no sign of him, rumors started circulating that he had taken his own life while mentally unstable. However, that theory was put to rest when it was discovered that he had sold off all his belongings—his city mansion, his country house in Menlo Park, his paintings, his collections, and even his beloved library. It was clear that he had quietly and completely cleared out everything before he disappeared.

This happened during the time when calamity had overtaken us in our own affairs; and it was not till we were well settled in our new home that we had opportunity really to wonder and speculate about the Bishop’s doings. And then, everything was suddenly made clear. Early one evening, while it was yet twilight, I had run across the street and into the butcher-shop to get some chops for Ernest’s supper. We called the last meal of the day “supper” in our new environment.

This happened when we were facing a lot of trouble in our own lives, and it wasn't until we got comfortable in our new home that we had a chance to really think about and question what the Bishop was up to. Then, everything became clear all at once. One evening, while it was still twilight, I ran across the street and into the butcher shop to grab some chops for Ernest’s dinner. We called the last meal of the day "dinner" in our new place.

Just at the moment I came out of the butcher-shop, a man emerged from the corner grocery that stood alongside. A queer sense of familiarity made me look again. But the man had turned and was walking rapidly away. There was something about the slope of the shoulders and the fringe of silver hair between coat collar and slouch hat that aroused vague memories. Instead of crossing the street, I hurried after the man. I quickened my pace, trying not to think the thoughts that formed unbidden in my brain. No, it was impossible. It could not be—not in those faded overalls, too long in the legs and frayed at the bottoms.

Just as I walked out of the butcher shop, a man came out of the grocery store next door. I felt an odd sense of familiarity and looked again. But the man had turned and was quickly walking away. There was something about the way his shoulders slumped and the fringe of silver hair peeking out from under his slouch hat that triggered vague memories. Instead of crossing the street, I rushed after him. I picked up my pace, trying not to think of the thoughts that popped into my head. No, it couldn't be. It just couldn't be—not in those old overalls, too long in the legs and frayed at the bottoms.

I paused, laughed at myself, and almost abandoned the chase. But the haunting familiarity of those shoulders and that silver hair! Again I hurried on. As I passed him, I shot a keen look at his face; then I whirled around abruptly and confronted—the Bishop.

I stopped, laughed at myself, and almost gave up the pursuit. But the unsettling familiarity of those shoulders and that silver hair! I pressed on again. As I walked past him, I glanced quickly at his face; then I turned around suddenly and came face to face with—the Bishop.

He halted with equal abruptness, and gasped. A large paper bag in his right hand fell to the sidewalk. It burst, and about his feet and mine bounced and rolled a flood of potatoes. He looked at me with surprise and alarm, then he seemed to wilt away; the shoulders drooped with dejection, and he uttered a deep sigh.

He stopped suddenly and gasped. A large paper bag in his right hand dropped to the sidewalk. It tore open, and a flood of potatoes bounced and rolled around our feet. He looked at me with surprise and worry, and then he seemed to deflate; his shoulders sagged in disappointment, and he let out a deep sigh.

I held out my hand. He shook it, but his hand felt clammy. He cleared his throat in embarrassment, and I could see the sweat starting out on his forehead. It was evident that he was badly frightened.

I extended my hand. He shook it, but his hand felt damp. He cleared his throat in embarrassment, and I could see the sweat starting to form on his forehead. It was clear that he was really scared.

“The potatoes,” he murmured faintly. “They are precious.”

“The potatoes,” he whispered softly. “They are valuable.”

Between us we picked them up and replaced them in the broken bag, which he now held carefully in the hollow of his arm. I tried to tell him my gladness at meeting him and that he must come right home with me.

Between us we picked them up and put them back in the torn bag, which he now held carefully in the crook of his arm. I tried to express my happiness at seeing him and that he should come home with me.

“Father will be rejoiced to see you,” I said. “We live only a stone’s throw away.

“Dad will be so happy to see you,” I said. “We live just a short walk away.

“I can’t,” he said, “I must be going. Good-by.”

“I can’t,” he said, “I have to go. Goodbye.”

He looked apprehensively about him, as though dreading discovery, and made an attempt to walk on.

He looked around anxiously, as if fearing he might be found out, and tried to keep walking.

“Tell me where you live, and I shall call later,” he said, when he saw that I walked beside him and that it was my intention to stick to him now that he was found.

“Tell me where you live, and I’ll call you later,” he said when he noticed I was walking next to him and that I intended to stay close now that I had found him.

“No,” I answered firmly. “You must come now.”

“No,” I replied firmly. “You need to come now.”

He looked at the potatoes spilling on his arm, and at the small parcels on his other arm.

He watched the potatoes spilling onto his arm and the small bundles on his other arm.

“Really, it is impossible,” he said. “Forgive me for my rudeness. If you only knew.”

"Honestly, it's impossible," he said. "I'm sorry for being rude. If you only knew."

He looked as if he were going to break down, but the next moment he had himself in control.

He looked like he was about to break down, but in the next moment, he pulled himself together.

“Besides, this food,” he went on. “It is a sad case. It is terrible. She is an old woman. I must take it to her at once. She is suffering from want of it. I must go at once. You understand. Then I will return. I promise you.”

“Besides, this food,” he continued. “It’s a sad situation. It’s awful. She’s an elderly woman. I need to take it to her right away. She’s struggling without it. I have to go now. You understand. Then I’ll come back. I promise you.”

“Let me go with you,” I volunteered. “Is it far?”

“Can I come with you?” I offered. “Is it far?”

He sighed again, and surrendered.

He sighed again and gave in.

“Only two blocks,” he said. “Let us hasten.”

“Just two blocks,” he said. “Let’s hurry.”

Under the Bishop’s guidance I learned something of my own neighborhood. I had not dreamed such wretchedness and misery existed in it. Of course, this was because I did not concern myself with charity. I had become convinced that Ernest was right when he sneered at charity as a poulticing of an ulcer. Remove the ulcer, was his remedy; give to the worker his product; pension as soldiers those who grow honorably old in their toil, and there will be no need for charity. Convinced of this, I toiled with him at the revolution, and did not exhaust my energy in alleviating the social ills that continuously arose from the injustice of the system.

Under the Bishop’s guidance, I learned about my own neighborhood. I never imagined that such poverty and suffering existed here. This was because I had stopped caring about charity. I had been convinced that Ernest was right when he mocked charity as just a band-aid solution. His idea was to get rid of the root problem; pay workers fairly for their contributions; support those who work hard and grow old honorably, and then there would be no need for charity. Believing this, I worked alongside him for change and didn’t waste my energy trying to ease the social problems that constantly arose from the unfairness of the system.

I followed the Bishop into a small room, ten by twelve, in a rear tenement. And there we found a little old German woman—sixty-four years old, the Bishop said. She was surprised at seeing me, but she nodded a pleasant greeting and went on sewing on the pair of men’s trousers in her lap. Beside her, on the floor, was a pile of trousers. The Bishop discovered there was neither coal nor kindling, and went out to buy some.

I followed the Bishop into a small room, about ten by twelve, in a back tenement. Inside, we found a little old German woman—sixty-four years old, the Bishop said. She looked surprised to see me but gave a friendly nod and continued sewing a pair of men’s trousers in her lap. Next to her, on the floor, was a pile of trousers. The Bishop noticed there was no coal or kindling and went out to buy some.

I took up a pair of trousers and examined her work.

I picked up a pair of pants and looked over her work.

“Six cents, lady,” she said, nodding her head gently while she went on stitching. She stitched slowly, but never did she cease from stitching. She seemed mastered by the verb “to stitch.”

“Six cents, lady,” she said, nodding her head gently as she continued stitching. She stitched slowly, but she never stopped. She seemed completely devoted to the act of stitching.

“For all that work?” I asked. “Is that what they pay? How long does it take you?”

“For all that work?” I asked. “Is that what they pay? How long does it take you?”

“Yes,” she answered, “that is what they pay. Six cents for finishing. Two hours’ sewing on each pair.”

“Yes,” she replied, “that’s what they pay. Six cents for finishing. Two hours of sewing on each pair.”

“But the boss doesn’t know that,” she added quickly, betraying a fear of getting him into trouble. “I’m slow. I’ve got the rheumatism in my hands. Girls work much faster. They finish in half that time. The boss is kind. He lets me take the work home, now that I am old and the noise of the machine bothers my head. If it wasn’t for his kindness, I’d starve.

“But the boss doesn’t know that,” she added quickly, revealing her fear of causing him trouble. “I’m slow. I’ve got arthritis in my hands. Girls work a lot faster. They finish in half the time. The boss is nice. He lets me take the work home, now that I’m old and the noise from the machine bothers my head. If it wasn’t for his kindness, I’d be in real trouble.”

“Yes, those who work in the shop get eight cents. But what can you do? There is not enough work for the young. The old have no chance. Often one pair is all I can get. Sometimes, like to-day, I am given eight pair to finish before night.”

“Yes, those who work in the shop earn eight cents. But what can you do? There isn't enough work for the young. The old have no opportunity. Often, I can only get one pair. Sometimes, like today, I'm given eight pairs to finish before night.”

I asked her the hours she worked, and she said it depended on the season.

I asked her what hours she worked, and she said it depended on the season.

“In the summer, when there is a rush order, I work from five in the morning to nine at night. But in the winter it is too cold. The hands do not early get over the stiffness. Then you must work later—till after midnight sometimes.

“In the summer, when there’s a rush order, I work from five in the morning to nine at night. But in the winter, it’s too cold. My hands don’t get over the stiffness early. Then I have to work later—sometimes even past midnight."

“Yes, it has been a bad summer. The hard times. God must be angry. This is the first work the boss has given me in a week. It is true, one cannot eat much when there is no work. I am used to it. I have sewed all my life, in the old country and here in San Francisco—thirty-three years.

“Yes, it’s been a rough summer. Tough times. God must be angry. This is the first job the boss has given me in a week. It’s true, you can’t eat much when there’s no work. I’m used to it. I’ve been sewing my whole life, back in the old country and here in San Francisco—thirty-three years.”

“If you are sure of the rent, it is all right. The houseman is very kind, but he must have his rent. It is fair. He only charges three dollars for this room. That is cheap. But it is not easy for you to find all of three dollars every month.”

“If you’re sure about the rent, that’s fine. The landlord is really nice, but he needs to get paid. That’s fair. He only charges three dollars for this room. That’s a good deal. But it’s not easy for you to come up with three dollars every month.”

She ceased talking, and, nodding her head, went on stitching.

She stopped talking, and, nodding her head, continued stitching.

“You have to be very careful as to how you spend your earnings,” I suggested.

"You need to be really careful about how you spend your money," I suggested.

She nodded emphatically.

She nodded enthusiastically.

“After the rent it’s not so bad. Of course you can’t buy meat. And there is no milk for the coffee. But always there is one meal a day, and often two.”

“After paying rent, it’s not so bad. Of course, you can’t buy meat. And there’s no milk for the coffee. But there’s always one meal a day, and often two.”

She said this last proudly. There was a smack of success in her words. But as she stitched on in silence, I noticed the sadness in her pleasant eyes and the droop of her mouth. The look in her eyes became far away. She rubbed the dimness hastily out of them; it interfered with her stitching.

She said this last part with pride. There was a hint of success in her words. But as she kept stitching in silence, I noticed the sadness in her cheerful eyes and the droop of her mouth. The look in her eyes became distant. She quickly rubbed away the dimness; it was getting in the way of her stitching.

“No, it is not the hunger that makes the heart ache,” she explained. “You get used to being hungry. It is for my child that I cry. It was the machine that killed her. It is true she worked hard, but I cannot understand. She was strong. And she was young—only forty; and she worked only thirty years. She began young, it is true; but my man died. The boiler exploded down at the works. And what were we to do? She was ten, but she was very strong. But the machine killed her. Yes, it did. It killed her, and she was the fastest worker in the shop. I have thought about it often, and I know. That is why I cannot work in the shop. The machine bothers my head. Always I hear it saying, ‘I did it, I did it.’ And it says that all day long. And then I think of my daughter, and I cannot work.”

“No, it’s not hunger that makes the heart ache,” she explained. “You get used to being hungry. I cry for my child. It was the machine that killed her. It’s true she worked hard, but I don’t understand it. She was strong. And she was young—only forty; and she worked for only thirty years. She started young, that’s true; but my man died. The boiler exploded at the factory. And what were we supposed to do? She was ten, but she was really strong. But the machine killed her. Yes, it did. It killed her, and she was the fastest worker in the shop. I’ve thought about it a lot, and I know. That’s why I can’t work in the shop. The machine gets to me. I always hear it saying, ‘I did it, I did it.’ And it says that all day long. And then I think of my daughter, and I just can’t work.”

The moistness was in her old eyes again, and she had to wipe it away before she could go on stitching.

The tears were in her tired eyes again, and she had to wipe them away before she could continue stitching.

I heard the Bishop stumbling up the stairs, and I opened the door. What a spectacle he was. On his back he carried half a sack of coal, with kindling on top. Some of the coal dust had coated his face, and the sweat from his exertions was running in streaks. He dropped his burden in the corner by the stove and wiped his face on a coarse bandana handkerchief. I could scarcely accept the verdict of my senses. The Bishop, black as a coal-heaver, in a workingman’s cheap cotton shirt (one button was missing from the throat), and in overalls! That was the most incongruous of all—the overalls, frayed at the bottoms, dragged down at the heels, and held up by a narrow leather belt around the hips such as laborers wear.

I heard the Bishop stumbling up the stairs, so I opened the door. What a sight he was. He had half a sack of coal on his back, with kindling on top. Some of the coal dust had smeared his face, and sweat from his efforts was streaming down in streaks. He dropped his load in the corner by the stove and wiped his face with a rough bandana handkerchief. I could hardly believe what I was seeing. The Bishop, looking as dirty as a coal miner, was in a workingman’s cheap cotton shirt (he had a button missing at the neck) and overalls! That was the strangest part—the overalls, tattered at the bottoms, dragging at the heels, and held up by a narrow leather belt around the hips like the ones laborers wear.

Though the Bishop was warm, the poor swollen hands of the old woman were already cramping with the cold; and before we left her, the Bishop had built the fire, while I had peeled the potatoes and put them on to boil. I was to learn, as time went by, that there were many cases similar to hers, and many worse, hidden away in the monstrous depths of the tenements in my neighborhood.

Though the Bishop was warm, the poor, swollen hands of the old woman were already cramping with the cold; and before we left her, the Bishop had built the fire, while I had peeled the potatoes and put them on to boil. I would come to realize, as time went on, that there were many cases like hers, and many worse, hidden away in the grim depths of the tenements in my neighborhood.

We got back to find Ernest alarmed by my absence. After the first surprise of greeting was over, the Bishop leaned back in his chair, stretched out his overall-covered legs, and actually sighed a comfortable sigh. We were the first of his old friends he had met since his disappearance, he told us; and during the intervening weeks he must have suffered greatly from loneliness. He told us much, though he told us more of the joy he had experienced in doing the Master’s bidding.

We returned to find Ernest worried about my absence. Once the initial surprise of our greeting faded, the Bishop leaned back in his chair, stretched out his overall-covered legs, and let out a content sigh. He told us we were the first of his old friends he had seen since he disappeared, and during the past few weeks, he must have felt really lonely. He shared a lot with us, but he spoke more about the joy he felt in doing the Master’s work.

“For truly now,” he said, “I am feeding his lambs. And I have learned a great lesson. The soul cannot be ministered to till the stomach is appeased. His lambs must be fed bread and butter and potatoes and meat; after that, and only after that, are their spirits ready for more refined nourishment.”

"Because right now," he said, "I am taking care of his lambs. And I've learned an important lesson. You can't nurture a person's soul until their stomach is satisfied. His lambs need to be fed bread, butter, potatoes, and meat; only after that, and only then, can their spirits be open to more elevated nourishment."

He ate heartily of the supper I cooked. Never had he had such an appetite at our table in the old days. We spoke of it, and he said that he had never been so healthy in his life.

He enjoyed the dinner I made. He had never had such an appetite at our table in the past. We talked about it, and he mentioned that he had never felt so healthy in his life.

“I walk always now,” he said, and a blush was on his cheek at the thought of the time when he rode in his carriage, as though it were a sin not lightly to be laid.

“I walk everywhere now,” he said, a blush rising on his cheek at the thought of the time when he rode in his carriage, as if it were a sin that shouldn’t be taken lightly.

“My health is better for it,” he added hastily. “And I am very happy—indeed, most happy. At last I am a consecrated spirit.”

"My health is better for it," he added quickly. "And I am really happy—actually, I'm the happiest I've ever been. Finally, I am a blessed spirit."

And yet there was in his face a permanent pain, the pain of the world that he was now taking to himself. He was seeing life in the raw, and it was a different life from what he had known within the printed books of his library.

And yet there was a constant pain in his face, the pain of the world that he was now absorbing. He was experiencing life in its raw form, and it was a different reality from what he had known through the printed books in his library.

“And you are responsible for all this, young man,” he said directly to Ernest.

“And you’re responsible for all this, young man,” he said directly to Ernest.

Ernest was embarrassed and awkward.

Ernest felt embarrassed and awkward.

“I—I warned you,” he faltered.

“I— I told you,” he faltered.

“No, you misunderstand,” the Bishop answered. “I speak not in reproach, but in gratitude. I have you to thank for showing me my path. You led me from theories about life to life itself. You pulled aside the veils from the social shams. You were light in my darkness, but now I, too, see the light. And I am very happy, only . . .” he hesitated painfully, and in his eyes fear leaped large. “Only the persecution. I harm no one. Why will they not let me alone? But it is not that. It is the nature of the persecution. I shouldn’t mind if they cut my flesh with stripes, or burned me at the stake, or crucified me head-downward. But it is the asylum that frightens me. Think of it! Of me—in an asylum for the insane! It is revolting. I saw some of the cases at the sanitarium. They were violent. My blood chills when I think of it. And to be imprisoned for the rest of my life amid scenes of screaming madness! No! no! Not that! Not that!”

“No, you’re misunderstanding,” the Bishop replied. “I’m not speaking in reproach, but in gratitude. You’ve shown me my path. You led me from theories about life to actual life. You revealed the truth behind the social pretenses. You were a light in my darkness, but now I see the light too. And I’m very happy, only…” he paused, visibly pained, and fear filled his eyes. “Only the persecution. I harm no one. Why won’t they just leave me alone? But it’s not just that. It’s the nature of the persecution. I wouldn’t mind if they whipped me, or burned me at the stake, or crucified me upside down. But it’s the thought of the asylum that terrifies me. Imagine it! Me—in an asylum for the insane! It’s sickening. I saw some of the patients at the sanitarium. They were violent. My blood runs cold when I think of it. And to be locked up for the rest of my life surrounded by scenes of screaming madness! No! No! Not that! Not that!”

It was pitiful. His hands shook, his whole body quivered and shrank away from the picture he had conjured. But the next moment he was calm.

It was heartbreaking. His hands trembled, his entire body shook and recoiled from the image he had imagined. But in the next moment, he felt at peace.

“Forgive me,” he said simply. “It is my wretched nerves. And if the Master’s work leads there, so be it. Who am I to complain?”

“Forgive me,” he said simply. “It’s my awful nerves. And if the Master’s work takes us there, so be it. Who am I to complain?”

I felt like crying aloud as I looked at him: “Great Bishop! O hero! God’s hero!”

I felt like crying out as I looked at him: “Great Bishop! Oh hero! God’s hero!”

As the evening wore on we learned more of his doings.

As the night went on, we found out more about what he had been up to.

“I sold my house—my houses, rather,” he said, “all my other possessions. I knew I must do it secretly, else they would have taken everything away from me. That would have been terrible. I often marvel these days at the immense quantity of potatoes two or three hundred thousand dollars will buy, or bread, or meat, or coal and kindling.” He turned to Ernest. “You are right, young man. Labor is dreadfully underpaid. I never did a bit of work in my life, except to appeal aesthetically to Pharisees—I thought I was preaching the message—and yet I was worth half a million dollars. I never knew what half a million dollars meant until I realized how much potatoes and bread and butter and meat it could buy. And then I realized something more. I realized that all those potatoes and that bread and butter and meat were mine, and that I had not worked to make them. Then it was clear to me, some one else had worked and made them and been robbed of them. And when I came down amongst the poor I found those who had been robbed and who were hungry and wretched because they had been robbed.”

“I sold my house—actually, my houses,” he said, “along with all my other belongings. I knew I had to do it in secret, or else they would have taken everything from me. That would have been awful. These days, I often wonder about the huge amount of potatoes two or three hundred thousand dollars can buy, or bread, or meat, or coal and kindling.” He turned to Ernest. “You’re right, young man. Labor is terribly underpaid. I never did a single day of work in my life, except to look good to the Pharisees—I thought I was sharing the message—and yet I was worth half a million dollars. I never understood what half a million dollars really meant until I saw how much potatoes, bread, butter, and meat it could buy. Then I realized something even more significant. I realized that all those potatoes, bread, butter, and meat belonged to me, and that I hadn’t worked to earn them. Suddenly, it became clear to me that someone else had worked to produce them and had been robbed of them. And when I went down among the poor, I found those who had been robbed and who were hungry and suffering because of it.”

We drew him back to his narrative.

We brought him back to his story.

“The money? I have it deposited in many different banks under different names. It can never be taken away from me, because it can never be found. And it is so good, that money. It buys so much food. I never knew before what money was good for.”

“The money? I have it spread out in various banks under different names. It can never be taken from me because it can never be found. And that money is so great. It buys so much food. I never realized before what money was really for.”

“I wish we could get some of it for the propaganda,” Ernest said wistfully. “It would do immense good.”

“I wish we could use some of it for the propaganda,” Ernest said with a sense of longing. “It would be incredibly beneficial.”

“Do you think so?” the Bishop said. “I do not have much faith in politics. In fact, I am afraid I do not understand politics.”

“Do you really think so?” the Bishop said. “I don’t have much faith in politics. In fact, I’m afraid I don’t understand it.”

Ernest was delicate in such matters. He did not repeat his suggestion, though he knew only too well the sore straits the Socialist Party was in through lack of money.

Ernest was sensitive about these issues. He didn't bring up his suggestion again, even though he was painfully aware of the tough situation the Socialist Party was in due to a lack of funds.

“I sleep in cheap lodging houses,” the Bishop went on. “But I am afraid, and never stay long in one place. Also, I rent two rooms in workingmen’s houses in different quarters of the city. It is a great extravagance, I know, but it is necessary. I make up for it in part by doing my own cooking, though sometimes I get something to eat in cheap coffee-houses. And I have made a discovery. Tamales[1] are very good when the air grows chilly late at night. Only they are so expensive. But I have discovered a place where I can get three for ten cents. They are not so good as the others, but they are very warming.

“I stay in cheap boarding houses,” the Bishop continued. “But I’m always a bit scared, so I don’t stay in one place for too long. I also rent two rooms in workers’ residences in different parts of the city. I know it’s a big expense, but it’s necessary. I try to offset it by cooking for myself, although sometimes I grab a bite to eat at inexpensive cafés. And I’ve made a discovery. Tamales[1] are great when the night gets chilly. They can be pricey, though. But I found a spot where I can get three for ten cents. They're not as good as the others, but they keep me warm.”

[1] A Mexican dish, referred to occasionally in the literature of the times. It is supposed that it was warmly seasoned. No recipe of it has come down to us.

[1] A Mexican dish, mentioned from time to time in the literature of that era. It's thought to have been well-seasoned. Unfortunately, no recipe for it has survived.

“And so I have at last found my work in the world, thanks to you, young man. It is the Master’s work.” He looked at me, and his eyes twinkled. “You caught me feeding his lambs, you know. And of course you will all keep my secret.”

“And so I’ve finally discovered my purpose in the world, thanks to you, young man. It’s the Master’s work.” He looked at me, and his eyes sparkled. “You caught me taking care of his lambs, you know. And of course, you all will keep my secret.”

He spoke carelessly enough, but there was real fear behind the speech. He promised to call upon us again. But a week later we read in the newspaper of the sad case of Bishop Morehouse, who had been committed to the Napa Asylum and for whom there were still hopes held out. In vain we tried to see him, to have his case reconsidered or investigated. Nor could we learn anything about him except the reiterated statements that slight hopes were still held for his recovery.

He spoke without much thought, but there was genuine fear in what he said. He promised to visit us again. But a week later, we read in the newspaper about the unfortunate situation of Bishop Morehouse, who had been placed in the Napa Asylum and for whom there were still some hopes. We tried in vain to see him, to have his case looked at or investigated. We couldn’t find out anything about him beyond the repeated claims that there were still slight hopes for his recovery.

“Christ told the rich young man to sell all he had,” Ernest said bitterly. “The Bishop obeyed Christ’s injunction and got locked up in a madhouse. Times have changed since Christ’s day. A rich man to-day who gives all he has to the poor is crazy. There is no discussion. Society has spoken.”

“Christ told the rich young man to sell everything he owned,” Ernest said bitterly. “The Bishop followed Christ’s command and ended up locked in a mental institution. Times have changed since Christ’s days. A rich person today who donates all their wealth to the poor is seen as insane. There’s no debate about it. Society has made its decision.”

CHAPTER XIII.
THE GENERAL STRIKE

Of course Ernest was elected to Congress in the great socialist landslide that took place in the fall of 1912. One great factor that helped to swell the socialist vote was the destruction of Hearst.[1] This the Plutocracy found an easy task. It cost Hearst eighteen million dollars a year to run his various papers, and this sum, and more, he got back from the middle class in payment for advertising. The source of his financial strength lay wholly in the middle class. The trusts did not advertise.[2] To destroy Hearst, all that was necessary was to take away from him his advertising.

Of course, Ernest was elected to Congress in the huge socialist wave that happened in the fall of 1912. One major factor that boosted the socialist vote was the downfall of Hearst.[1] The Plutocracy found this task easy. It cost Hearst eighteen million dollars a year to operate his various newspapers, and he recouped that amount, and more, from the middle class in advertising payments. His financial power was entirely dependent on the middle class. The trusts didn’t advertise.[2] To take down Hearst, all that needed to be done was to cut off his advertising.

[1] William Randolph Hearst—a young California millionaire who became the most powerful newspaper owner in the country. His newspapers were published in all the large cities, and they appealed to the perishing middle class and to the proletariat. So large was his following that he managed to take possession of the empty shell of the old Democratic Party. He occupied an anomalous position, preaching an emasculated socialism combined with a nondescript sort of petty bourgeois capitalism. It was oil and water, and there was no hope for him, though for a short period he was a source of serious apprehension to the Plutocrats.

[1] William Randolph Hearst—a young millionaire from California who became the most powerful newspaper owner in the country. His newspapers were published in all the major cities, and they appealed to the struggling middle class and the working class. His following was so large that he managed to take control of the old, fading Democratic Party. He held a strange position, promoting a weakened form of socialism mixed with a vague type of small-scale capitalism. It was a bad combination, and there was little hope for him, though for a brief time he posed a serious threat to the wealthy elite.

[2] The cost of advertising was amazing in those helter- skelter times. Only the small capitalists competed, and therefore they did the advertising. There being no competition where there was a trust, there was no need for the trusts to advertise.

[2] The cost of advertising was shocking in those chaotic times. Only the small business owners were competing, so they took care of the advertising. Since there was no competition where there was a monopoly, the monopolies had no need to advertise.

The whole middle class had not yet been exterminated. The sturdy skeleton of it remained; but it was without power. The small manufacturers and small business men who still survived were at the complete mercy of the Plutocracy. They had no economic nor political souls of their own. When the fiat of the Plutocracy went forth, they withdrew their advertisements from the Hearst papers.

The entire middle class hadn't been wiped out yet. Its strong framework still existed, but it lacked any power. The small manufacturers and business owners who were still around were completely at the mercy of the wealthy elite. They had no economic or political influence of their own. When the wealthy elite issued their orders, they pulled their ads from the Hearst newspapers.

Hearst made a gallant fight. He brought his papers out at a loss of a million and a half each month. He continued to publish the advertisements for which he no longer received pay. Again the fiat of the Plutocracy went forth, and the small business men and manufacturers swamped him with a flood of notices that he must discontinue running their old advertisements. Hearst persisted. Injunctions were served on him. Still he persisted. He received six months’ imprisonment for contempt of court in disobeying the injunctions, while he was bankrupted by countless damage suits. He had no chance. The Plutocracy had passed sentence on him. The courts were in the hands of the Plutocracy to carry the sentence out. And with Hearst crashed also to destruction the Democratic Party that he had so recently captured.

Hearst fought valiantly. He kept his newspapers going even though he was losing a million and a half each month. He continued to publish ads for which he no longer received payment. Again, the elite made their demands known, and small business owners and manufacturers bombarded him with requests to stop running their old ads. Hearst didn't back down. He faced legal injunctions. Still, he held his ground. He was sentenced to six months in prison for contempt of court for ignoring the injunctions, while he went bankrupt due to numerous lawsuits. He had no chance. The elite had made their decision about him. The courts were under their control to enforce that decision. And with Hearst's downfall came the collapse of the Democratic Party that he had recently taken over.

With the destruction of Hearst and the Democratic Party, there were only two paths for his following to take. One was into the Socialist Party; the other was into the Republican Party. Then it was that we socialists reaped the fruit of Hearst’s pseudo-socialistic preaching; for the great Majority of his followers came over to us.

With the fall of Hearst and the Democratic Party, his supporters had only two options. One was to join the Socialist Party; the other was to join the Republican Party. It was at this point that we socialists benefited from Hearst’s fake socialist rhetoric, as most of his followers switched to us.

The expropriation of the farmers that took place at this time would also have swelled our vote had it not been for the brief and futile rise of the Grange Party. Ernest and the socialist leaders fought fiercely to capture the farmers; but the destruction of the socialist press and publishing houses constituted too great a handicap, while the mouth-to-mouth propaganda had not yet been perfected. So it was that politicians like Mr. Calvin, who were themselves farmers long since expropriated, captured the farmers and threw their political strength away in a vain campaign.

The takeover of the farmers during this period would have increased our votes if it weren't for the short and ineffective rise of the Grange Party. Ernest and the socialist leaders fought hard to win over the farmers, but the elimination of the socialist press and publishing houses was too big of a setback, and grassroots campaigning hadn't been refined yet. As a result, politicians like Mr. Calvin, who were themselves farmers that had been taken over long ago, managed to win the farmers’ support only to waste their political power on a pointless campaign.

“The poor farmers,” Ernest once laughed savagely; “the trusts have them both coming and going.”

“The poor farmers,” Ernest once laughed harshly; “the trusts have them coming and going.”

And that was really the situation. The seven great trusts, working together, had pooled their enormous surpluses and made a farm trust. The railroads, controlling rates, and the bankers and stock exchange gamesters, controlling prices, had long since bled the farmers into indebtedness. The bankers, and all the trusts for that matter, had likewise long since loaned colossal amounts of money to the farmers. The farmers were in the net. All that remained to be done was the drawing in of the net. This the farm trust proceeded to do.

And that was really the situation. The seven major trusts, collaborating together, had combined their huge surpluses and created a farm trust. The railroads, controlling rates, along with the bankers and stock market players, controlling prices, had long since drained the farmers into debt. The bankers, and all the trusts for that matter, had also long since lent massive amounts of money to the farmers. The farmers were trapped. All that was left to do was to reel in the trap. This was what the farm trust went ahead and did.

The hard times of 1912 had already caused a frightful slump in the farm markets. Prices were now deliberately pressed down to bankruptcy, while the railroads, with extortionate rates, broke the back of the farmer-camel. Thus the farmers were compelled to borrow more and more, while they were prevented from paying back old loans. Then ensued the great foreclosing of mortgages and enforced collection of notes. The farmers simply surrendered the land to the farm trust. There was nothing else for them to do. And having surrendered the land, the farmers next went to work for the farm trust, becoming managers, superintendents, foremen, and common laborers. They worked for wages. They became villeins, in short—serfs bound to the soil by a living wage. They could not leave their masters, for their masters composed the Plutocracy. They could not go to the cities, for there, also, the Plutocracy was in control. They had but one alternative,—to leave the soil and become vagrants, in brief, to starve. And even there they were frustrated, for stringent vagrancy laws were passed and rigidly enforced.

The tough times of 1912 had already led to a drastic decline in the farm markets. Prices were now intentionally driven down to the point of bankruptcy, while the railroads charged exorbitant rates that crushed the farmers. As a result, farmers had to keep borrowing more and more, but they couldn’t pay back their old loans. This led to widespread mortgage foreclosures and forced collections. The farmers simply gave up their land to the farm trust. They had no other choice. After giving up their land, the farmers started working for the farm trust, taking on roles as managers, superintendents, foremen, and laborers. They worked for wages. Essentially, they became serfs—tied to the land by a meager paycheck. They couldn’t leave their employers, who represented the wealthy elite. They couldn’t move to the cities, either, because the elite had control there as well. Their only other option was to leave the land and become vagrants, essentially risking starvation. Even then, they faced obstacles, as strict vagrancy laws were enacted and rigorously enforced.

Of course, here and there, farmers, and even whole communities of farmers, escaped expropriation by virtue of exceptional conditions. But they were merely strays and did not count, and they were gathered in anyway during the following year.[3]

Of course, now and then, farmers, and even entire farming communities, managed to avoid being taken over due to unique circumstances. But they were just outliers and didn’t really matter, and they were collected anyway in the following year.[3]

[3] The destruction of the Roman yeomanry proceeded far less rapidly than the destruction of the American farmers and small capitalists. There was momentum in the twentieth century, while there was practically none in ancient Rome.
    Numbers of the farmers, impelled by an insane lust for the soil, and willing to show what beasts they could become, tried to escape expropriation by withdrawing from any and all market-dealing. They sold nothing. They bought nothing. Among themselves a primitive barter began to spring up. Their privation and hardships were terrible, but they persisted. It became quite a movement, in fact. The manner in which they were beaten was unique and logical and simple. The Plutocracy, by virtue of its possession of the government, raised their taxes. It was the weak joint in their armor. Neither buying nor selling, they had no money, and in the end their land was sold to pay the taxes.

[3] The decline of the Roman small landowners happened much slower than the decline of American farmers and small business owners. The twentieth century had momentum, while ancient Rome had almost none.
Many farmers, driven by a desperate desire for land and ready to show just how ruthless they could be, tried to avoid losing their property by completely withdrawing from the market. They sold nothing. They bought nothing. Among themselves, they started to barter in a very basic way. Their suffering and struggles were intense, but they kept going. It turned into quite a movement, really. The way they were defeated was both unique and straightforward. The wealthy elite, because they controlled the government, increased their taxes. This was the weak point in their defense. By not buying or selling, they had no money, and ultimately, their land was sold off to pay the taxes.

Thus it was that in the fall of 1912 the socialist leaders, with the exception of Ernest, decided that the end of capitalism had come. What of the hard times and the consequent vast army of the unemployed; what of the destruction of the farmers and the middle class; and what of the decisive defeat administered all along the line to the labor unions; the socialists were really justified in believing that the end of capitalism had come and in themselves throwing down the gauntlet to the Plutocracy.

Thus it was that in the fall of 1912, the socialist leaders, except for Ernest, concluded that capitalism had reached its end. What about the tough times and the huge number of unemployed people? What about the devastation of farmers and the middle class? And what about the significant setbacks faced by the labor unions? The socialists had legitimate reasons to believe that capitalism was finished and to challenge the wealthy elite.

Alas, how we underestimated the strength of the enemy! Everywhere the socialists proclaimed their coming victory at the ballot-box, while, in unmistakable terms, they stated the situation. The Plutocracy accepted the challenge. It was the Plutocracy, weighing and balancing, that defeated us by dividing our strength. It was the Plutocracy, through its secret agents, that raised the cry that socialism was sacrilegious and atheistic; it was the Plutocracy that whipped the churches, and especially the Catholic Church, into line, and robbed us of a portion of the labor vote. And it was the Plutocracy, through its secret agents of course, that encouraged the Grange Party and even spread it to the cities into the ranks of the dying middle class.

Unfortunately, we seriously underestimated the strength of our opponents! Everywhere, the socialists were announcing their impending victory at the polls while clearly stating the situation. The wealthy elite accepted the challenge. It was the wealthy elite, analyzing and strategizing, that defeated us by splitting our support. It was the wealthy elite, through their undercover operatives, who spread the message that socialism was unholy and godless; it was the wealthy elite that rallied the churches, especially the Catholic Church, to oppose us and took away some of the labor vote. And it was the wealthy elite, through their undercover operatives, that supported the Grange Party and even promoted it in the cities among the dwindling middle class.

Nevertheless the socialist landslide occurred. But, instead of a sweeping victory with chief executive officers and majorities in all legislative bodies, we found ourselves in the minority. It is true, we elected fifty Congressmen; but when they took their seats in the spring of 1913, they found themselves without power of any sort. Yet they were more fortunate than the Grangers, who captured a dozen state governments, and who, in the spring, were not permitted to take possession of the captured offices. The incumbents refused to retire, and the courts were in the hands of the Oligarchy. But this is too far in advance of events. I have yet to tell of the stirring times of the winter of 1912.

Nevertheless, there was a huge shift toward socialism. However, instead of a clear victory with CEOs and majorities in all legislative bodies, we ended up in the minority. It's true that we elected fifty Congressmen; but when they took their seats in the spring of 1913, they found themselves powerless. Still, they were luckier than the Grangers, who took control of a dozen state governments, but in the spring, they weren't allowed to take office. The current officials refused to step down, and the courts were controlled by the Oligarchy. But that’s getting ahead of the story. I still need to explain the exciting times of the winter of 1912.

The hard times at home had caused an immense decrease in consumption. Labor, out of work, had no wages with which to buy. The result was that the Plutocracy found a greater surplus than ever on its hands. This surplus it was compelled to dispose of abroad, and, what of its colossal plans, it needed money. Because of its strenuous efforts to dispose of the surplus in the world market, the Plutocracy clashed with Germany. Economic clashes were usually succeeded by wars, and this particular clash was no exception. The great German war-lord prepared, and so did the United States prepare.

The tough times at home had led to a huge drop in spending. Workers were unemployed and had no money to buy things. As a result, the wealthy elite found themselves with more surplus than ever. They had to sell this surplus overseas, and with their ambitious plans, they needed funding. Because of their intense efforts to sell the surplus in the global market, the elite came into conflict with Germany. Economic conflicts typically ended in wars, and this one was no different. The powerful German military leader got ready, and so did the United States.

The war-cloud hovered dark and ominous. The stage was set for a world-catastrophe, for in all the world were hard times, labor troubles, perishing middle classes, armies of unemployed, clashes of economic interests in the world-market, and mutterings and rumblings of the socialist revolution.[4]

The threat of war loomed large and foreboding. The conditions were ripe for a global disaster, as tough times hit everywhere with labor disputes, struggling middle classes, a growing number of unemployed people, conflicts of economic interests in the global market, and the murmurs and unrest of a socialist revolution. [4]

[4] For a long time these mutterings and rumblings had been heard. As far back as 1906 A.D., Lord Avebury, an Englishman, uttered the following in the House of Lords: “The unrest in Europe, the spread of socialism, and the ominous rise of Anarchism, are warnings to the governments and the ruling classes that the condition of the working classes in Europe is becoming intolerable, and that if a revolution is to be avoided some steps must be taken to increase wages, reduce the hours of labor, and lower the prices of the necessaries of life.” The Wall Street Journal, a stock gamesters’ publication, in commenting upon Lord Avebury’s speech, said: “These words were spoken by an aristocrat and a member of the most conservative body in all Europe. That gives them all the more significance. They contain more valuable political economy than is to be found in most of the books. They sound a note of warning. Take heed, gentlemen of the war and navy departments!
    At the same time, Sydney Brooks, writing in America, in Harper’s Weekly, said: “You will not hear the socialists mentioned in Washington. Why should you? The politicians are always the last people in this country to see what is going on under their noses. They will jeer at me when I prophesy, and prophesy with the utmost confidence, that at the next presidential election the socialists will poll over a million votes.

[4] For a long time, these murmurs and complaints had been heard. Going back to 1906, Lord Avebury, an Englishman, said the following in the House of Lords: “The unrest in Europe, the growth of socialism, and the troubling rise of Anarchism are warnings to governments and the ruling classes that the situation for the working classes in Europe is becoming unbearable, and that if we want to avoid a revolution, action must be taken to raise wages, reduce working hours, and lower the prices of essential goods.” The Wall Street Journal, a publication for stock traders, commented on Lord Avebury’s speech: “These words were spoken by an aristocrat and a member of the most conservative body in all of Europe. That makes them even more significant. They hold more valuable economic insights than most books. They send a warning. Pay attention, gentlemen of the war and navy departments!
At the same time, Sydney Brooks, writing in America for Harper’s Weekly, noted: “You won’t hear socialists mentioned in Washington. Why would you? Politicians are always the last ones in this country to notice what's happening right in front of them. They’ll laugh at me when I confidently predict that in the next presidential election, socialists will receive over a million votes.

The Oligarchy wanted the war with Germany. And it wanted the war for a dozen reasons. In the juggling of events such a war would cause, in the reshuffling of the international cards and the making of new treaties and alliances, the Oligarchy had much to gain. And, furthermore, the war would consume many national surpluses, reduce the armies of unemployed that menaced all countries, and give the Oligarchy a breathing space in which to perfect its plans and carry them out. Such a war would virtually put the Oligarchy in possession of the world-market. Also, such a war would create a large standing army that need never be disbanded, while in the minds of the people would be substituted the issue, “America versus Germany,” in place of “Socialism versus Oligarchy.”

The Oligarchy wanted the war with Germany, and it had a dozen reasons for it. The chaos that such a war would create, the reshuffling of international relationships, and the opportunity to form new treaties and alliances would benefit the Oligarchy significantly. Additionally, the war would help use up many national surpluses, decrease the number of unemployed people threatening all countries, and give the Oligarchy time to perfect and implement its plans. This war would basically give the Oligarchy control over the global market. Plus, it would establish a large standing army that would never need to be disbanded, while shifting the public focus from “Socialism versus Oligarchy” to “America versus Germany.”

And truly the war would have done all these things had it not been for the socialists. A secret meeting of the Western leaders was held in our four tiny rooms in Pell Street. Here was first considered the stand the socialists were to take. It was not the first time we had put our foot down upon war,[5] but it was the first time we had done so in the United States. After our secret meeting we got in touch with the national organization, and soon our code cables were passing back and forth across the Atlantic between us and the International Bureau.

And honestly, the war would have accomplished all these things if it weren't for the socialists. A secret meeting of the Western leaders took place in our four small rooms on Pell Street. Here, we first discussed the stance the socialists would take. This wasn't the first time we had taken a stand against war, [5] but it was the first time we had done so in the United States. After our secret meeting, we reached out to the national organization, and soon our coded messages were being exchanged across the Atlantic between us and the International Bureau.

[5] It was at the very beginning of the twentieth century A.D., that the international organization of the socialists finally formulated their long-maturing policy on war. Epitomized their doctrine was: “Why should the workingmen of one country fight with the workingmen of another country for the benefit of their capitalist masters?
    On May 21, 1905 A.D., when war threatened between Austria and Italy, the socialists of Italy, Austria, and Hungary held a conference at Trieste, and threatened a general strike of the workingmen of both countries in case war was declared. This was repeated the following year, when the “Morocco Affair” threatened to involve France, Germany, and England.

[5] At the very start of the twentieth century, the international socialist organization finally laid out their long-evolving stance on war. Their doctrine was summed up: “Why should workers in one country fight against workers in another country for the benefit of their capitalist leaders?
On May 21, 1905, when war was on the horizon between Austria and Italy, socialists from Italy, Austria, and Hungary met in Trieste and threatened a general strike of workers from both countries if war was declared. This happened again the following year when the “Morocco Affair” seemed likely to drag France, Germany, and England into conflict.

The German socialists were ready to act with us. There were over five million of them, many of them in the standing army, and, in addition, they were on friendly terms with the labor unions. In both countries the socialists came out in bold declaration against the war and threatened the general strike. And in the meantime they made preparation for the general strike. Furthermore, the revolutionary parties in all countries gave public utterance to the socialist principle of international peace that must be preserved at all hazards, even to the extent of revolt and revolution at home.

The German socialists were willing to join forces with us. There were over five million of them, a lot of whom were in the military, and they also had good relations with the labor unions. In both countries, the socialists boldly declared their opposition to the war and threatened a general strike. Meanwhile, they were preparing for that strike. Additionally, the revolutionary parties in all countries publicly supported the socialist principle of international peace, which must be upheld at all costs, even if it meant resorting to revolt and revolution at home.

The general strike was the one great victory we American socialists won. On the 4th of December the American minister was withdrawn from the German capital. That night a German fleet made a dash on Honolulu, sinking three American cruisers and a revenue cutter, and bombarding the city. Next day both Germany and the United States declared war, and within an hour the socialists called the general strike in both countries.

The general strike was the one major victory we American socialists achieved. On December 4th, the American ambassador was pulled from the German capital. That night, a German fleet launched an attack on Honolulu, sinking three American cruisers and a revenue cutter, and bombarding the city. The next day, both Germany and the United States declared war, and within an hour, the socialists initiated the general strike in both countries.

For the first time the German war-lord faced the men of his empire who made his empire go. Without them he could not run his empire. The novelty of the situation lay in that their revolt was passive. They did not fight. They did nothing. And by doing nothing they tied their war-lord’s hands. He would have asked for nothing better than an opportunity to loose his war-dogs on his rebellious proletariat. But this was denied him. He could not loose his war-dogs. Neither could he mobilize his army to go forth to war, nor could he punish his recalcitrant subjects. Not a wheel moved in his empire. Not a train ran, not a telegraphic message went over the wires, for the telegraphers and railroad men had ceased work along with the rest of the population.

For the first time, the German warlord faced the people of his empire who kept it running. Without them, he wouldn’t be able to manage anything. The unusual part of the situation was that their rebellion was passive. They didn't fight; they just didn't do anything. By doing nothing, they bound their warlord’s hands. He would have welcomed any chance to unleash his forces on his disobedient workers. But that wasn’t possible. He couldn’t unleash his forces. He couldn’t mobilize his army to fight, and he couldn't punish his stubborn subjects. Not a single wheel turned in his empire. No trains ran, and no telegrams were sent because the telegraph operators and railroad workers had stopped working along with everyone else.

And as it was in Germany, so it was in the United States. At last organized labor had learned its lesson. Beaten decisively on its own chosen field, it had abandoned that field and come over to the political field of the socialists; for the general strike was a political strike. Besides, organized labor had been so badly beaten that it did not care. It joined in the general strike out of sheer desperation. The workers threw down their tools and left their tasks by the millions. Especially notable were the machinists. Their heads were bloody, their organization had apparently been destroyed, yet out they came, along with their allies in the metal-working trades.

And just like it happened in Germany, the same was true in the United States. Finally, organized labor had figured it out. Defeated decisively in the area they chose, they stepped away from that battle and joined the political arena with the socialists; after all, the general strike was a political one. Moreover, organized labor had been beaten down so badly that they didn't care anymore. They joined the general strike out of sheer desperation. Workers put down their tools and left their jobs by the millions. The machinists, in particular, stood out. Their heads were bruised, their organization seemed to be shattered, yet they still came out, alongside their allies in the metalworking industries.

Even the common laborers and all unorganized labor ceased work. The strike had tied everything up so that nobody could work. Besides, the women proved to be the strongest promoters of the strike. They set their faces against the war. They did not want their men to go forth to die. Then, also, the idea of the general strike caught the mood of the people. It struck their sense of humor. The idea was infectious. The children struck in all the schools, and such teachers as came, went home again from deserted class rooms. The general strike took the form of a great national picnic. And the idea of the solidarity of labor, so evidenced, appealed to the imagination of all. And, finally, there was no danger to be incurred by the colossal frolic. When everybody was guilty, how was anybody to be punished?

Even the common workers and all unorganized labor stopped working. The strike had brought everything to a standstill so that no one could work. Plus, the women were the strongest supporters of the strike. They opposed the war and didn't want their men to go off to die. Then, the concept of the general strike resonated with the people's mood. It struck them as funny. The idea spread quickly. The kids went on strike in all the schools, and the few teachers who showed up went home from empty classrooms. The general strike turned into a huge national picnic. The idea of worker solidarity, clearly on display, inspired everyone's imagination. And, in the end, there was no risk in this massive celebration. When everyone was at fault, how could anyone be punished?

The United States was paralyzed. No one knew what was happening. There were no newspapers, no letters, no despatches. Every community was as completely isolated as though ten thousand miles of primeval wilderness stretched between it and the rest of the world. For that matter, the world had ceased to exist. And for a week this state of affairs was maintained.

The United States was frozen in confusion. No one had any idea what was going on. There were no newspapers, no letters, no updates. Every community felt completely cut off as if ten thousand miles of untouched wilderness separated it from the rest of the world. In fact, it felt like the world had stopped existing. And for a week, this situation continued.

In San Francisco we did not know what was happening even across the bay in Oakland or Berkeley. The effect on one’s sensibilities was weird, depressing. It seemed as though some great cosmic thing lay dead. The pulse of the land had ceased to beat. Of a truth the nation had died. There were no wagons rumbling on the streets, no factory whistles, no hum of electricity in the air, no passing of street cars, no cries of news-boys—nothing but persons who at rare intervals went by like furtive ghosts, themselves oppressed and made unreal by the silence.

In San Francisco, we had no idea what was going on even across the bay in Oakland or Berkeley. The effect on our senses was strange and depressing. It felt like some huge cosmic thing had died. The heartbeat of the land had stopped. Truly, the nation felt dead. There were no wagons rumbling down the streets, no factory whistles, no buzz of electricity in the air, no streetcars passing by, no shouts from newsboys—just people who occasionally drifted by like sneaky ghosts, themselves weighed down and made unreal by the silence.

And during that week of silence the Oligarchy was taught its lesson. And well it learned the lesson. The general strike was a warning. It should never occur again. The Oligarchy would see to that.

And during that week of silence, the Oligarchy learned its lesson. And it learned it well. The general strike was a warning. It should never happen again. The Oligarchy would make sure of that.

At the end of the week, as had been prearranged, the telegraphers of Germany and the United States returned to their posts. Through them the socialist leaders of both countries presented their ultimatum to the rulers. The war should be called off, or the general strike would continue. It did not take long to come to an understanding. The war was declared off, and the populations of both countries returned to their tasks.

At the end of the week, as planned, the telegraph operators of Germany and the United States returned to their jobs. Through them, the socialist leaders of both countries delivered their ultimatum to the leaders. The war needed to be called off, or the general strike would keep going. It didn't take long to reach an agreement. The war was called off, and the people of both countries went back to their work.

It was this renewal of peace that brought about the alliance between Germany and the United States. In reality, this was an alliance between the Emperor and the Oligarchy, for the purpose of meeting their common foe, the revolutionary proletariat of both countries. And it was this alliance that the Oligarchy afterward so treacherously broke when the German socialists rose and drove the war-lord from his throne. It was the very thing the Oligarchy had played for—the destruction of its great rival in the world-market. With the German Emperor out of the way, Germany would have no surplus to sell abroad. By the very nature of the socialist state, the German population would consume all that it produced. Of course, it would trade abroad certain things it produced for things it did not produce; but this would be quite different from an unconsumable surplus.

It was this renewal of peace that led to the alliance between Germany and the United States. In reality, this was an alliance between the Emperor and the Oligarchy, aimed at confronting their common enemy, the revolutionary working class in both countries. This was the same alliance that the Oligarchy later betrayed when the German socialists rose up and ousted the war-lord from his throne. It was exactly what the Oligarchy had aimed for—the downfall of its major competitor in the global market. With the German Emperor out of the way, Germany wouldn't have any surplus to sell overseas. By the very nature of a socialist state, the German population would consume everything it produced. Of course, it would trade some of its products for things it didn't make; but that would be very different from having an unconsumed surplus.

“I’ll wager the Oligarchy finds justification,” Ernest said, when its treachery to the German Emperor became known. “As usual, the Oligarchy will believe it has done right.”

"I bet the Oligarchy will come up with a reason," Ernest said, when its betrayal of the German Emperor was revealed. "As always, the Oligarchy will think it acted justly."

And sure enough. The Oligarchy’s public defence for the act was that it had done it for the sake of the American people whose interests it was looking out for. It had flung its hated rival out of the world-market and enabled us to dispose of our surplus in that market.

And sure enough, the Oligarchy claimed publicly that it acted in the best interest of the American people. It had pushed its hated competitor out of the global market, allowing us to sell our surplus there.

“And the howling folly of it is that we are so helpless that such idiots really are managing our interests,” was Ernest’s comment. “They have enabled us to sell more abroad, which means that we’ll be compelled to consume less at home.”

“And the crazy part is that we're so powerless that these fools are actually in charge of our interests,” Ernest commented. “They’ve helped us sell more overseas, which means we’ll have to consume less here at home.”

CHAPTER XIV.
THE BEGINNING OF THE END

As early as January, 1913, Ernest saw the true trend of affairs, but he could not get his brother leaders to see the vision of the Iron Heel that had arisen in his brain. They were too confident. Events were rushing too rapidly to culmination. A crisis had come in world affairs. The American Oligarchy was practically in possession of the world-market, and scores of countries were flung out of that market with unconsumable and unsalable surpluses on their hands. For such countries nothing remained but reorganization. They could not continue their method of producing surpluses. The capitalistic system, so far as they were concerned, had hopelessly broken down.

As early as January 1913, Ernest recognized the real direction of things, but he couldn't get his fellow leaders to understand the vision of the Iron Heel that had formed in his mind. They were too self-assured. Events were moving too fast toward a climax. A crisis had hit global affairs. The American Oligarchy was nearly in control of the world market, and numerous countries found themselves shut out of that market, left with unsellable and unmanageable surpluses. For these countries, the only option was reorganization. They couldn't keep producing surpluses. The capitalist system, for them, had utterly collapsed.

The reorganization of these countries took the form of revolution. It was a time of confusion and violence. Everywhere institutions and governments were crashing. Everywhere, with the exception of two or three countries, the erstwhile capitalist masters fought bitterly for their possessions. But the governments were taken away from them by the militant proletariat. At last was being realized Karl Marx’s classic: “The knell of private capitalist property sounds. The expropriators are expropriated.” And as fast as capitalistic governments crashed, cooperative commonwealths arose in their place.

The reorganization of these countries happened through revolution. It was a time of confusion and violence. Institutions and governments were falling apart everywhere. Except for two or three countries, the former capitalist leaders were fighting fiercely to keep their possessions. But the governments were taken from them by the determined working class. Finally, Karl Marx’s classic idea was coming to life: “The knell of private capitalist property sounds. The expropriators are expropriated.” And as quickly as capitalist governments collapsed, cooperative communities emerged in their place.

“Why does the United States lag behind?”; “Get busy, you American revolutionists!”; “What’s the matter with America?”—were the messages sent to us by our successful comrades in other lands. But we could not keep up. The Oligarchy stood in the way. Its bulk, like that of some huge monster, blocked our path.

“Why is the United States falling behind?”; “Get to work, you American revolutionaries!”; “What’s wrong with America?”—these were the messages sent to us by our successful friends in other countries. But we couldn’t keep pace. The Oligarchy was an obstacle. Its size, like that of a massive monster, blocked our way.

“Wait till we take office in the spring,” we answered. “Then you’ll see.”

"Just wait until we take office in the spring," we replied. "Then you'll see."

Behind this lay our secret. We had won over the Grangers, and in the spring a dozen states would pass into their hands by virtue of the elections of the preceding fall. At once would be instituted a dozen cooperative commonwealth states. After that, the rest would be easy.

Behind this was our secret. We had gained the support of the Grangers, and in the spring, a dozen states would fall into their hands thanks to the elections from the previous fall. Immediately, a dozen cooperative commonwealth states would be established. After that, the rest would be simple.

“But what if the Grangers fail to get possession?” Ernest demanded. And his comrades called him a calamity howler.

“But what if the Grangers can't take possession?” Ernest asked. And his friends called him a doomsayer.

But this failure to get possession was not the chief danger that Ernest had in mind. What he foresaw was the defection of the great labor unions and the rise of the castes.

But this failure to gain possession wasn’t the main threat that Ernest was worried about. What he anticipated was the betrayal of the major labor unions and the emergence of the castes.

“Ghent has taught the oligarchs how to do it,” Ernest said. “I’ll wager they’ve made a text-book out of his ‘Benevolent Feudalism.’”[1]

“Ghent has shown the oligarchs how it's done,” Ernest said. “I bet they've turned his ‘Benevolent Feudalism’ into a manual.”[1]

[1] “Our Benevolent Feudalism,” a book published in 1902 A.D., by W. J. Ghent. It has always been insisted that Ghent put the idea of the Oligarchy into the minds of the great capitalists. This belief persists throughout the literature of the three centuries of the Iron Heel, and even in the literature of the first century of the Brotherhood of Man. To-day we know better, but our knowledge does not overcome the fact that Ghent remains the most abused innocent man in all history.

[1] “Our Benevolent Feudalism,” a book published in 1902 by W. J. Ghent. It's been widely believed that Ghent introduced the concept of Oligarchy to the minds of the wealthy capitalists. This belief continues to be reflected in the literature from the three centuries of the Iron Heel, and even in the writings from the first century of the Brotherhood of Man. Today we understand more, but that doesn't change the fact that Ghent remains the most wrongly maligned innocent person in history.

Never shall I forget the night when, after a hot discussion with half a dozen labor leaders, Ernest turned to me and said quietly: “That settles it. The Iron Heel has won. The end is in sight.”

Never will I forget the night when, after a heated discussion with a few labor leaders, Ernest turned to me and said quietly, “That’s it. The Iron Heel has won. The end is near.”

This little conference in our home was unofficial; but Ernest, like the rest of his comrades, was working for assurances from the labor leaders that they would call out their men in the next general strike. O’Connor, the president of the Association of Machinists, had been foremost of the six leaders present in refusing to give such assurance.

This small gathering at our house was informal; however, Ernest, like the others, was trying to get guarantees from the labor leaders that they would mobilize their workers for the next general strike. O’Connor, the president of the Association of Machinists, was the most vocal of the six leaders present in withholding such a guarantee.

“You have seen that you were beaten soundly at your old tactics of strike and boycott,” Ernest urged.

"You've seen that you were thoroughly defeated using your old tactics of striking and boycotting," Ernest urged.

O’Connor and the others nodded their heads.

O’Connor and the others agreed.

“And you saw what a general strike would do,” Ernest went on. “We stopped the war with Germany. Never was there so fine a display of the solidarity and the power of labor. Labor can and will rule the world. If you continue to stand with us, we’ll put an end to the reign of capitalism. It is your only hope. And what is more, you know it. There is no other way out. No matter what you do under your old tactics, you are doomed to defeat, if for no other reason because the masters control the courts.”[2]

“And you saw what a general strike would do,” Ernest continued. “We ended the war with Germany. There’s never been such an amazing show of unity and strength from workers. Labor can and will take charge of the world. If you keep standing with us, we’ll end the domination of capitalism. It’s your only chance. And deep down, you know it. There’s no other way forward. No matter what you try with your old strategies, you’re destined to fail, if only because the bosses control the courts.”[2]

[2] As a sample of the decisions of the courts adverse to labor, the following instances are given. In the coal- mining regions the employment of children was notorious. In 1905 A.D., labor succeeded in getting a law passed in Pennsylvania providing that proof of the age of the child and of certain educational qualifications must accompany the oath of the parent. This was promptly declared unconstitutional by the Luzerne County Court, on the ground that it violated the Fourteenth Amendment in that it discriminated between individuals of the same class—namely, children above fourteen years of age and children below. The state court sustained the decision. The New York Court of Special Sessions, in 1905 A.D., declared unconstitutional the law prohibiting minors and women from working in factories after nine o’clock at night, the ground taken being that such a law was “class legislation.” Again, the bakers of that time were terribly overworked. The New York Legislature passed a law restricting work in bakeries to ten hours a day. In 1906 A.D., the Supreme Court of the United States declared this law to be unconstitutional. In part the decision read: “There is no reasonable ground for interfering with the liberty of persons or the right of free contract by determining the hours of labor in the occupation of a baker.

[2] Here are some examples of court decisions against labor. In coal-mining areas, child labor was widely accepted. In 1905, labor managed to pass a law in Pennsylvania requiring proof of a child's age and certain educational qualifications to accompany the parent's oath. This law was quickly declared unconstitutional by the Luzerne County Court, which argued that it violated the Fourteenth Amendment by discriminating between individuals in the same group—specifically, children over fourteen and those under it. The state court upheld this decision. Later, the New York Court of Special Sessions also declared unconstitutional a law that barred minors and women from working in factories after nine at night, claiming it was “class legislation.” Additionally, bakers at the time were extremely overworked. The New York Legislature passed a law limiting bakery work to ten hours a day. In 1906, the Supreme Court of the United States ruled this law unconstitutional, stating: “There is no reasonable ground for interfering with the liberty of persons or the right of free contract by determining the hours of labor in the occupation of a baker.

“You run ahead too fast,” O’Connor answered. “You don’t know all the ways out. There is another way out. We know what we’re about. We’re sick of strikes. They’ve got us beaten that way to a frazzle. But I don’t think we’ll ever need to call our men out again.”

“You're rushing ahead too quickly,” O’Connor replied. “You don’t know all the exits. There’s another way out. We know what we’re doing. We’re tired of strikes. They've worn us out that way. But I don’t think we’ll ever have to call our guys out again.”

“What is your way out?” Ernest demanded bluntly.

“What’s your way out?” Ernest asked directly.

O’Connor laughed and shook his head. “I can tell you this much: We’ve not been asleep. And we’re not dreaming now.”

O’Connor laughed and shook his head. “I can tell you this much: We haven’t been asleep. And we’re not dreaming now.”

“There’s nothing to be afraid of, or ashamed of, I hope,” Ernest challenged.

“There's nothing to be afraid of or ashamed of, I hope,” Ernest said defiantly.

“I guess we know our business best,” was the retort.

“I guess we know our stuff best,” was the reply.

“It’s a dark business, from the way you hide it,” Ernest said with growing anger.

“It’s a shady deal, considering how you’re trying to cover it up,” Ernest said, his anger growing.

“We’ve paid for our experience in sweat and blood, and we’ve earned all that’s coming to us,” was the reply. “Charity begins at home.”

“We’ve paid for our experience in sweat and blood, and we’ve earned everything that’s coming to us,” was the reply. “Charity starts at home.”

“If you’re afraid to tell me your way out, I’ll tell it to you.” Ernest’s blood was up. “You’re going in for grab-sharing. You’ve made terms with the enemy, that’s what you’ve done. You’ve sold out the cause of labor, of all labor. You are leaving the battle-field like cowards.”

“If you’re too scared to share your way out, then I’ll share it with you.” Ernest was fired up. “You’re going in for grab-sharing. You’ve made a deal with the enemy, that’s what you’ve done. You’ve betrayed the cause of labor, of all labor. You’re leaving the battlefield like cowards.”

“I’m not saying anything,” O’Connor answered sullenly. “Only I guess we know what’s best for us a little bit better than you do.”

“I’m not saying anything,” O’Connor replied gloomily. “I just think we know what’s best for us a bit better than you do.”

“And you don’t care a cent for what is best for the rest of labor. You kick it into the ditch.”

“And you don't care at all about what's best for the rest of the workers. You just throw it aside.”

“I’m not saying anything,” O’Connor replied, “except that I’m president of the Machinists’ Association, and it’s my business to consider the interests of the men I represent, that’s all.”

“I’m not saying anything,” O’Connor replied, “except that I’m the president of the Machinists’ Association, and it’s my job to look out for the interests of the men I represent, that’s all.”

And then, when the labor leaders had left, Ernest, with the calmness of defeat, outlined to me the course of events to come.

And then, after the labor leaders had left, Ernest, with the calmness of someone who has lost, explained to me what would happen next.

“The socialists used to foretell with joy,” he said, “the coming of the day when organized labor, defeated on the industrial field, would come over on to the political field. Well, the Iron Heel has defeated the labor unions on the industrial field and driven them over to the political field; and instead of this being joyful for us, it will be a source of grief. The Iron Heel learned its lesson. We showed it our power in the general strike. It has taken steps to prevent another general strike.”

“The socialists used to happily predict,” he said, “the day when organized labor, beaten in the industrial arena, would shift to the political arena. Well, the Iron Heel has beaten the labor unions in the industrial space and pushed them into the political realm; and instead of this being something to celebrate for us, it will bring sorrow. The Iron Heel learned its lesson. We demonstrated our strength in the general strike. It has taken measures to stop another general strike.”

“But how?” I asked.

"But how?" I asked.

“Simply by subsidizing the great unions. They won’t join in the next general strike. Therefore it won’t be a general strike.”

“Just by funding the big unions. They won’t participate in the next general strike. So it won’t be a general strike.”

“But the Iron Heel can’t maintain so costly a programme forever,” I objected.

"But the Iron Heel can't sustain such an expensive agenda forever," I argued.

“Oh, it hasn’t subsidized all of the unions. That’s not necessary. Here is what is going to happen. Wages are going to be advanced and hours shortened in the railroad unions, the iron and steel workers unions, and the engineer and machinist unions. In these unions more favorable conditions will continue to prevail. Membership in these unions will become like seats in Paradise.”

“Oh, it hasn’t funded all of the unions. That’s not needed. Here’s what’s going to happen. Wages will be increased and hours will be reduced in the railroad unions, the iron and steel workers unions, and the engineer and machinist unions. In these unions, better conditions will keep being the norm. Being a member of these unions will be like having a spot in Paradise.”

“Still I don’t see,” I objected. “What is to become of the other unions? There are far more unions outside of this combination than in it.”

“Still I don’t see,” I protested. “What will happen to the other unions? There are way more unions outside of this group than in it.”

“The other unions will be ground out of existence—all of them. For, don’t you see, the railway men, machinists and engineers, iron and steel workers, do all of the vitally essential work in our machine civilization. Assured of their faithfulness, the Iron Heel can snap its fingers at all the rest of labor. Iron, steel, coal, machinery, and transportation constitute the backbone of the whole industrial fabric.”

“The other unions will be wiped out—every single one of them. Because, don’t you see, the railway workers, machinists, engineers, and iron and steel workers do all the crucial work in our industrial society. With their loyalty guaranteed, the Iron Heel can ignore all the other workers. Iron, steel, coal, machinery, and transportation are the foundation of the entire industrial structure.”

“But coal?” I queried. “There are nearly a million coal miners.”

“But coal?” I asked. “There are almost a million coal miners.”

They are practically unskilled labor. They will not count. Their wages will go down and their hours will increase. They will be slaves like all the rest of us, and they will become about the most bestial of all of us. They will be compelled to work, just as the farmers are compelled to work now for the masters who robbed them of their land. And the same with all the other unions outside the combination. Watch them wobble and go to pieces, and their members become slaves driven to toil by empty stomachs and the law of the land.

They are basically unskilled workers. They won’t matter. Their pay will drop and their hours will increase. They will become like the rest of us, and they will likely become the most brutalized among us. They will be forced to work, just like farmers are forced to work now for the bosses who took their land. The same goes for all the other unions outside the group. Watch them struggle and fall apart, as their members become workers driven to labor by empty stomachs and the law of the land.

“Do you know what will happen to Farley[3] and his strike-breakers? I’ll tell you. Strike-breaking as an occupation will cease. There won’t be any more strikes. In place of strikes will be slave revolts. Farley and his gang will be promoted to slave-driving. Oh, it won’t be called that; it will be called enforcing the law of the land that compels the laborers to work. It simply prolongs the fight, this treachery of the big unions. Heaven only knows now where and when the Revolution will triumph.”

“Do you know what’s going to happen to Farley[3] and his strike-breakers? I’ll tell you. Strike-breaking as a job will end. There won’t be any more strikes. Instead of strikes, there will be slave revolts. Farley and his crew will be promoted to slave-driving. Oh, it won’t be called that; it will be referred to as enforcing the law that forces workers to labor. This treachery of the big unions just extends the conflict. Only heaven knows when and where the Revolution will succeed.”

[3] James Farley—a notorious strike-breaker of the period. A man more courageous than ethical, and of undeniable ability. He rose high under the rule of the Iron Heel and finally was translated into the oligarch class. He was assassinated in 1932 by Sarah Jenkins, whose husband, thirty years before, had been killed by Farley’s strike-breakers.

[3] James Farley—a well-known strike-breaker of the time. A man who was braver than he was moral, and undoubtedly skilled. He climbed the ranks during the reign of the Iron Heel and eventually became part of the oligarch class. He was killed in 1932 by Sarah Jenkins, whose husband had been murdered by Farley’s strike-breakers thirty years earlier.

“But with such a powerful combination as the Oligarchy and the big unions, is there any reason to believe that the Revolution will ever triumph?” I queried. “May not the combination endure forever?”

“But with such a powerful combination of the Oligarchy and the big unions, is there any reason to think that the Revolution will ever succeed?” I asked. “Couldn’t this alliance last indefinitely?”

He shook his head. “One of our generalizations is that every system founded upon class and caste contains within itself the germs of its own decay. When a system is founded upon class, how can caste be prevented? The Iron Heel will not be able to prevent it, and in the end caste will destroy the Iron Heel. The oligarchs have already developed caste among themselves; but wait until the favored unions develop caste. The Iron Heel will use all its power to prevent it, but it will fail.

He shook his head. “One of our key ideas is that any system built on class and caste carries the seeds of its own downfall. When a system is based on class, how can we avoid caste? The Iron Heel won’t be able to stop it, and ultimately, caste will bring down the Iron Heel. The oligarchs have already created a caste among themselves, but just wait until the privileged unions establish their own caste. The Iron Heel will try everything to prevent it, but it will fail.

“In the favored unions are the flower of the American workingmen. They are strong, efficient men. They have become members of those unions through competition for place. Every fit workman in the United States will be possessed by the ambition to become a member of the favored unions. The Oligarchy will encourage such ambition and the consequent competition. Thus will the strong men, who might else be revolutionists, be won away and their strength used to bolster the Oligarchy.

“In the preferred unions are the best of American workers. They are strong, capable individuals. They have joined these unions by competing for positions. Every qualified worker in the United States will aspire to become a member of these preferred unions. The Oligarchy will foster this ambition and the resulting competition. This way, the strong individuals, who might otherwise become revolutionaries, are diverted and their strength is used to support the Oligarchy.”

“On the other hand, the labor castes, the members of the favored unions, will strive to make their organizations into close corporations. And they will succeed. Membership in the labor castes will become hereditary. Sons will succeed fathers, and there will be no inflow of new strength from that eternal reservoir of strength, the common people. This will mean deterioration of the labor castes, and in the end they will become weaker and weaker. At the same time, as an institution, they will become temporarily all-powerful. They will be like the guards of the palace in old Rome, and there will be palace revolutions whereby the labor castes will seize the reins of power. And there will be counter-palace revolutions of the oligarchs, and sometimes the one, and sometimes the other, will be in power. And through it all the inevitable caste-weakening will go on, so that in the end the common people will come into their own.”

“On the other hand, the labor groups, the members of the privileged unions, will try to make their organizations exclusive. And they will succeed. Membership in the labor groups will become hereditary. Sons will take over from their fathers, and there will be no new energy coming in from that endless source of strength, the ordinary people. This will lead to the decline of the labor groups, and eventually, they will become weaker and weaker. At the same time, as an institution, they will become temporarily all-powerful. They will be like the guards of a palace in ancient Rome, and there will be revolutions where the labor groups will seize control. There will also be counter-revolutions by the elites, and sometimes one will be in power, and sometimes the other. Through it all, the inevitable weakening of the groups will continue, so that in the end, the common people will reclaim their place.”

This foreshadowing of a slow social evolution was made when Ernest was first depressed by the defection of the great unions. I never agreed with him in it, and I disagree now, as I write these lines, more heartily than ever; for even now, though Ernest is gone, we are on the verge of the revolt that will sweep all oligarchies away. Yet I have here given Ernest’s prophecy because it was his prophecy. In spite of his belief in it, he worked like a giant against it, and he, more than any man, has made possible the revolt that even now waits the signal to burst forth.[4]

This hint of a slow social change came when Ernest first felt down about the departure of the major unions. I never agreed with him then, and I disagree even more now as I write this; because even now that Ernest is gone, we're on the brink of a revolt that will overthrow all oligarchies. Still, I’ve included Ernest’s prediction because it was his. Despite his belief in it, he fought hard against it, and he, more than anyone else, has made the upcoming revolt possible, which is just waiting for the right moment to explode.[4]

[4] Everhard’s social foresight was remarkable. As clearly as in the light of past events, he saw the defection of the favored unions, the rise and the slow decay of the labor castes, and the struggle between the decaying oligarchs and labor castes for control of the great governmental machine.

[4] Everhard’s ability to predict social trends was impressive. Just like the issues of the past, he recognized the defection of the favored unions, the rise and gradual decline of the labor groups, and the conflict between the fading oligarchs and labor groups over control of the massive government system.

“But if the Oligarchy persists,” I asked him that evening, “what will become of the great surpluses that will fall to its share every year?”

“But if the Oligarchy keeps at it,” I asked him that evening, “what will happen to the huge surpluses that it will get every year?”

“The surpluses will have to be expended somehow,” he answered; “and trust the oligarchs to find a way. Magnificent roads will be built. There will be great achievements in science, and especially in art. When the oligarchs have completely mastered the people, they will have time to spare for other things. They will become worshippers of beauty. They will become art-lovers. And under their direction and generously rewarded, will toil the artists. The result will be great art; for no longer, as up to yesterday, will the artists pander to the bourgeois taste of the middle class. It will be great art, I tell you, and wonder cities will arise that will make tawdry and cheap the cities of old time. And in these cities will the oligarchs dwell and worship beauty.[5]

“The surpluses will need to be spent somehow,” he replied; “and you can count on the oligarchs to figure it out. Amazing roads will be built. There will be significant advancements in science, especially in art. Once the oligarchs have completely dominated the people, they will have extra time for other pursuits. They will become admirers of beauty. They will become art enthusiasts. And with their guidance, artists will be generously compensated for their work. The outcome will be outstanding art; for no longer, as up until yesterday, will the artists cater to the middle class's taste. It will be exceptional art, I assure you, and incredible cities will emerge that will make the old cities look cheap and shabby. And in these cities, the oligarchs will reside and celebrate beauty.[5]

[5] We cannot but marvel at Everhard’s foresight. Before ever the thought of wonder cities like Ardis and Asgard entered the minds of the oligarchs, Everhard saw those cities and the inevitable necessity for their creation.

[5] We can’t help but admire Everhard’s insight. Long before the idea of amazing cities like Ardis and Asgard even crossed the minds of the oligarchs, Everhard envisioned those cities and the unavoidable need for their development.

“Thus will the surplus be constantly expended while labor does the work. The building of these great works and cities will give a starvation ration to millions of common laborers, for the enormous bulk of the surplus will compel an equally enormous expenditure, and the oligarchs will build for a thousand years—ay, for ten thousand years. They will build as the Egyptians and the Babylonians never dreamed of building; and when the oligarchs have passed away, their great roads and their wonder cities will remain for the brotherhood of labor to tread upon and dwell within.[6]

“Thus, the surplus will always be used up while labor does the work. The construction of these massive projects and cities will provide barely enough food for millions of everyday workers, because the enormous amount of surplus will require just as huge an expenditure. The powerful elites will build for a thousand years—indeed, for ten thousand years. They will build in ways that even the Egyptians and Babylonians never imagined; and when the elites are gone, their grand roads and marvelous cities will remain for the working class to walk on and live in.[6]

[6] And since that day of prophecy, have passed away the three centuries of the Iron Heel and the four centuries of the Brotherhood of Man, and to-day we tread the roads and dwell in the cities that the oligarchs built. It is true, we are even now building still more wonderful wonder cities, but the wonder cities of the oligarchs endure, and I write these lines in Ardis, one of the most wonderful of them all.

[6] And since that day of prophecy, three centuries of the Iron Heel and four centuries of the Brotherhood of Man have passed, and today we walk the roads and live in the cities that the oligarchs built. It’s true, we are currently creating even more amazing cities, but the incredible cities of the oligarchs remain, and I write these lines in Ardis, one of the most amazing of them all.

“These things the oligarchs will do because they cannot help doing them. These great works will be the form their expenditure of the surplus will take, and in the same way that the ruling classes of Egypt of long ago expended the surplus they robbed from the people by the building of temples and pyramids. Under the oligarchs will flourish, not a priest class, but an artist class. And in place of the merchant class of bourgeoisie will be the labor castes. And beneath will be the abyss, wherein will fester and starve and rot, and ever renew itself, the common people, the great bulk of the population. And in the end, who knows in what day, the common people will rise up out of the abyss; the labor castes and the Oligarchy will crumble away; and then, at last, after the travail of the centuries, will it be the day of the common man. I had thought to see that day; but now I know that I shall never see it.”

“These are the things the oligarchs will do because they can't help themselves. These great works will be how they choose to spend their surplus, much like how the ruling classes of ancient Egypt squandered the wealth they took from the people on temples and pyramids. Under the oligarchs, there will be not a class of priests, but a class of artists. Replacing the merchant class of the bourgeoisie will be the labor castes. Below them will be the abyss, where the common people— the vast majority of the population—will suffer, starve, decay, and continuously regenerate. Ultimately, who knows when it will happen, but the common people will rise from the abyss; the labor castes and the oligarchy will fall apart; and finally, after centuries of struggle, it will be the day of the common man. I once thought I would witness that day; but now I realize I will never see it.”

He paused and looked at me, and added:

He paused, looked at me, and added:

“Social evolution is exasperatingly slow, isn’t it, sweetheart?”

“Social evolution is frustratingly slow, isn’t it, babe?”

My arms were about him, and his head was on my breast.

My arms were around him, and his head was on my chest.

“Sing me to sleep,” he murmured whimsically. “I have had a visioning, and I wish to forget.”

“Sing me to sleep,” he said playfully. “I’ve had a vision, and I want to forget.”

CHAPTER XV.
LAST DAYS

It was near the end of January, 1913, that the changed attitude of the Oligarchy toward the favored unions was made public. The newspapers published information of an unprecedented rise in wages and shortening of hours for the railroad employees, the iron and steel workers, and the engineers and machinists. But the whole truth was not told. The oligarchs did not dare permit the telling of the whole truth. In reality, the wages had been raised much higher, and the privileges were correspondingly greater. All this was secret, but secrets will out. Members of the favored unions told their wives, and the wives gossiped, and soon all the labor world knew what had happened.

It was around the end of January 1913 when the changed attitude of the Oligarchy towards the favored unions became public. The newspapers reported an unprecedented increase in wages and reduced working hours for railroad employees, iron and steel workers, and engineers and machinists. However, the full truth wasn't disclosed. The oligarchs were not willing to allow the complete truth to come out. In reality, the wages had been raised even more, and the privileges were significantly greater. All of this was kept a secret, but secrets have a way of getting out. Members of the favored unions shared the news with their wives, who then gossiped, and soon the entire labor community knew what had happened.

It was merely the logical development of what in the nineteenth century had been known as grab-sharing. In the industrial warfare of that time, profit-sharing had been tried. That is, the capitalists had striven to placate the workers by interesting them financially in their work. But profit-sharing, as a system, was ridiculous and impossible. Profit-sharing could be successful only in isolated cases in the midst of a system of industrial strife; for if all labor and all capital shared profits, the same conditions would obtain as did obtain when there was no profit-sharing.

It was just the natural progression of what had been called grab-sharing in the nineteenth century. During that period of industrial conflict, profit-sharing was attempted. Essentially, business owners tried to smooth things over with their employees by giving them a financial stake in their work. However, profit-sharing as a system was absurd and unfeasible. It could only work in a few rare situations within an environment of industrial conflict; if every worker and every business owner received a share of the profits, the same conditions would exist as they did before profit-sharing was introduced.

So, out of the unpractical idea of profit-sharing, arose the practical idea of grab-sharing. “Give us more pay and charge it to the public,” was the slogan of the strong unions.[1] And here and there this selfish policy worked successfully. In charging it to the public, it was charged to the great mass of unorganized labor and of weakly organized labor. These workers actually paid the increased wages of their stronger brothers who were members of unions that were labor monopolies. This idea, as I say, was merely carried to its logical conclusion, on a large scale, by the combination of the oligarchs and the favored unions.

So, out of the impractical idea of profit-sharing came the practical idea of grab-sharing. “Give us more pay and let the public foot the bill,” was the motto of the powerful unions. And here and there, this selfish approach worked effectively. By charging it to the public, it was actually charged to the vast majority of unorganized workers and those with weak unions. These workers ended up paying the higher wages of their stronger union members, who were part of labor monopolies. This concept, as I mentioned, was simply taken to its logical extreme on a large scale by the alliance of the oligarchs and the privileged unions.

[1] All the railroad unions entered into this combination with the oligarchs, and it is of interest to note that the first definite application of the policy of profit-grabbing was made by a railroad union in the nineteenth century A.D., namely, the Brotherhood of Locomotive Engineers. P. M. Arthur was for twenty years Grand Chief of the Brotherhood. After the strike on the Pennsylvania Railroad in 1877, he broached a scheme to have the Locomotive Engineers make terms with the railroads and to “go it alone” so far as the rest of the labor unions were concerned. This scheme was eminently successful. It was as successful as it was selfish, and out of it was coined the word “arthurization,” to denote grab-sharing on the part of labor unions. This word “arthurization” has long puzzled the etymologists, but its derivation, I hope, is now made clear.

[1] All the railroad unions joined forces with the wealthy elite, and it's interesting to note that the first clear example of the profit-driven approach was implemented by a railroad union in the 19th century A.D., specifically the Brotherhood of Locomotive Engineers. P. M. Arthur served as Grand Chief of the Brotherhood for twenty years. After the strike on the Pennsylvania Railroad in 1877, he proposed a plan for the Locomotive Engineers to negotiate independently with the railroads while leaving the other labor unions out of it. This plan turned out to be very successful, but it was also quite self-serving, and from it came the term “arthurization,” referring to profit-sharing schemes among labor unions. The term "arthurization" has puzzled etymologists for a long time, but I hope its origin is now clear.

As soon as the secret of the defection of the favored unions leaked out, there were rumblings and mutterings in the labor world. Next, the favored unions withdrew from the international organizations and broke off all affiliations. Then came trouble and violence. The members of the favored unions were branded as traitors, and in saloons and brothels, on the streets and at work, and, in fact, everywhere, they were assaulted by the comrades they had so treacherously deserted.

As soon as the news about the defection of the favored unions got out, there were whispers and complaints in the labor community. Soon after, the favored unions pulled away from the international organizations and severed all ties. Then trouble and violence erupted. Members of the favored unions were labeled as traitors, and in bars and clubs, on the streets and at work, they were attacked by the comrades they had so betrayingly abandoned.

Countless heads were broken, and there were many killed. No member of the favored unions was safe. They gathered together in bands in order to go to work or to return from work. They walked always in the middle of the street. On the sidewalk they were liable to have their skulls crushed by bricks and cobblestones thrown from windows and house-tops. They were permitted to carry weapons, and the authorities aided them in every way. Their persecutors were sentenced to long terms in prison, where they were harshly treated; while no man, not a member of the favored unions, was permitted to carry weapons. Violation of this law was made a high misdemeanor and punished accordingly.

Countless people were injured, and many were killed. No member of the favored unions was safe. They gathered in groups to go to work or return from work. They always walked in the middle of the street. On the sidewalk, they risked having their skulls smashed by bricks and cobblestones thrown from windows and rooftops. They were allowed to carry weapons, and the authorities supported them in every way. Their attackers received long prison sentences, where they were treated harshly; while no one who wasn’t part of the favored unions was allowed to carry weapons. Breaking this law was considered a serious offense and was punished accordingly.

Outraged labor continued to wreak vengeance on the traitors. Caste lines formed automatically. The children of the traitors were persecuted by the children of the workers who had been betrayed, until it was impossible for the former to play on the streets or to attend the public schools. Also, the wives and families of the traitors were ostracized, while the corner groceryman who sold provisions to them was boycotted.

Angry workers continued to take revenge on the traitors. Social divisions emerged naturally. The children of the traitors were harassed by the children of the workers who felt betrayed, making it impossible for them to play in the streets or go to public schools. Additionally, the wives and families of the traitors were shunned, and the local grocery store owner who sold them supplies was boycotted.

As a result, driven back upon themselves from every side, the traitors and their families became clannish. Finding it impossible to dwell in safety in the midst of the betrayed proletariat, they moved into new localities inhabited by themselves alone. In this they were favored by the oligarchs. Good dwellings, modern and sanitary, were built for them, surrounded by spacious yards, and separated here and there by parks and playgrounds. Their children attended schools especially built for them, and in these schools manual training and applied science were specialized upon. Thus, and unavoidably, at the very beginning, out of this segregation arose caste. The members of the favored unions became the aristocracy of labor. They were set apart from the rest of labor. They were better housed, better clothed, better fed, better treated. They were grab-sharing with a vengeance.

As a result, feeling cornered from all sides, the traitors and their families became tight-knit. Unable to live safely among the betrayed working class, they moved to new areas where they were the only residents. The oligarchs supported this. Nice homes, modern and clean, were built for them, surrounded by large yards and separated by parks and playgrounds. Their children went to schools specifically created for them, which focused on practical skills and applied sciences. Consequently, and inevitably, this separation led to a class system. Members of the privileged unions became the elite of the working class. They were set apart from the rest of the labor force. They had better housing, better clothing, better food, and better treatment. They were taking full advantage of the situation.

In the meantime, the rest of the working class was more harshly treated. Many little privileges were taken away from it, while its wages and its standard of living steadily sank down. Incidentally, its public schools deteriorated, and education slowly ceased to be compulsory. The increase in the younger generation of children who could not read nor write was perilous.

In the meantime, the rest of the working class faced tougher conditions. Many small privileges were stripped away, while their wages and standard of living continued to decline. Meanwhile, public schools fell into disrepair, and education gradually became less mandatory. The rise in the number of young children who couldn't read or write was alarming.

The capture of the world-market by the United States had disrupted the rest of the world. Institutions and governments were everywhere crashing or transforming. Germany, Italy, France, Australia, and New Zealand were busy forming cooperative commonwealths. The British Empire was falling apart. England’s hands were full. In India revolt was in full swing. The cry in all Asia was, “Asia for the Asiatics!” And behind this cry was Japan, ever urging and aiding the yellow and brown races against the white. And while Japan dreamed of continental empire and strove to realize the dream, she suppressed her own proletarian revolution. It was a simple war of the castes, Coolie versus Samurai, and the coolie socialists were executed by tens of thousands. Forty thousand were killed in the street-fighting of Tokio and in the futile assault on the Mikado’s palace. Kobe was a shambles; the slaughter of the cotton operatives by machine-guns became classic as the most terrific execution ever achieved by modern war machines. Most savage of all was the Japanese Oligarchy that arose. Japan dominated the East, and took to herself the whole Asiatic portion of the world-market, with the exception of India.

The U.S. taking over the global market threw the rest of the world into chaos. Governments and institutions were collapsing or changing everywhere. Germany, Italy, France, Australia, and New Zealand were focused on creating cooperative governments. The British Empire was disintegrating. England was overwhelmed. In India, a revolt was in full swing. The rallying cry across Asia was, “Asia for the Asiatics!” Behind this movement was Japan, always pushing and supporting the yellow and brown races against the white. While Japan dreamed of a continental empire and worked to make it a reality, it suppressed its own working-class revolution. It became a simple struggle of the classes, Coolie versus Samurai, and the coolie socialists were executed by the tens of thousands. Forty thousand people died in the street battles of Tokyo and during the failed assault on the Emperor's palace. Kobe was devastated; the massacre of cotton workers by machine guns became infamous as one of the most brutal executions carried out by modern warfare. The most brutal of all was the rise of the Japanese Oligarchy. Japan dominated the East and claimed almost the entire Asian part of the global market, except for India.

England managed to crush her own proletarian revolution and to hold on to India, though she was brought to the verge of exhaustion. Also, she was compelled to let her great colonies slip away from her. So it was that the socialists succeeded in making Australia and New Zealand into cooperative commonwealths. And it was for the same reason that Canada was lost to the mother country. But Canada crushed her own socialist revolution, being aided in this by the Iron Heel. At the same time, the Iron Heel helped Mexico and Cuba to put down revolt. The result was that the Iron Heel was firmly established in the New World. It had welded into one compact political mass the whole of North America from the Panama Canal to the Arctic Ocean.

England managed to suppress her own working-class revolution and maintain control over India, even though she was nearly worn out. Additionally, she was forced to let go of her major colonies. This allowed socialists to transform Australia and New Zealand into cooperative commonwealths. For the same reason, Canada was lost to the homeland. However, Canada quelled its own socialist revolution, with help from the Iron Heel. Meanwhile, the Iron Heel assisted Mexico and Cuba in putting down uprisings. The result was that the Iron Heel became firmly established in the New World, uniting all of North America into a cohesive political entity from the Panama Canal to the Arctic Ocean.

And England, at the sacrifice of her great colonies, had succeeded only in retaining India. But this was no more than temporary. The struggle with Japan and the rest of Asia for India was merely delayed. England was destined shortly to lose India, while behind that event loomed the struggle between a united Asia and the world.

And England, at the cost of her major colonies, had only managed to keep India. But this was just a temporary situation. The competition with Japan and the rest of Asia for India was only postponed. England was soon going to lose India, and behind that event was the upcoming conflict between a united Asia and the rest of the world.

And while all the world was torn with conflict, we of the United States were not placid and peaceful. The defection of the great unions had prevented our proletarian revolt, but violence was everywhere. In addition to the labor troubles, and the discontent of the farmers and of the remnant of the middle class, a religious revival had blazed up. An offshoot of the Seventh Day Adventists sprang into sudden prominence, proclaiming the end of the world.

And while the whole world was caught up in conflict, we in the United States were not calm and peaceful. The breaking away of the major unions had stopped our working-class uprising, but violence was everywhere. Besides the labor issues and the dissatisfaction of farmers and what was left of the middle class, a religious revival had erupted. A branch of the Seventh Day Adventists suddenly gained prominence, declaring that the end of the world was near.

“Confusion thrice confounded!” Ernest cried. “How can we hope for solidarity with all these cross purposes and conflicts?”

“Confusion three times over!” Ernest shouted. “How can we expect to stand united with all these conflicting goals and disagreements?”

And truly the religious revival assumed formidable proportions. The people, what of their wretchedness, and of their disappointment in all things earthly, were ripe and eager for a heaven where industrial tyrants entered no more than camels passed through needle-eyes. Wild-eyed itinerant preachers swarmed over the land; and despite the prohibition of the civil authorities, and the persecution for disobedience, the flames of religious frenzy were fanned by countless camp-meetings.

And truly, the religious revival became quite intense. The people, burdened by their misery and disappointment in everything worldly, were ready and eager for a heaven where industrial tyrants could hardly enter. Passionate traveling preachers flooded the land; and despite the restrictions from the authorities and the punishments for not complying, the fires of religious excitement were stoked by numerous camp meetings.

It was the last days, they claimed, the beginning of the end of the world. The four winds had been loosed. God had stirred the nations to strife. It was a time of visions and miracles, while seers and prophetesses were legion. The people ceased work by hundreds of thousands and fled to the mountains, there to await the imminent coming of God and the rising of the hundred and forty and four thousand to heaven. But in the meantime God did not come, and they starved to death in great numbers. In their desperation they ravaged the farms for food, and the consequent tumult and anarchy in the country districts but increased the woes of the poor expropriated farmers.

It was the final days, they said, the start of the end of the world. The four winds had been unleashed. God had stirred up conflict among the nations. It was a time of visions and miracles, with countless seers and prophetesses. People stopped working by the hundreds of thousands and fled to the mountains, waiting for God's imminent arrival and the ascension of the one hundred forty-four thousand to heaven. But in the meantime, God did not come, and many starved to death. In their desperation, they raided farms for food, leading to chaos and lawlessness in the rural areas, which only worsened the suffering of the poor farmers who had been robbed.

Also, the farms and warehouses were the property of the Iron Heel. Armies of troops were put into the field, and the fanatics were herded back at the bayonet point to their tasks in the cities. There they broke out in ever recurring mobs and riots. Their leaders were executed for sedition or confined in madhouses. Those who were executed went to their deaths with all the gladness of martyrs. It was a time of madness. The unrest spread. In the swamps and deserts and waste places, from Florida to Alaska, the small groups of Indians that survived were dancing ghost dances and waiting the coming of a Messiah of their own.

Also, the farms and warehouses were owned by the Iron Heel. Large numbers of troops were deployed, and the extremists were forced back at gunpoint to their jobs in the cities. There, they erupted into recurring riots and mobs. Their leaders were executed for rebellion or locked away in mental institutions. Those who were executed faced their deaths with the spirit of martyrs. It was a time of madness. The unrest spread. In the swamps, deserts, and wastelands, from Florida to Alaska, the small groups of surviving Native Americans were performing ghost dances, waiting for their own Messiah to arrive.

And through it all, with a serenity and certitude that was terrifying, continued to rise the form of that monster of the ages, the Oligarchy. With iron hand and iron heel it mastered the surging millions, out of confusion brought order, out of the very chaos wrought its own foundation and structure.

And through it all, with a calmness and certainty that was frightening, the figure of that age-old monster, the Oligarchy, kept rising. With an iron fist and an iron grip, it controlled the restless masses, creating order out of chaos and building its own foundation and structure from the very confusion it caused.

“Just wait till we get in,” the Grangers said—Calvin said it to us in our Pell Street quarters. “Look at the states we’ve captured. With you socialists to back us, we’ll make them sing another song when we take office.”

“Just wait till we get in,” the Grangers said—Calvin told us in our Pell Street place. “Check out the states we’ve won. With you socialists supporting us, we’ll make them sing a different tune when we take office.”

“The millions of the discontented and the impoverished are ours,” the socialists said. “The Grangers have come over to us, the farmers, the middle class, and the laborers. The capitalist system will fall to pieces. In another month we send fifty men to Congress. Two years hence every office will be ours, from the President down to the local dog-catcher.”

“The millions of discontented and impoverished people are on our side,” the socialists declared. “The Grangers have joined us, along with farmers, the middle class, and laborers. The capitalist system will collapse. In a month, we’ll send fifty people to Congress. In two years, every position will be ours, from the President down to the local dog catcher.”

To all of which Ernest would shake his head and say:

To all of this, Ernest would shake his head and say:

“How many rifles have you got? Do you know where you can get plenty of lead? When it comes to powder, chemical mixtures are better than mechanical mixtures, you take my word.”

“How many rifles do you have? Do you know where to find a lot of lead? When it comes to gunpowder, chemical mixtures are better than mechanical ones, trust me on that.”

CHAPTER XVI.
THE END

When it came time for Ernest and me to go to Washington, father did not accompany us. He had become enamoured of proletarian life. He looked upon our slum neighborhood as a great sociological laboratory, and he had embarked upon an apparently endless orgy of investigation. He chummed with the laborers, and was an intimate in scores of homes. Also, he worked at odd jobs, and the work was play as well as learned investigation, for he delighted in it and was always returning home with copious notes and bubbling over with new adventures. He was the perfect scientist.

When it was time for Ernest and me to head to Washington, Dad didn't come with us. He had fallen in love with working-class life. He saw our neighborhood as a fascinating sociological experiment and had started what seemed like an endless journey of exploration. He hung out with the workers and became a close friend in many households. Plus, he took on various odd jobs, which were both fun and a part of his research, since he loved it and always came home with tons of notes and excited stories. He was the ideal scientist.

There was no need for his working at all, because Ernest managed to earn enough from his translating to take care of the three of us. But father insisted on pursuing his favorite phantom, and a protean phantom it was, judging from the jobs he worked at. I shall never forget the evening he brought home his street pedler’s outfit of shoe-laces and suspenders, nor the time I went into the little corner grocery to make some purchase and had him wait on me. After that I was not surprised when he tended bar for a week in the saloon across the street. He worked as a night watchman, hawked potatoes on the street, pasted labels in a cannery warehouse, was utility man in a paper-box factory, and water-carrier for a street railway construction gang, and even joined the Dishwashers’ Union just before it fell to pieces.

There was no need for him to work at all because Ernest made enough money from his translating to support the three of us. But Dad insisted on chasing his favorite fantasy, which was quite the shapeshifter based on the jobs he took. I'll never forget the evening he brought home his street vendor's gear of shoelaces and suspenders, or the time I went into the little corner grocery to buy something and he helped me. After that, I wasn't surprised when he worked as a bartender for a week at the saloon across the street. He worked as a night watchman, sold potatoes on the street, pasted labels in a cannery, was a utility guy at a paper box factory, and carried water for a streetcar construction crew, and he even joined the Dishwashers' Union just before it fell apart.

I think the Bishop’s example, so far as wearing apparel was concerned, must have fascinated father, for he wore the cheap cotton shirt of the laborer and the overalls with the narrow strap about the hips. Yet one habit remained to him from the old life; he always dressed for dinner, or supper, rather.

I think the Bishop’s example, in terms of clothing, must have intrigued Dad, because he wore a cheap cotton shirt like a worker and overalls with a narrow strap around his hips. Yet one habit stayed with him from the old days; he always dressed for dinner, or supper, really.

I could be happy anywhere with Ernest; and father’s happiness in our changed circumstances rounded out my own happiness.

I could be happy anywhere with Ernest, and my dad's happiness in our new situation completed my own happiness.

“When I was a boy,” father said, “I was very curious. I wanted to know why things were and how they came to pass. That was why I became a physicist. The life in me to-day is just as curious as it was in my boyhood, and it’s the being curious that makes life worth living.”

“When I was a kid,” Dad said, “I was really curious. I wanted to know why things were the way they were and how they happened. That’s why I became a physicist. The curiosity I have today is just as strong as it was when I was younger, and it’s that curiosity that makes life worth living.”

Sometimes he ventured north of Market Street into the shopping and theatre district, where he sold papers, ran errands, and opened cabs. There, one day, closing a cab, he encountered Mr. Wickson. In high glee father described the incident to us that evening.

Sometimes he went north of Market Street into the shopping and theater district, where he sold newspapers, ran errands, and hailed taxis. One day, while closing a cab, he ran into Mr. Wickson. That evening, my father excitedly recounted the encounter to us.

“Wickson looked at me sharply when I closed the door on him, and muttered, ‘Well, I’ll be damned.’ Just like that he said it, ‘Well, I’ll be damned.’ His face turned red and he was so confused that he forgot to tip me. But he must have recovered himself quickly, for the cab hadn’t gone fifty feet before it turned around and came back. He leaned out of the door.

“Wickson shot me a sharp look when I closed the door on him and muttered, ‘Well, I’ll be damned.’ Just like that, he said it, ‘Well, I’ll be damned.’ His face went red, and he was so flustered that he forgot to give me a tip. But he must have pulled himself together quickly because the cab hadn’t gone fifty feet before it turned around and came back. He leaned out of the door.

“‘Look here, Professor,’ he said, ‘this is too much. What can I do for you?’

“‘Listen, Professor,’ he said, ‘this is too much. What do you need from me?’”

“‘I closed the cab door for you,’ I answered. ‘According to common custom you might give me a dime.’

“‘I closed the cab door for you,’ I replied. ‘By usual practice, you should give me a dime.’”

“‘Bother that!’ he snorted. ‘I mean something substantial.’

“‘Forget about that!’ he snorted. ‘I’m talking about something meaningful.’”

“He was certainly serious—a twinge of ossified conscience or something; and so I considered with grave deliberation for a moment.

“He was definitely serious—a hint of a rigid conscience or something; so I thought about it carefully for a moment."

“His face was quite expectant when I began my answer, but you should have seen it when I finished.

“His face was really eager when I started my answer, but you should have seen it when I finished.

“‘You might give me back my home,’ I said, ‘and my stock in the Sierra Mills.’”

“‘You could return my home to me,’ I said, ‘and my shares in the Sierra Mills.’”

Father paused.

Dad paused.

“What did he say?” I questioned eagerly.

“What did he say?” I asked eagerly.

“What could he say? He said nothing. But I said, ‘I hope you are happy.’ He looked at me curiously. ‘Tell me, are you happy?’” I asked.

“What could he say? He said nothing. But I said, ‘I hope you’re happy.’ He looked at me with curiosity. ‘Tell me, are you happy?’” I asked.

“He ordered the cabman to drive on, and went away swearing horribly. And he didn’t give me the dime, much less the home and stock; so you see, my dear, your father’s street-arab career is beset with disappointments.”

“He told the cab driver to keep going and stormed off swearing like crazy. And he didn’t give me the dime, let alone the house and stock; so you see, my dear, your father’s life on the streets is full of letdowns.”

And so it was that father kept on at our Pell Street quarters, while Ernest and I went to Washington. Except for the final consummation, the old order had passed away, and the final consummation was nearer than I dreamed. Contrary to our expectation, no obstacles were raised to prevent the socialist Congressmen from taking their seats. Everything went smoothly, and I laughed at Ernest when he looked upon the very smoothness as something ominous.

And so it was that Dad stayed at our Pell Street place while Ernest and I went to Washington. Aside from the final event, the old ways were gone, and that final event was closer than I imagined. Contrary to what we expected, no barriers were put up to stop the socialist Congress members from taking their seats. Everything went smoothly, and I laughed at Ernest when he saw the smoothness as something suspicious.

We found our socialist comrades confident, optimistic of their strength and of the things they would accomplish. A few Grangers who had been elected to Congress increased our strength, and an elaborate programme of what was to be done was prepared by the united forces. In all of which Ernest joined loyally and energetically, though he could not forbear, now and again, from saying, apropos of nothing in particular, “When it comes to powder, chemical mixtures are better than mechanical mixtures, you take my word.”

We found our socialist comrades confident and optimistic about their strength and what they could achieve. A few Grangers who had been elected to Congress boosted our numbers, and a detailed plan for what needed to be done was put together by the united forces. Ernest participated wholeheartedly and actively, although he occasionally couldn't help but remark, out of the blue, “When it comes to explosives, chemical mixtures are better than mechanical ones, trust me.”

The trouble arose first with the Grangers in the various states they had captured at the last election. There were a dozen of these states, but the Grangers who had been elected were not permitted to take office. The incumbents refused to get out. It was very simple. They merely charged illegality in the elections and wrapped up the whole situation in the interminable red tape of the law. The Grangers were powerless. The courts were in the hands of their enemies.

The trouble started with the Grangers in the states they had won in the last election. There were a dozen of these states, but the Grangers who were elected were not allowed to take office. The current officials refused to step down. It was straightforward. They simply claimed the elections were illegal and tangled the entire situation in endless legal red tape. The Grangers were powerless. The courts were controlled by their opponents.

This was the moment of danger. If the cheated Grangers became violent, all was lost. How we socialists worked to hold them back! There were days and nights when Ernest never closed his eyes in sleep. The big leaders of the Grangers saw the peril and were with us to a man. But it was all of no avail. The Oligarchy wanted violence, and it set its agents-provocateurs to work. Without discussion, it was the agents-provocateurs who caused the Peasant Revolt.

This was the moment of danger. If the cheated Grangers turned violent, everything was lost. We socialists worked hard to keep them calm! There were days and nights when Ernest didn’t sleep at all. The main leaders of the Grangers recognized the threat and stood with us completely. But it didn’t matter. The Oligarchy wanted violence and sent in its provocateurs to stir things up. Without any debate, it was the provocateurs who triggered the Peasant Revolt.

In a dozen states the revolt flared up. The expropriated farmers took forcible possession of the state governments. Of course this was unconstitutional, and of course the United States put its soldiers into the field. Everywhere the agents-provocateurs urged the people on. These emissaries of the Iron Heel disguised themselves as artisans, farmers, and farm laborers. In Sacramento, the capital of California, the Grangers had succeeded in maintaining order. Thousands of secret agents were rushed to the devoted city. In mobs composed wholly of themselves, they fired and looted buildings and factories. They worked the people up until they joined them in the pillage. Liquor in large quantities was distributed among the slum classes further to inflame their minds. And then, when all was ready, appeared upon the scene the soldiers of the United States, who were, in reality, the soldiers of the Iron Heel. Eleven thousand men, women, and children were shot down on the streets of Sacramento or murdered in their houses. The national government took possession of the state government, and all was over for California.

In a dozen states, the revolt erupted. The dispossessed farmers forcibly took control of the state governments. This was clearly unconstitutional, and the United States responded by sending in soldiers. Everywhere, provocateurs encouraged the people. These agents of the Iron Heel disguised themselves as artisans, farmers, and farm laborers. In Sacramento, the capital of California, the Grangers managed to maintain order. Thousands of undercover agents were rushed to the beleaguered city. In mobs made up entirely of themselves, they set buildings and factories on fire and looted them. They incited the people until they joined in the plunder. Alcohol in large quantities was given out to the poor to further inflame their emotions. And then, when everything was in place, the soldiers of the United States, who were really the soldiers of the Iron Heel, arrived. Eleven thousand men, women, and children were shot down in the streets of Sacramento or murdered in their homes. The national government took control of the state government, and that was the end for California.

And as with California, so elsewhere. Every Granger state was ravaged with violence and washed in blood. First, disorder was precipitated by the secret agents and the Black Hundreds, then the troops were called out. Rioting and mob-rule reigned throughout the rural districts. Day and night the smoke of burning farms, warehouses, villages, and cities filled the sky. Dynamite appeared. Railroad bridges and tunnels were blown up and trains were wrecked. The poor farmers were shot and hanged in great numbers. Reprisals were bitter, and many plutocrats and army officers were murdered. Blood and vengeance were in men’s hearts. The regular troops fought the farmers as savagely as had they been Indians. And the regular troops had cause. Twenty-eight hundred of them had been annihilated in a tremendous series of dynamite explosions in Oregon, and in a similar manner, a number of train loads, at different times and places, had been destroyed. So it was that the regular troops fought for their lives as well as did the farmers.

And just like in California, things were the same everywhere else. Every Granger state was torn apart by violence and bloodshed. It all started with secret agents and the Black Hundreds stirring up trouble, and then the troops were called in. Riots and mob rule took over rural areas. Day and night, the smoke from burning farms, warehouses, villages, and cities filled the air. Dynamite showed up. Railroad bridges and tunnels were blown up, and trains were derailed. Many poor farmers were shot and hanged. The retaliation was fierce, and many wealthy individuals and army officers were killed. There was blood and a desire for revenge in people's hearts. The regular troops fought the farmers with as much brutality as if they were fighting Indians. And the troops had a reason to fight. Two thousand eight hundred of them were killed in a massive series of dynamite blasts in Oregon, and several trainloads had been destroyed at different times and places. So, the regular troops were fighting for their lives just as fiercely as the farmers were.

As for the militia, the militia law of 1903 was put into effect, and the workers of one state were compelled, under pain of death, to shoot down their comrade-workers in other states. Of course, the militia law did not work smoothly at first. Many militia officers were murdered, and many militiamen were executed by drumhead court martial. Ernest’s prophecy was strikingly fulfilled in the cases of Mr. Kowalt and Mr. Asmunsen. Both were eligible for the militia, and both were drafted to serve in the punitive expedition that was despatched from California against the farmers of Missouri. Mr. Kowalt and Mr. Asmunsen refused to serve. They were given short shrift. Drumhead court martial was their portion, and military execution their end. They were shot with their backs to the firing squad.

As for the militia, the militia law of 1903 was implemented, and workers in one state were forced, under threat of death, to shoot their fellow workers in other states. Naturally, the militia law didn't go smoothly at the beginning. Many militia officers were killed, and numerous militiamen were executed by quick military tribunals. Ernest’s prediction came alarmingly true in the cases of Mr. Kowalt and Mr. Asmunsen. Both were eligible for the militia and were drafted to serve in the punitive mission sent from California against the farmers of Missouri. Mr. Kowalt and Mr. Asmunsen refused to serve. They were dealt with harshly. They faced quick military trials, and military execution awaited them. They were shot with their backs turned to the firing squad.

Many young men fled into the mountains to escape serving in the militia. There they became outlaws, and it was not until more peaceful times that they received their punishment. It was drastic. The government issued a proclamation for all law-abiding citizens to come in from the mountains for a period of three months. When the proclaimed date arrived, half a million soldiers were sent into the mountainous districts everywhere. There was no investigation, no trial. Wherever a man was encountered, he was shot down on the spot. The troops operated on the basis that no man not an outlaw remained in the mountains. Some bands, in strong positions, fought gallantly, but in the end every deserter from the militia met death.

Many young men ran to the mountains to avoid joining the militia. There, they became outlaws, and it wasn't until more peaceful times that they faced consequences. The punishment was severe. The government announced that all law-abiding citizens should come down from the mountains for three months. When the deadline arrived, half a million soldiers were deployed into the mountainous areas everywhere. There were no investigations or trials. Wherever a man was found, he was shot on the spot. The troops operated under the assumption that no law-abiding man remained in the mountains. Some groups, in strong positions, fought bravely, but in the end, every deserter from the militia faced death.

A more immediate lesson, however, was impressed on the minds of the people by the punishment meted out to the Kansas militia. The great Kansas Mutiny occurred at the very beginning of military operations against the Grangers. Six thousand of the militia mutinied. They had been for several weeks very turbulent and sullen, and for that reason had been kept in camp. Their open mutiny, however, was without doubt precipitated by the agents-provocateurs.

A more immediate lesson, however, was drilled into the minds of the people by the punishment given to the Kansas militia. The significant Kansas Mutiny happened right at the start of military actions against the Grangers. Six thousand members of the militia rebelled. They had been restless and moody for several weeks, which is why they had been kept in camp. Their outright rebellion, though, was certainly triggered by provocateurs.

On the night of the 22d of April they arose and murdered their officers, only a small remnant of the latter escaping. This was beyond the scheme of the Iron Heel, for the agents-provocateurs had done their work too well. But everything was grist to the Iron Heel. It had prepared for the outbreak, and the killing of so many officers gave it justification for what followed. As by magic, forty thousand soldiers of the regular army surrounded the malcontents. It was a trap. The wretched militiamen found that their machine-guns had been tampered with, and that the cartridges from the captured magazines did not fit their rifles. They hoisted the white flag of surrender, but it was ignored. There were no survivors. The entire six thousand were annihilated. Common shell and shrapnel were thrown in upon them from a distance, and, when, in their desperation, they charged the encircling lines, they were mowed down by the machine-guns. I talked with an eye-witness, and he said that the nearest any militiaman approached the machine-guns was a hundred and fifty yards. The earth was carpeted with the slain, and a final charge of cavalry, with trampling of horses’ hoofs, revolvers, and sabres, crushed the wounded into the ground.

On the night of April 22nd, they rose up and killed their officers, with only a few of them managing to escape. This was not part of the Iron Heel's plan, as the provocateurs had done their job too well. However, everything played into the Iron Heel's hands. It had anticipated the uprising, and the killing of so many officers gave it a reason for what happened next. Like magic, forty thousand soldiers from the regular army surrounded the rebels. It was a trap. The unfortunate militiamen discovered that their machine guns had been sabotaged, and the ammunition from the captured magazines didn’t fit their rifles. They raised the white flag of surrender, but it was overlooked. There were no survivors. All six thousand were wiped out. Regular shells and shrapnel rained down on them from afar, and when they desperately charged at the surrounding lines, they were gunned down by the machine guns. I spoke with an eyewitness, and he told me that the closest any militiaman got to the machine guns was a hundred and fifty yards. The ground was covered with the dead, and a final cavalry charge, with the pounding of hooves, gunfire, and sword clashes, crushed the wounded into the earth.

Simultaneously with the destruction of the Grangers came the revolt of the coal miners. It was the expiring effort of organized labor. Three-quarters of a million of miners went out on strike. But they were too widely scattered over the country to advantage from their own strength. They were segregated in their own districts and beaten into submission. This was the first great slave-drive. Pocock[1] won his spurs as a slave-driver and earned the undying hatred of the proletariat. Countless attempts were made upon his life, but he seemed to bear a charmed existence. It was he who was responsible for the introduction of the Russian passport system among the miners, and the denial of their right of removal from one part of the country to another.

At the same time the Grangers were being destroyed, the coal miners revolted. This was the last push of organized labor. Three-quarters of a million miners went on strike. But they were too spread out across the country to take advantage of their own strength. They were isolated in their own areas and beaten down into submission. This marked the first major campaign of oppression. Pocock[1] established himself as a harsh oppressor and earned the lasting hatred of the working class. There were countless attempts on his life, but he seemed to have a charmed life. He was responsible for bringing in the Russian passport system among the miners and denying them the right to move from one part of the country to another.

[1] Albert Pocock, another of the notorious strike-breakers of earlier years, who, to the day of his death, successfully held all the coal-miners of the country to their task. He was succeeded by his son, Lewis Pocock, and for five generations this remarkable line of slave-drivers handled the coal mines. The elder Pocock, known as Pocock I., has been described as follows: “A long, lean head, semicircled by a fringe of brown and gray hair, with big cheek-bones and a heavy chin, . . . a pale face, lustreless gray eyes, a metallic voice, and a languid manner.” He was born of humble parents, and began his career as a bartender. He next became a private detective for a street railway corporation, and by successive steps developed into a professional strikebreaker. Pocock V., the last of the line, was blown up in a pump-house by a bomb during a petty revolt of the miners in the Indian Territory. This occurred in 2073 A.D.

[1] Albert Pocock, one of the infamous strikebreakers from earlier times, managed to keep all the coal miners in the country working until the day he died. His son, Lewis Pocock, took over after him, and for five generations, this notable line of enforcers controlled the coal mines. The elder Pocock, known as Pocock I., has been described like this: “A long, thin head, surrounded by a fringe of brown and gray hair, with prominent cheekbones and a strong chin, . . . a pale face, dull gray eyes, a metallic voice, and a lethargic manner.” He was born to modest parents and started his career as a bartender. He then became a private detective for a streetcar company and gradually turned into a professional strikebreaker. Pocock V., the last of the family, was killed in a pump-house explosion by a bomb during a minor uprising of the miners in the Indian Territory. This happened in 2073 A.D.

In the meantime, the socialists held firm. While the Grangers expired in flame and blood, and organized labor was disrupted, the socialists held their peace and perfected their secret organization. In vain the Grangers pleaded with us. We rightly contended that any revolt on our part was virtually suicide for the whole Revolution. The Iron Heel, at first dubious about dealing with the entire proletariat at one time, had found the work easier than it had expected, and would have asked nothing better than an uprising on our part. But we avoided the issue, in spite of the fact that agents-provocateurs swarmed in our midst. In those early days, the agents of the Iron Heel were clumsy in their methods. They had much to learn and in the meantime our Fighting Groups weeded them out. It was bitter, bloody work, but we were fighting for life and for the Revolution, and we had to fight the enemy with its own weapons. Yet we were fair. No agent of the Iron Heel was executed without a trial. We may have made mistakes, but if so, very rarely. The bravest, and the most combative and self-sacrificing of our comrades went into the Fighting Groups. Once, after ten years had passed, Ernest made a calculation from figures furnished by the chiefs of the Fighting Groups, and his conclusion was that the average life of a man or woman after becoming a member was five years. The comrades of the Fighting Groups were heroes all, and the peculiar thing about it was that they were opposed to the taking of life. They violated their own natures, yet they loved liberty and knew of no sacrifice too great to make for the Cause.[2]

In the meantime, the socialists remained steadfast. While the Grangers fell in chaos and organized labor was disrupted, the socialists kept quiet and honed their secret organization. The Grangers pleaded with us in vain. We rightly argued that any uprising on our part would be like signing our own death warrant for the whole Revolution. The Iron Heel, initially unsure about confronting the entire working class at once, found the task easier than expected and would have welcomed our revolt. But we sidestepped the issue, despite the fact that provocateurs were everywhere among us. In those early days, the Iron Heel's agents were awkward in their tactics. They had a lot to learn, and during that time our Fighting Groups weeded them out. It was grueling and bloody work, but we were fighting for survival and for the Revolution, and we had to use the enemy's weapons against them. Still, we were fair. No agent of the Iron Heel was executed without a trial. We might have made mistakes, but they were very few and far between. The bravest, most combative, and selfless of our comrades joined the Fighting Groups. Once, after ten years had passed, Ernest analyzed data provided by the leaders of the Fighting Groups, concluding that the average life expectancy of someone after joining was five years. The members of the Fighting Groups were all heroes, and ironically, they were against taking lives. They went against their own nature, yet they loved freedom and believed no sacrifice was too great for the Cause.[2]

[2] These Fighting groups were modelled somewhat after the Fighting Organization of the Russian Revolution, and, despite the unceasing efforts of the Iron Heel, these groups persisted throughout the three centuries of its existence. Composed of men and women actuated by lofty purpose and unafraid to die, the Fighting Groups exercised tremendous influence and tempered the savage brutality of the rulers. Not alone was their work confined to unseen warfare with the secret agents of the Oligarchy. The oligarchs themselves were compelled to listen to the decrees of the Groups, and often, when they disobeyed, were punished by death—and likewise with the subordinates of the oligarchs, with the officers of the army and the leaders of the labor castes.
    Stern justice was meted out by these organized avengers, but most remarkable was their passionless and judicial procedure. There were no snap judgments. When a man was captured he was given fair trial and opportunity for defence. Of necessity, many men were tried and condemned by proxy, as in the case of General Lampton. This occurred in 2138 A.D. Possibly the most bloodthirsty and malignant of all the mercenaries that ever served the Iron Heel, he was informed by the Fighting Groups that they had tried him, found him guilty, and condemned him to death—and this, after three warnings for him to cease from his ferocious treatment of the proletariat. After his condemnation he surrounded himself with a myriad protective devices. Years passed, and in vain the Fighting Groups strove to execute their decree. Comrade after comrade, men and women, failed in their attempts, and were cruelly executed by the Oligarchy. It was the case of General Lampton that revived crucifixion as a legal method of execution. But in the end the condemned man found his executioner in the form of a slender girl of seventeen, Madeline Provence, who, to accomplish her purpose, served two years in his palace as a seamstress to the household. She died in solitary confinement after horrible and prolonged torture; but to-day she stands in imperishable bronze in the Pantheon of Brotherhood in the wonder city of Serles.
    We, who by personal experience know nothing of bloodshed, must not judge harshly the heroes of the Fighting Groups. They gave up their lives for humanity, no sacrifice was too great for them to accomplish, while inexorable necessity compelled them to bloody expression in an age of blood. The Fighting Groups constituted the one thorn in the side of the Iron Heel that the Iron Heel could never remove. Everhard was the father of this curious army, and its accomplishments and successful persistence for three hundred years bear witness to the wisdom with which he organized and the solid foundation he laid for the succeeding generations to build upon. In some respects, despite his great economic and sociological contributions, and his work as a general leader in the Revolution, his organization of the Fighting Groups must be regarded as his greatest achievement.

[2] These fighting groups were somewhat modeled after the Fighting Organization of the Russian Revolution, and despite the relentless efforts of the Iron Heel, these groups endured throughout the three centuries of its existence. Made up of men and women driven by noble ideals and unafraid to sacrifice their lives, the Fighting Groups held significant influence and tempered the brutal actions of the rulers. Their efforts were not limited to hidden battles against the secret agents of the Oligarchy. The oligarchs themselves had to heed the commands of the Groups, and when they disobeyed, they often faced execution—along with the subordinates of the oligarchs, the army officers, and the leaders of the labor classes.
Stern justice was delivered by these organized avengers, but what stood out most was their impartial and judicial process. There were no hasty decisions. When someone was captured, they were given a fair trial and a chance to defend themselves. Necessarily, many were tried and sentenced by proxy, as in the case of General Lampton. This happened in 2138 A.D. Possibly the most ruthless and vicious of all the mercenaries ever in service of the Iron Heel, he was informed by the Fighting Groups that they had tried him, found him guilty, and sentenced him to death—this followed three warnings for him to stop his brutal treatment of the working class. After his sentencing, he surrounded himself with numerous protective measures. Years went by, and the Fighting Groups struggled in vain to carry out their decree. Comrade after comrade, both men and women, failed in their attempts and faced cruel executions by the Oligarchy. It was the case of General Lampton that revived crucifixion as a legal method of execution. But in the end, his executioner came in the form of a slender seventeen-year-old girl, Madeline Provence, who, to achieve her goal, worked for two years in his palace as a seamstress. She died in solitary confinement after enduring horrific and prolonged torture; however, today she stands in enduring bronze in the Pantheon of Brotherhood in the magnificent city of Serles.
We, who have never experienced bloodshed firsthand, should not harshly judge the heroes of the Fighting Groups. They dedicated their lives to humanity, and no sacrifice was too great for them to make, while relentless necessity forced them into violent means in a bloody age. The Fighting Groups were the one persistent thorn in the side of the Iron Heel that it could never remove. Everhard was the founder of this unusual army, and its achievements and successful endurance for three hundred years testify to the wisdom with which he organized it and the solid foundation he laid for future generations to build upon. In many ways, despite his significant economic and sociological contributions and his role as a general leader in the Revolution, his establishment of the Fighting Groups must be considered his greatest accomplishment.

The task we set ourselves was threefold. First, the weeding out from our circles of the secret agents of the Oligarchy. Second, the organizing of the Fighting Groups, and outside of them, of the general secret organization of the Revolution. And third, the introduction of our own secret agents into every branch of the Oligarchy—into the labor castes and especially among the telegraphers and secretaries and clerks, into the army, the agents-provocateurs, and the slave-drivers. It was slow work, and perilous, and often were our efforts rewarded with costly failures.

The task we took on had three main goals. First, we needed to remove the secret agents of the Oligarchy from our circles. Second, we had to organize the Fighting Groups and, outside of those, create a general secret organization for the Revolution. And third, we aimed to place our own secret agents in every part of the Oligarchy—within the labor groups and especially among the telegraphers, secretaries, and clerks, as well as in the army, the provocateurs, and the enforcers. It was slow and dangerous work, and often our efforts led to expensive failures.

The Iron Heel had triumphed in open warfare, but we held our own in the new warfare, strange and awful and subterranean, that we instituted. All was unseen, much was unguessed; the blind fought the blind; and yet through it all was order, purpose, control. We permeated the entire organization of the Iron Heel with our agents, while our own organization was permeated with the agents of the Iron Heel. It was warfare dark and devious, replete with intrigue and conspiracy, plot and counterplot. And behind all, ever menacing, was death, violent and terrible. Men and women disappeared, our nearest and dearest comrades. We saw them to-day. To-morrow they were gone; we never saw them again, and we knew that they had died.

The Iron Heel had won in open combat, but we managed to hold our own in the new kind of warfare, strange, terrifying, and hidden, that we created. Everything was hidden, much was unknown; the blind battled the blind; yet through it all was order, purpose, and control. We infiltrated the entire Iron Heel organization with our agents, while our own organization was infiltrated by the agents of the Iron Heel. It was a dark and cunning warfare, filled with intrigue and conspiracy, schemes and counter-schemes. And looming over all was death, violent and frightening. People disappeared—our closest comrades. We saw them today, and by tomorrow they were gone; we never saw them again, and we knew they had died.

There was no trust, no confidence anywhere. The man who plotted beside us, for all we knew, might be an agent of the Iron Heel. We mined the organization of the Iron Heel with our secret agents, and the Iron Heel countermined with its secret agents inside its own organization. And it was the same with our organization. And despite the absence of confidence and trust we were compelled to base our every effort on confidence and trust. Often were we betrayed. Men were weak. The Iron Heel could offer money, leisure, the joys and pleasures that waited in the repose of the wonder cities. We could offer nothing but the satisfaction of being faithful to a noble ideal. As for the rest, the wages of those who were loyal were unceasing peril, torture, and death.

There was no trust or confidence anywhere. The man who plotted alongside us, for all we knew, could be an agent of the Iron Heel. We infiltrated the Iron Heel organization with our secret agents, and the Iron Heel countered by placing its own agents within its ranks. It was the same with our organization. Despite the lack of trust and confidence, we had to base all our efforts on them. We were often betrayed. People were weak. The Iron Heel could offer money, leisure, and the joys and pleasures found in the comfort of the wonder cities. All we could offer was the satisfaction of being loyal to a noble ideal. As for the consequences, the rewards for those who remained loyal were constant danger, torture, and death.

Men were weak, I say, and because of their weakness we were compelled to make the only other reward that was within our power. It was the reward of death. Out of necessity we had to punish our traitors. For every man who betrayed us, from one to a dozen faithful avengers were loosed upon his heels. We might fail to carry out our decrees against our enemies, such as the Pococks, for instance; but the one thing we could not afford to fail in was the punishment of our own traitors. Comrades turned traitor by permission, in order to win to the wonder cities and there execute our sentences on the real traitors. In fact, so terrible did we make ourselves, that it became a greater peril to betray us than to remain loyal to us.

Men were weak, and because of their weakness, we were forced to create the only other reward we had the power to give. It was the reward of death. Out of necessity, we had to punish our traitors. For every person who betrayed us, we unleashed anywhere from one to a dozen loyal avengers on their heels. We might have struggled to enforce our decrees against our enemies, like the Pococks, for example; but the one thing we couldn’t afford to fail at was punishing our own traitors. Comrades turned traitors by choice, seeking to reach the wonder cities to carry out our sentences on the real traitors. In fact, we made ourselves so formidable that it became riskier to betray us than to stay loyal.

The Revolution took on largely the character of religion. We worshipped at the shrine of the Revolution, which was the shrine of liberty. It was the divine flashing through us. Men and women devoted their lives to the Cause, and new-born babes were sealed to it as of old they had been sealed to the service of God. We were lovers of Humanity.

The Revolution felt like a religious experience. We revered the Revolution as if it were a temple of freedom. It was something divine igniting our passion. Men and women dedicated their lives to the Cause, and even newborns were pledged to it, just as they had once been pledged to the service of God. We were passionate about Humanity.

CHAPTER XVII.
THE SCARLET LIVERY

With the destruction of the Granger states, the Grangers in Congress disappeared. They were being tried for high treason, and their places were taken by the creatures of the Iron Heel. The socialists were in a pitiful minority, and they knew that their end was near. Congress and the Senate were empty pretences, farces. Public questions were gravely debated and passed upon according to the old forms, while in reality all that was done was to give the stamp of constitutional procedure to the mandates of the Oligarchy.

With the downfall of the Granger states, the Grangers in Congress vanished. They were being tried for treason, and their positions were filled by the puppets of the Iron Heel. The socialists were a sad minority, fully aware that their time was running out. Congress and the Senate were just empty formalities, mere jokes. Public issues were seriously debated and voted on according to the outdated processes, while in reality, all that was happening was giving the appearance of constitutional legitimacy to the commands of the Oligarchy.

Ernest was in the thick of the fight when the end came. It was in the debate on the bill to assist the unemployed. The hard times of the preceding year had thrust great masses of the proletariat beneath the starvation line, and the continued and wide-reaching disorder had but sunk them deeper. Millions of people were starving, while the oligarchs and their supporters were surfeiting on the surplus.[1] We called these wretched people the people of the abyss,[2] and it was to alleviate their awful suffering that the socialists had introduced the unemployed bill. But this was not to the fancy of the Iron Heel. In its own way it was preparing to set these millions to work, but the way was not our way, wherefore it had issued its orders that our bill should be voted down. Ernest and his fellows knew that their effort was futile, but they were tired of the suspense. They wanted something to happen. They were accomplishing nothing, and the best they hoped for was the putting of an end to the legislative farce in which they were unwilling players. They knew not what end would come, but they never anticipated a more disastrous end than the one that did come.

Ernest was right in the middle of the fight when it all came to an end. It was during the debate on the bill to help the unemployed. The tough times from the previous year had pushed huge numbers of working-class people below the starvation line, and the ongoing chaos had only made things worse. Millions were starving while the elite and their backers were living it up on the excess. We referred to these unfortunate people as the people of the abyss, and it was to relieve their terrible suffering that the socialists had introduced the unemployed bill. But the Iron Heel didn’t like this at all. It had its own plans for getting these millions back to work, but it wasn't in our way, so it ordered that our bill should be defeated. Ernest and his colleagues knew their efforts were in vain, but they were fed up with the uncertainty. They wanted some action. They were getting nowhere, and the best they could hope for was to end the legislative charade in which they were unwilling participants. They didn't know what the outcome would be, but they never expected anything worse than what actually happened.

[1] The same conditions obtained in the nineteenth century A.D. under British rule in India. The natives died of starvation by the million, while their rulers robbed them of the fruits of their toil and expended it on magnificent pageants and mumbo-jumbo fooleries. Perforce, in this enlightened age, we have much to blush for in the acts of our ancestors. Our only consolation is philosophic. We must accept the capitalistic stage in social evolution as about on a par with the earlier monkey stage. The human had to pass through those stages in its rise from the mire and slime of low organic life. It was inevitable that much of the mire and slime should cling and be not easily shaken off.

[1] The same conditions existed in the nineteenth century A.D. under British rule in India. The locals died of starvation by the millions while their rulers stole the fruits of their labor and spent it on lavish celebrations and ridiculous nonsense. In this more enlightened age, we have plenty to feel ashamed about when it comes to the actions of our ancestors. Our only comfort is philosophical. We must accept the capitalist phase in social evolution as being roughly comparable to the earlier primitive stage. Humanity had to go through those stages as it rose out of the muck of low organic life. It was inevitable that some of that muck would stick and not be easily shaken off.

[2] The people of the abyss—this phrase was struck out by the genius of H. G. Wells in the late nineteenth century A.D. Wells was a sociological seer, sane and normal as well as warm human. Many fragments of his work have come down to us, while two of his greatest achievements, “Anticipations” and “Mankind in the Making,” have come down intact. Before the oligarchs, and before Everhard, Wells speculated upon the building of the wonder cities, though in his writings they are referred to as “pleasure cities.”

[2] The people of the abyss—this phrase was crossed out by the brilliant H. G. Wells in the late nineteenth century. Wells was a sociological visionary, both sane and normal as well as a compassionate human being. Many pieces of his work have survived, while two of his greatest accomplishments, “Anticipations” and “Mankind in the Making,” have come down to us fully intact. Before the oligarchs and before Everhard, Wells imagined the construction of the wonder cities, which he referred to in his writings as “pleasure cities.”

I sat in the gallery that day. We all knew that something terrible was imminent. It was in the air, and its presence was made visible by the armed soldiers drawn up in lines in the corridors, and by the officers grouped in the entrances to the House itself. The Oligarchy was about to strike. Ernest was speaking. He was describing the sufferings of the unemployed, as if with the wild idea of in some way touching their hearts and consciences; but the Republican and Democratic members sneered and jeered at him, and there was uproar and confusion. Ernest abruptly changed front.

I sat in the gallery that day. We all knew something terrible was about to happen. You could feel it in the air, made even more obvious by the armed soldiers lined up in the corridors and the officers gathered at the entrances to the House. The Oligarchy was ready to make its move. Ernest was speaking. He talked about the struggles of the unemployed, as if he thought he could somehow reach their hearts and consciences; but the Republican and Democratic members mocked and laughed at him, creating chaos and confusion. Ernest suddenly switched tactics.

“I know nothing that I may say can influence you,” he said. “You have no souls to be influenced. You are spineless, flaccid things. You pompously call yourselves Republicans and Democrats. There is no Republican Party. There is no Democratic Party. There are no Republicans nor Democrats in this House. You are lick-spittlers and panderers, the creatures of the Plutocracy. You talk verbosely in antiquated terminology of your love of liberty, and all the while you wear the scarlet livery of the Iron Heel.”

“I know that nothing I say will change your mind,” he said. “You have no principles to change. You are weak, spineless beings. You arrogantly call yourselves Republicans and Democrats. There is no Republican Party. There is no Democratic Party. There are no Republicans or Democrats in this House. You are sycophants and opportunists, the puppets of the wealthy elite. You talk endlessly in outdated language about your love for freedom, and all the while you wear the red uniform of oppression.”

Here the shouting and the cries of “Order! order!” drowned his voice, and he stood disdainfully till the din had somewhat subsided. He waved his hand to include all of them, turned to his own comrades, and said:

Here, the shouting and the cries of “Order! Order!” drowned out his voice, and he stood there with disdain until the noise had calmed down a bit. He gestured towards everyone, turned to his own teammates, and said:

“Listen to the bellowing of the well-fed beasts.”

“Listen to the loud calls of the well-fed animals.”

Pandemonium broke out again. The Speaker rapped for order and glanced expectantly at the officers in the doorways. There were cries of “Sedition!” and a great, rotund New York member began shouting “Anarchist!” at Ernest. And Ernest was not pleasant to look at. Every fighting fibre of him was quivering, and his face was the face of a fighting animal, withal he was cool and collected.

Pandemonium erupted once more. The Speaker banged for order and looked expectantly at the officers in the doorways. People were yelling “Sedition!” and a large, round member from New York started shouting “Anarchist!” at Ernest. And Ernest was not a pretty sight. Every fighting instinct in him was tense, and his face looked like that of a fierce animal, yet he remained calm and composed.

“Remember,” he said, in a voice that made itself heard above the din, “that as you show mercy now to the proletariat, some day will that same proletariat show mercy to you.”

“Remember,” he said, his voice cutting through the noise, “that just as you are showing mercy to the working class now, someday that same working class will show mercy to you.”

The cries of “Sedition!” and “Anarchist!” redoubled.

The shouts of "Sedition!" and "Anarchist!" got louder.

“I know that you will not vote for this bill,” Ernest went on. “You have received the command from your masters to vote against it. And yet you call me anarchist. You, who have destroyed the government of the people, and who shamelessly flaunt your scarlet shame in public places, call me anarchist. I do not believe in hell-fire and brimstone; but in moments like this I regret my unbelief. Nay, in moments like this I almost do believe. Surely there must be a hell, for in no less place could it be possible for you to receive punishment adequate to your crimes. So long as you exist, there is a vital need for hell-fire in the Cosmos.”

“I know you’re not going to vote for this bill,” Ernest continued. “You’ve been ordered by your superiors to go against it. And still, you call me an anarchist. You, who have dismantled the government of the people, and who openly display your shame in public, call me an anarchist. I don’t believe in hellfire and damnation; but in moments like this, I almost wish I did. Honestly, in times like this, I almost believe in it. There must be a hell, because no other place could possibly hold a punishment fitting for your crimes. As long as you’re around, the universe has a real need for hellfire.”

There was movement in the doorways. Ernest, the Speaker, all the members turned to see.

There was movement in the doorways. Ernest, the Speaker, and all the members turned to look.

“Why do you not call your soldiers in, Mr. Speaker, and bid them do their work?” Ernest demanded. “They should carry out your plan with expedition.”

“Why don’t you call your soldiers in, Mr. Speaker, and tell them to do their job?” Ernest asked. “They should execute your plan quickly.”

“There are other plans afoot,” was the retort. “That is why the soldiers are present.”

“There are other plans in the works,” was the reply. “That’s why the soldiers are here.”

“Our plans, I suppose,” Ernest sneered. “Assassination or something kindred.”

“Our plans, I guess,” Ernest mocked. “Assassination or something similar.”

But at the word “assassination” the uproar broke out again. Ernest could not make himself heard, but he remained on his feet waiting for a lull. And then it happened. From my place in the gallery I saw nothing except the flash of the explosion. The roar of it filled my ears and I saw Ernest reeling and falling in a swirl of smoke, and the soldiers rushing up all the aisles. His comrades were on their feet, wild with anger, capable of any violence. But Ernest steadied himself for a moment, and waved his arms for silence.

But when the word “assassination” was mentioned, the chaos erupted again. Ernest couldn't get himself heard, but he stayed on his feet, waiting for a break in the noise. And then it happened. From my spot in the gallery, I saw nothing but the flash of the explosion. The blast filled my ears, and I saw Ernest staggering and collapsing in a cloud of smoke, with soldiers rushing up all the aisles. His teammates were standing, enraged and ready for any violence. But Ernest gathered himself for a moment and waved his arms for quiet.

“It is a plot!” his voice rang out in warning to his comrades. “Do nothing, or you will be destroyed.”

“It’s a trap!” his voice echoed as a warning to his friends. “Don’t do anything, or you’ll be wiped out.”

Then he slowly sank down, and the soldiers reached him. The next moment soldiers were clearing the galleries and I saw no more.

Then he slowly sank down, and the soldiers reached him. The next moment, soldiers were clearing the galleries and I saw nothing more.

Though he was my husband, I was not permitted to get to him. When I announced who I was, I was promptly placed under arrest. And at the same time were arrested all socialist Congressmen in Washington, including the unfortunate Simpson, who lay ill with typhoid fever in his hotel.

Though he was my husband, I wasn't allowed to reach him. When I revealed my identity, I was immediately arrested. At the same time, all the socialist Congressmen in Washington were arrested, including the unfortunate Simpson, who was sick with typhoid fever in his hotel.

The trial was prompt and brief. The men were foredoomed. The wonder was that Ernest was not executed. This was a blunder on the part of the Oligarchy, and a costly one. But the Oligarchy was too confident in those days. It was drunk with success, and little did it dream that that small handful of heroes had within them the power to rock it to its foundations. To-morrow, when the Great Revolt breaks out and all the world resounds with the tramp, tramp of the millions, the Oligarchy will realize, and too late, how mightily that band of heroes has grown.[3]

The trial was quick and brief. The men were doomed from the start. The surprising thing was that Ernest wasn’t executed. That was a mistake by the Oligarchy, and a costly one. But the Oligarchy was too confident back then. It was intoxicated by its own success and had no idea that this small group of heroes had the power to shake it to its core. Tomorrow, when the Great Revolt begins and the world echoes with the march of millions, the Oligarchy will understand—too late—just how strong that group of heroes has become.[3]

[3] Avis Everhard took for granted that her narrative would be read in her own day, and so omits to mention the outcome of the trial for high treason. Many other similar disconcerting omissions will be noticed in the Manuscript. Fifty-two socialist Congressmen were tried, and all were found guilty. Strange to relate, not one received the death sentence. Everhard and eleven others, among whom were Theodore Donnelson and Matthew Kent, received life imprisonment. The remaining forty received sentences varying from thirty to forty-five years; while Arthur Simpson, referred to in the Manuscript as being ill of typhoid fever at the time of the explosion, received only fifteen years. It is the tradition that he died of starvation in solitary confinement, and this harsh treatment is explained as having been caused by his uncompromising stubbornness and his fiery and tactless hatred for all men that served the despotism. He died in Cabañas in Cuba, where three of his comrades were also confined. The fifty- two socialist Congressmen were confined in military fortresses scattered all over the United States. Thus, Du Bois and Woods were held in Porto Rico, while Everhard and Merryweather were placed in Alcatraz, an island in San Francisco Bay that had already seen long service as a military prison.

[3] Avis Everhard assumed that her story would be read in her own time, so she didn’t mention the outcome of the high treason trial. Many other similar unsettling omissions can be found in the Manuscript. Fifty-two socialist Congressmen were put on trial, and all were found guilty. Strangely, none received the death penalty. Everhard and eleven others, including Theodore Donnelson and Matthew Kent, were sentenced to life in prison. The other forty received sentences ranging from thirty to forty-five years, while Arthur Simpson, who was mentioned in the Manuscript as being sick with typhoid fever during the explosion, got only fifteen years. It is said that he died of starvation in solitary confinement, and this cruel treatment is attributed to his unyielding stubbornness and his intense and tactless hatred for everyone who supported the tyranny. He died in Cabañas in Cuba, where three of his fellow prisoners were also held. The fifty-two socialist Congressmen were imprisoned in military forts across the United States. Du Bois and Woods were held in Puerto Rico, while Everhard and Merryweather were sent to Alcatraz, an island in San Francisco Bay that had already served as a military prison for a long time.

As a revolutionist myself, as one on the inside who knew the hopes and fears and secret plans of the revolutionists, I am fitted to answer, as very few are, the charge that they were guilty of exploding the bomb in Congress. And I can say flatly, without qualification or doubt of any sort, that the socialists, in Congress and out, had no hand in the affair. Who threw the bomb we do not know, but the one thing we are absolutely sure of is that we did not throw it.

As a revolutionary myself, someone on the inside who understood the hopes, fears, and secret plans of the revolutionaries, I'm well-equipped to answer, as very few are, the accusation that they were responsible for the bomb explosion in Congress. I can say clearly, without any hesitation or doubt, that the socialists, both in Congress and outside of it, had nothing to do with the incident. We don’t know who threw the bomb, but the one thing we are completely certain of is that it wasn’t us.

On the other hand, there is evidence to show that the Iron Heel was responsible for the act. Of course, we cannot prove this. Our conclusion is merely presumptive. But here are such facts as we do know. It had been reported to the Speaker of the House, by secret-service agents of the government, that the Socialist Congressmen were about to resort to terroristic tactics, and that they had decided upon the day when their tactics would go into effect. This day was the very day of the explosion. Wherefore the Capitol had been packed with troops in anticipation. Since we knew nothing about the bomb, and since a bomb actually was exploded, and since the authorities had prepared in advance for the explosion, it is only fair to conclude that the Iron Heel did know. Furthermore, we charge that the Iron Heel was guilty of the outrage, and that the Iron Heel planned and perpetrated the outrage for the purpose of foisting the guilt on our shoulders and so bringing about our destruction.

On the other hand, there’s evidence suggesting that the Iron Heel was behind the act. We can’t prove it, of course. Our conclusion is just a guess. But here are some facts we do know. Secret-service agents had informed the Speaker of the House that the Socialist Congressmen were planning to use terror tactics and had chosen the very day the tactics would start. That day was the day of the explosion. So, the Capitol was packed with troops in preparation. Since we didn’t know anything about the bomb, and since a bomb was indeed detonated, and since the authorities had made preparations beforehand, it’s reasonable to conclude that the Iron Heel was aware. Furthermore, we accuse the Iron Heel of being responsible for the outrage, and that they planned and carried out the attack to shift the blame onto us and lead to our downfall.

From the Speaker the warning leaked out to all the creatures in the House that wore the scarlet livery. They knew, while Ernest was speaking, that some violent act was to be committed. And to do them justice, they honestly believed that the act was to be committed by the socialists. At the trial, and still with honest belief, several testified to having seen Ernest prepare to throw the bomb, and that it exploded prematurely. Of course they saw nothing of the sort. In the fevered imagination of fear they thought they saw, that was all.

From the Speaker, the warning spread to all the creatures in the House dressed in red uniforms. They understood, while Ernest was speaking, that a violent act was about to occur. And to be fair to them, they truly believed that the act would be carried out by the socialists. During the trial, and still holding that honest belief, several testified that they saw Ernest getting ready to throw the bomb, which went off too soon. Of course, they didn’t actually see anything like that. In their heightened state of fear, they thought they saw it; that was all.

As Ernest said at the trial: “Does it stand to reason, if I were going to throw a bomb, that I should elect to throw a feeble little squib like the one that was thrown? There wasn’t enough powder in it. It made a lot of smoke, but hurt no one except me. It exploded right at my feet, and yet it did not kill me. Believe me, when I get to throwing bombs, I’ll do damage. There’ll be more than smoke in my petards.”

As Ernest said in court: “Does it make sense that if I were going to throw a bomb, I’d choose to throw a weak little firecracker like the one that was thrown? It didn’t have enough gunpowder in it. It created a lot of smoke but didn’t hurt anyone except for me. It exploded right at my feet, and yet it didn’t kill me. Trust me, when I actually start throwing bombs, I’ll cause some damage. There will be more than just smoke from my explosives.”

In return it was argued by the prosecution that the weakness of the bomb was a blunder on the part of the socialists, just as its premature explosion, caused by Ernest’s losing his nerve and dropping it, was a blunder. And to clinch the argument, there were the several Congressmen who testified to having seen Ernest fumble and drop the bomb.

In response, the prosecution claimed that the bomb's weakness was a mistake by the socialists, just like its early explosion, which happened because Ernest panicked and dropped it. To strengthen their case, several Congressmen testified that they saw Ernest fumble and drop the bomb.

As for ourselves, not one of us knew how the bomb was thrown. Ernest told me that the fraction of an instant before it exploded he both heard and saw it strike at his feet. He testified to this at the trial, but no one believed him. Besides, the whole thing, in popular slang, was “cooked up.” The Iron Heel had made up its mind to destroy us, and there was no withstanding it.

As for us, none of us knew how the bomb was thrown. Ernest told me that just a split second before it exploded, he both heard and saw it hit his feet. He testified to this during the trial, but no one believed him. Besides, the whole thing, as people say, was “cooked up.” The Iron Heel had decided to take us down, and there was no way to resist it.

There is a saying that truth will out. I have come to doubt that saying. Nineteen years have elapsed, and despite our untiring efforts, we have failed to find the man who really did throw the bomb. Undoubtedly he was some emissary of the Iron Heel, but he has escaped detection. We have never got the slightest clew to his identity. And now, at this late date, nothing remains but for the affair to take its place among the mysteries of history.[4]

There’s an saying that the truth will come out. I’ve started to question that saying. Nineteen years have passed, and despite our relentless efforts, we haven’t been able to find the person who actually threw the bomb. He was definitely some agent of the Iron Heel, but he has managed to stay hidden. We’ve never had the slightest clue about who he is. And now, at this point, all that’s left is for this incident to become just another mystery in history. [4]

[4] Avis Everhard would have had to live for many generations ere she could have seen the clearing up of this particular mystery. A little less than a hundred years ago, and a little more than six hundred years after her death, the confession of Pervaise was discovered in the secret archives of the Vatican. It is perhaps well to tell a little something about this obscure document, which, in the main, is of interest to the historian only.
    Pervaise was an American, of French descent, who in 1913 A.D., was lying in the Tombs Prison, New York City, awaiting trial for murder. From his confession we learn that he was not a criminal. He was warm-blooded, passionate, emotional. In an insane fit of jealousy he killed his wife—a very common act in those times. Pervaise was mastered by the fear of death, all of which is recounted at length in his confession. To escape death he would have done anything, and the police agents prepared him by assuring him that he could not possibly escape conviction of murder in the first degree when his trial came off. In those days, murder in the first degree was a capital offense. The guilty man or woman was placed in a specially constructed death-chair, and, under the supervision of competent physicians, was destroyed by a current of electricity. This was called electrocution, and it was very popular during that period. Anaesthesia, as a mode of compulsory death, was not introduced until later.
    This man, good at heart but with a ferocious animalism close at the surface of his being, lying in jail and expectant of nothing less than death, was prevailed upon by the agents of the Iron Heel to throw the bomb in the House of Representatives. In his confession he states explicitly that he was informed that the bomb was to be a feeble thing and that no lives would be lost. This is directly in line with the fact that the bomb was lightly charged, and that its explosion at Everhard’s feet was not deadly.
    Pervaise was smuggled into one of the galleries ostensibly closed for repairs. He was to select the moment for the throwing of the bomb, and he naively confesses that in his interest in Everhard’s tirade and the general commotion raised thereby, he nearly forgot his mission.
    Not only was he released from prison in reward for his deed, but he was granted an income for life. This he did not long enjoy. In 1914 A.D., in September, he was stricken with rheumatism of the heart and lived for three days. It was then that he sent for the Catholic priest, Father Peter Durban, and to him made confession. So important did it seem to the priest, that he had the confession taken down in writing and sworn to. What happened after this we can only surmise. The document was certainly important enough to find its way to Rome. Powerful influences must have been brought to bear, hence its suppression. For centuries no hint of its existence reached the world. It was not until in the last century that Lorbia, the brilliant Italian scholar, stumbled upon it quite by chance during his researches in the Vatican.
    There is to-day no doubt whatever that the Iron Heel was responsible for the bomb that exploded in the House of Representatives in 1913 A.D. Even though the Pervaise confession had never come to light, no reasonable doubt could obtain; for the act in question, that sent fifty-two Congressmen to prison, was on a par with countless other acts committed by the oligarchs, and, before them, by the capitalists.
    There is the classic instance of the ferocious and wanton judicial murder of the innocent and so-called Haymarket Anarchists in Chicago in the penultimate decade of the nineteenth century A.D. In a category by itself is the deliberate burning and destruction of capitalist property by the capitalists themselves. For such destruction of property innocent men were frequently punished—“railroaded” in the parlance of the times.
    In the labor troubles of the first decade of the twentieth century A.D., between the capitalists and the Western Federation of Miners, similar but more bloody tactics were employed. The railroad station at Independence was blown up by the agents of the capitalists. Thirteen men were killed, and many more were wounded. And then the capitalists, controlling the legislative and judicial machinery of the state of Colorado, charged the miners with the crime and came very near to convicting them. Romaines, one of the tools in this affair, like Pervaise, was lying in jail in another state, Kansas, awaiting trial, when he was approached by the agents of the capitalists. But, unlike Pervaise, the confession of Romaines was made public in his own time.
    Then, during this same period, there was the case of Moyer and Haywood, two strong, fearless leaders of labor. One was president and the other was secretary of the Western Federation of Miners. The ex-governor of Idaho had been mysteriously murdered. The crime, at the time, was openly charged to the mine owners by the socialists and miners. Nevertheless, in violation of the national and state constitutions, and by means of conspiracy on the parts of the governors of Idaho and Colorado, Moyer and Haywood were kidnapped, thrown into jail, and charged with the murder. It was this instance that provoked from Eugene V. Debs, national leader of the American socialists at the time, the following words: “The labor leaders that cannot be bribed nor bullied, must be ambushed and murdered. The only crime of Moyer and Haywood is that they have been unswervingly true to the working class. The capitalists have stolen our country, debauched our politics, defiled our judiciary, and ridden over us rough-shod, and now they propose to murder those who will not abjectly surrender to their brutal dominion. The governors of Colorado and Idaho are but executing the mandates of their masters, the Plutocracy. The issue is the Workers versus the Plutocracy. If they strike the first violent blow, we will strike the last.

[4] Avis Everhard would have had to live for many generations before she could understand this particular mystery. Just under a hundred years ago, and a little more than six hundred years after her death, the confession of Pervaise was found in the secret archives of the Vatican. It’s worth mentioning a bit about this obscure document, which mainly interests historians.
Pervaise was an American of French descent, who in 1913 was in Tombs Prison, New York City, waiting for his murder trial. From his confession, we learn that he wasn’t a criminal. He was warm-blooded, passionate, and emotional. In a fit of insane jealousy, he killed his wife—a common occurrence back then. Pervaise was consumed by the fear of death, which is thoroughly detailed in his confession. He would have done anything to escape death, and the police treated him to convince him that he couldn’t possibly avoid being convicted of first-degree murder when his trial came. Back then, first-degree murder was a capital offense. The guilty person was placed in a specially built death chair and executed by a current of electricity under the supervision of qualified doctors. This was called electrocution, and it was quite popular during that time. Anesthesia as a method of compulsory execution wasn’t introduced until later.
This man, good at heart but with a fierce animalism on the surface, lying in jail and anticipating nothing less than death, was persuaded by the agents of the Iron Heel to throw a bomb in the House of Representatives. In his confession, he clearly states that he was told the bomb would be weak and no lives would be lost. This aligns with the fact that the bomb was lightly charged, and its explosion at Everhard’s feet was not fatal.
Pervaise was sneaked into one of the galleries, which was supposedly closed for repairs. He was to choose the right moment to throw the bomb, and he naively admits that while he was interested in Everhard’s speech and the chaos it caused, he almost forgot his mission.
Not only was he released from prison as a reward for his actions, but he was also given a lifetime income. He didn’t enjoy this for long. In September 1914, he was struck with heart rheumatism and lived for three days. It was then that he called for Catholic priest Father Peter Durban and confessed to him. The priest found it so important that he had the confession written down and sworn to. What happened after that is mostly speculation. The document must have been significant enough to make its way to Rome. Powerful forces must have been involved, which led to its suppression. For centuries, no indication of its existence reached the public. It wasn’t until last century that Lorbia, a brilliant Italian scholar, stumbled upon it quite by chance during his studies in the Vatican.
Today, there is no doubt that the Iron Heel was responsible for the bomb that exploded in the House of Representatives in 1913. Even if Pervaise's confession had never surfaced, there wouldn’t be any reasonable doubt; the act that sent fifty-two Congressmen to prison was on par with countless other acts committed by the oligarchs and, before them, by the capitalists.
There’s the infamous case of the brutal and unjust judicial murder of the innocent Haymarket Anarchists in Chicago in the decade before the twentieth century. A separate category is the deliberate destruction of capitalist property by the capitalists themselves. Innocent people were often punished for such property damage—"railroaded," as was the term of the time.
In the labor disputes of the early twentieth century between capitalists and the Western Federation of Miners, similar but bloodier tactics were employed. The railroad station at Independence was blown up by capitalist agents. Thirteen men were killed, and many more were injured. Then, with control over the legislative and judicial systems of Colorado, the capitalists charged the miners with the crime and came very close to convicting them. Romaines, another individual used in this scheme, like Pervaise, was in jail in Kansas awaiting trial when approached by the capitalists. But, unlike Pervaise, Romaines's confession was made public in his own time.
During this same period, there was the case of Moyer and Haywood, two strong, fearless labor leaders—one was president and the other was secretary of the Western Federation of Miners. The ex-governor of Idaho had been mysteriously murdered. Socialists and miners openly accused the mine owners of the crime. However, in violation of both national and state constitutions and through collusion among the governors of Idaho and Colorado, Moyer and Haywood were kidnapped, jailed, and charged with murder. This incident prompted Eugene V. Debs, the national leader of American socialists at the time, to say: “The labor leaders that cannot be bribed nor bullied, must be ambushed and murdered. The only crime of Moyer and Haywood is that they have been unswervingly true to the working class. The capitalists have stolen our country, debauched our politics, defiled our judiciary, and trampled on us, and now they propose to murder those who will not surrender to their brutal domination. The governors of Colorado and Idaho are merely carrying out the orders of their masters, the Plutocracy. The issue is the Workers versus the Plutocracy. If they strike the first violent blow, we will strike the last.

CHAPTER XVIII.
IN THE SHADOW OF SONOMA

Of myself, during this period, there is not much to say. For six months I was kept in prison, though charged with no crime. I was a suspect—a word of fear that all revolutionists were soon to come to know. But our own nascent secret service was beginning to work. By the end of my second month in prison, one of the jailers made himself known as a revolutionist in touch with the organization. Several weeks later, Joseph Parkhurst, the prison doctor who had just been appointed, proved himself to be a member of one of the Fighting Groups.

There isn't much to say about my time during this period. I was held in prison for six months, even though I was never charged with a crime. I was a suspect—a term that filled all revolutionaries with fear. But our new secret service was starting to get things moving. By the end of my second month in prison, one of the guards revealed himself to be a revolutionary connected to the organization. A few weeks later, Joseph Parkhurst, the newly appointed prison doctor, turned out to be a member of one of the Fighting Groups.

Thus, throughout the organization of the Oligarchy, our own organization, weblike and spidery, was insinuating itself. And so I was kept in touch with all that was happening in the world without. And furthermore, every one of our imprisoned leaders was in contact with brave comrades who masqueraded in the livery of the Iron Heel. Though Ernest lay in prison three thousand miles away, on the Pacific Coast, I was in unbroken communication with him, and our letters passed regularly back and forth.

Thus, throughout the structure of the Oligarchy, our own organization, web-like and intricate, was weaving its way in. As a result, I stayed informed about everything happening outside in the world. Additionally, every one of our imprisoned leaders was in touch with courageous allies who disguised themselves in the uniform of the Iron Heel. Even though Ernest was locked up three thousand miles away on the Pacific Coast, I maintained constant communication with him, and our letters exchanged regularly.

The leaders, in prison and out, were able to discuss and direct the campaign. It would have been possible, within a few months, to have effected the escape of some of them; but since imprisonment proved no bar to our activities, it was decided to avoid anything premature. Fifty-two Congressmen were in prison, and fully three hundred more of our leaders. It was planned that they should be delivered simultaneously. If part of them escaped, the vigilance of the oligarchs might be aroused so as to prevent the escape of the remainder. On the other hand, it was held that a simultaneous jail-delivery all over the land would have immense psychological influence on the proletariat. It would show our strength and give confidence.

The leaders, both in prison and outside, were able to talk about and lead the campaign. Escaping some of them within a few months would have been possible; however, since imprisonment didn’t stop our activities, we decided to avoid anything hasty. Fifty-two Congressmen were imprisoned, along with about three hundred more of our leaders. The plan was for them to be freed at the same time. If some escaped, it might alert the oligarchs and prevent the others from getting away. On the other hand, a coordinated release from jails across the country would have a huge psychological impact on the working class. It would demonstrate our power and boost morale.

So it was arranged, when I was released at the end of six months, that I was to disappear and prepare a secure hiding-place for Ernest. To disappear was in itself no easy thing. No sooner did I get my freedom than my footsteps began to be dogged by the spies of the Iron Heel. It was necessary that they should be thrown off the track, and that I should win to California. It is laughable, the way this was accomplished.

So it was decided that when I got out after six months, I was supposed to go into hiding and set up a safe place for Ernest. Going into hiding wasn't easy at all. The moment I got my freedom, the spies of the Iron Heel started following me. I needed to shake them off and make my way to California. It’s amusing how that all happened.

Already the passport system, modelled on the Russian, was developing. I dared not cross the continent in my own character. It was necessary that I should be completely lost if ever I was to see Ernest again, for by trailing me after he escaped, he would be caught once more. Again, I could not disguise myself as a proletarian and travel. There remained the disguise of a member of the Oligarchy. While the arch-oligarchs were no more than a handful, there were myriads of lesser ones of the type, say, of Mr. Wickson—men, worth a few millions, who were adherents of the arch-oligarchs. The wives and daughters of these lesser oligarchs were legion, and it was decided that I should assume the disguise of such a one. A few years later this would have been impossible, because the passport system was to become so perfect that no man, woman, nor child in all the land was unregistered and unaccounted for in his or her movements.

The passport system, based on the Russian model, was already taking shape. I couldn’t travel across the continent as myself. I needed to be completely off the radar if I ever wanted to see Ernest again, because if he followed me after escaping, he would be caught again. I also couldn’t disguise myself as a factory worker and travel. The only option left was to pretend to be a member of the Oligarchy. While the top oligarchs were very few, there were countless lesser ones, like Mr. Wickson—men worth a few million who supported the top oligarchs. The wives and daughters of these lesser oligarchs were many, and it was decided that I would take on the guise of one of them. A few years later, this would have been impossible because the passport system would become so comprehensive that no man, woman, or child in the country would be unregistered or unmonitored in their movements.

When the time was ripe, the spies were thrown off my track. An hour later Avis Everhard was no more. At that time one Felice Van Verdighan, accompanied by two maids and a lap-dog, with another maid for the lap-dog,[1] entered a drawing-room on a Pullman,[2] and a few minutes later was speeding west.

When the moment was right, the spies were thrown off my trail. An hour later, Avis Everhard was gone. At that time, one Felice Van Verdighan, accompanied by two maids and a lapdog, with another maid for the lapdog,[1] entered a drawing room on a Pullman,[2] and a few minutes later was racing west.

[1] This ridiculous picture well illustrates the heartless conduct of the masters. While people starved, lap-dogs were waited upon by maids. This was a serious masquerade on the part of Avis Everhard. Life and death and the Cause were in the issue; therefore the picture must be accepted as a true picture. It affords a striking commentary of the times.

[1] This absurd image clearly shows the cruel behavior of the masters. While people were dying of hunger, their pampered lap-dogs were being catered to by maids. This was a serious act of deception by Avis Everhard. Lives were at stake, and the Cause was on the line; therefore, the image must be seen as a genuine representation. It offers a vivid commentary on the era.

[2] Pullman—the designation of the more luxurious railway cars of the period and so named from the inventor.

[2] Pullman—the name for the more upscale train cars of the time, named after their inventor.

The three maids who accompanied me were revolutionists. Two were members of the Fighting Groups, and the third, Grace Holbrook, entered a group the following year, and six months later was executed by the Iron Heel. She it was who waited upon the dog. Of the other two, Bertha Stole disappeared twelve years later, while Anna Roylston still lives and plays an increasingly important part in the Revolution.[3]

The three maids who were with me were revolutionaries. Two were part of the Fighting Groups, and the third, Grace Holbrook, joined a group the following year and was executed by the Iron Heel six months later. She was the one who took care of the dog. Of the other two, Bertha Stole vanished twelve years later, while Anna Roylston is still alive and plays a growing role in the Revolution.[3]

[3] Despite continual and almost inconceivable hazards, Anna Roylston lived to the royal age of ninety-one. As the Pococks defied the executioners of the Fighting Groups, so she defied the executioners of the Iron Heel. She bore a charmed life and prospered amid dangers and alarms. She herself was an executioner for the Fighting Groups, and, known as the Red Virgin, she became one of the inspired figures of the Revolution. When she was an old woman of sixty-nine she shot “Bloody” Halcliffe down in the midst of his armed escort and got away unscathed. In the end she died peaceably of old age in a secret refuge of the revolutionists in the Ozark mountains.

[3] Despite facing constant and nearly unimaginable dangers, Anna Roylston lived to the impressive age of ninety-one. Just like the Pococks stood up against the executioners of the Fighting Groups, she stood firm against the executioners of the Iron Heel. She lived a charmed life and thrived amid chaos and threats. She was an executioner for the Fighting Groups and, known as the Red Virgin, became a legendary figure of the Revolution. When she was an old woman of sixty-nine, she shot “Bloody” Halcliffe right in front of his armed escort and escaped without a scratch. In the end, she died peacefully of old age in a hidden refuge of the revolutionists in the Ozark mountains.

Without adventure we crossed the United States to California. When the train stopped at Sixteenth Street Station, in Oakland, we alighted, and there Felice Van Verdighan, with her two maids, her lap-dog, and her lap-dog’s maid, disappeared forever. The maids, guided by trusty comrades, were led away. Other comrades took charge of me. Within half an hour after leaving the train I was on board a small fishing boat and out on the waters of San Francisco Bay. The winds baffled, and we drifted aimlessly the greater part of the night. But I saw the lights of Alcatraz where Ernest lay, and found comfort in the thought of nearness to him. By dawn, what with the rowing of the fishermen, we made the Marin Islands. Here we lay in hiding all day, and on the following night, swept on by a flood tide and a fresh wind, we crossed San Pablo Bay in two hours and ran up Petaluma Creek.

Without much excitement, we traveled across the United States to California. When the train stopped at Sixteenth Street Station in Oakland, we got off, and there Felice Van Verdighan, along with her two maids, her lap-dog, and her lap-dog’s maid, disappeared for good. The maids were taken away by reliable friends, while others took charge of me. Within half an hour of leaving the train, I found myself on a small fishing boat out on the waters of San Francisco Bay. The winds were confusing, and we drifted aimlessly for most of the night. But I saw the lights of Alcatraz where Ernest was, and that thought gave me some comfort. By dawn, thanks to the fishermen rowing, we reached the Marin Islands. Here we stayed hidden all day, and the next night, pushed along by a strong tide and a fresh wind, we crossed San Pablo Bay in two hours and made our way up Petaluma Creek.

Here horses were ready and another comrade, and without delay we were away through the starlight. To the north I could see the loom of Sonoma Mountain, toward which we rode. We left the old town of Sonoma to the right and rode up a canyon that lay between outlying buttresses of the mountain. The wagon-road became a wood-road, the wood-road became a cow-path, and the cow-path dwindled away and ceased among the upland pastures. Straight over Sonoma Mountain we rode. It was the safest route. There was no one to mark our passing.

Here, the horses were ready, along with another teammate, and without wasting any time, we set off through the starlit night. To the north, I could see the silhouette of Sonoma Mountain, which was our destination. We left the old town of Sonoma on our right and rode up a canyon nestled between the mountain's outer ridges. The wagon road turned into a trail, the trail became a narrow path, and that path eventually faded away, lost among the high meadows. We rode straight over Sonoma Mountain. It was the safest way to go. No one was there to witness our passage.

Dawn caught us on the northern brow, and in the gray light we dropped down through chaparral into redwood canyons deep and warm with the breath of passing summer. It was old country to me that I knew and loved, and soon I became the guide. The hiding-place was mine. I had selected it. We let down the bars and crossed an upland meadow. Next, we went over a low, oak-covered ridge and descended into a smaller meadow. Again we climbed a ridge, this time riding under red-limbed madronos and manzanitas of deeper red. The first rays of the sun streamed upon our backs as we climbed. A flight of quail thrummed off through the thickets. A big jackrabbit crossed our path, leaping swiftly and silently like a deer. And then a deer, a many-pronged buck, the sun flashing red-gold from neck and shoulders, cleared the crest of the ridge before us and was gone.

Dawn surprised us on the northern hill, and in the gray light, we descended through brush into redwood canyons deep and warm with the breath of late summer. It was an area I knew well and loved, and soon I became the guide. The hiding place was mine. I had chosen it. We let down the bars and crossed a grassy meadow. Next, we went over a low ridge covered with oaks and descended into a smaller meadow. Again we climbed a ridge, this time riding beneath red-barked madronos and manzanitas of deeper red. The first rays of the sun warmed our backs as we climbed. A flock of quail burst out from the thickets. A big jackrabbit crossed our path, leaping swiftly and quietly like a deer. Then a deer appeared, a large buck with many antlers, the sun glinting red-gold on its neck and shoulders, and it cleared the crest of the ridge in front of us and disappeared.

We followed in his wake a space, then dropped down a zigzag trail that he disdained into a group of noble redwoods that stood about a pool of water murky with minerals from the mountain side. I knew every inch of the way. Once a writer friend of mine had owned the ranch; but he, too, had become a revolutionist, though more disastrously than I, for he was already dead and gone, and none knew where nor how. He alone, in the days he had lived, knew the secret of the hiding-place for which I was bound. He had bought the ranch for beauty, and paid a round price for it, much to the disgust of the local farmers. He used to tell with great glee how they were wont to shake their heads mournfully at the price, to accomplish ponderously a bit of mental arithmetic, and then to say, “But you can’t make six per cent on it.”

We followed in his footsteps for a while, then dropped down a winding trail he ignored, leading us to a group of majestic redwoods surrounding a pool of water clouded with minerals from the mountainside. I knew every inch of the path. Once, a writer friend of mine owned the ranch, but he, too, became a revolutionary, though he met a worse fate than I did, as he was already dead and gone, and no one knew where or how. He, alone in his lifetime, knew the secret of the hiding place I was headed for. He bought the ranch for its beauty, paying a hefty price for it, much to the annoyance of the local farmers. He used to tell with delight how they would shake their heads sadly at the price, do some heavy mental math, and then respond, “But you can’t make six percent on it.”

But he was dead now, nor did the ranch descend to his children. Of all men, it was now the property of Mr. Wickson, who owned the whole eastern and northern slopes of Sonoma Mountain, running from the Spreckels estate to the divide of Bennett Valley. Out of it he had made a magnificent deer-park, where, over thousands of acres of sweet slopes and glades and canyons, the deer ran almost in primitive wildness. The people who had owned the soil had been driven away. A state home for the feeble-minded had also been demolished to make room for the deer.

But he was dead now, and the ranch didn’t go to his kids. Of all people, it was now owned by Mr. Wickson, who had the entire eastern and northern slopes of Sonoma Mountain, stretching from the Spreckels estate to the divide of Bennett Valley. He had turned it into a stunning deer park, where, across thousands of acres of beautiful hills, clearings, and canyons, the deer roamed almost in their natural state. The people who had once lived on the land had been forced out. A state facility for the mentally disabled had also been torn down to make space for the deer.

To cap it all, Wickson’s hunting lodge was a quarter of a mile from my hiding-place. This, instead of being a danger, was an added security. We were sheltered under the very ægis of one of the minor oligarchs. Suspicion, by the nature of the situation, was turned aside. The last place in the world the spies of the Iron Heel would dream of looking for me, and for Ernest when he joined me, was Wickson’s deer-park.

To top it off, Wickson’s hunting lodge was just a quarter of a mile from my hiding spot. Instead of being a risk, it made me feel more secure. We were protected under the wing of one of the minor power players. Given the circumstances, suspicion was directed elsewhere. The last place the spies of the Iron Heel would think to look for me, or for Ernest when he joined me, was Wickson’s deer park.

We tied our horses among the redwoods at the pool. From a cache behind a hollow rotting log my companion brought out a variety of things,—a fifty-pound sack of flour, tinned foods of all sorts, cooking utensils, blankets, a canvas tarpaulin, books and writing material, a great bundle of letters, a five-gallon can of kerosene, an oil stove, and, last and most important, a large coil of stout rope. So large was the supply of things that a number of trips would be necessary to carry them to the refuge.

We tied our horses among the redwoods by the pool. From a stash behind a hollow, decaying log, my companion pulled out all sorts of things—a fifty-pound sack of flour, various canned foods, cooking tools, blankets, a canvas tarp, books and writing supplies, a big bundle of letters, a five-gallon can of kerosene, an oil stove, and last but not least, a large coil of strong rope. There were so many supplies that we would need to make several trips to carry everything to safety.

But the refuge was very near. Taking the rope and leading the way, I passed through a glade of tangled vines and bushes that ran between two wooded knolls. The glade ended abruptly at the steep bank of a stream. It was a little stream, rising from springs, and the hottest summer never dried it up. On every hand were tall wooded knolls, a group of them, with all the seeming of having been flung there from some careless Titan’s hand. There was no bed-rock in them. They rose from their bases hundreds of feet, and they were composed of red volcanic earth, the famous wine-soil of Sonoma. Through these the tiny stream had cut its deep and precipitous channel.

But the refuge was very close. Taking the rope and leading the way, I walked through a clearing filled with tangled vines and bushes that stretched between two wooded hills. The clearing suddenly ended at the steep bank of a stream. It was a small stream, fed by springs, and even the hottest summer couldn’t dry it up. Surrounding us were tall wooded hills, a group of them, looking like they had been tossed there by some careless giant. There was no solid ground in them. They rose from their bases hundreds of feet high and were made of red volcanic soil, the famous wine-soil of Sonoma. The tiny stream had carved its deep and steep channel through these hills.

It was quite a scramble down to the stream bed, and, once on the bed, we went down stream perhaps for a hundred feet. And then we came to the great hole. There was no warning of the existence of the hole, nor was it a hole in the common sense of the word. One crawled through tight-locked briers and branches, and found oneself on the very edge, peering out and down through a green screen. A couple of hundred feet in length and width, it was half of that in depth. Possibly because of some fault that had occurred when the knolls were flung together, and certainly helped by freakish erosion, the hole had been scooped out in the course of centuries by the wash of water. Nowhere did the raw earth appear. All was garmented by vegetation, from tiny maiden-hair and gold-back ferns to mighty redwood and Douglas spruces. These great trees even sprang out from the walls of the hole. Some leaned over at angles as great as forty-five degrees, though the majority towered straight up from the soft and almost perpendicular earth walls.

It was quite a scramble down to the stream bed, and once we were there, we followed the stream for about a hundred feet. Then, we encountered the great hole. There was no warning about its existence, nor was it a hole in the usual sense. You had to crawl through tight briers and branches to find yourself on the very edge, looking out and down through a green screen. It measured a couple of hundred feet in length and width, and was about half that deep. Possibly due to some fault that occurred when the hills were formed, and definitely aided by unusual erosion, the hole had been carved out over centuries by the flow of water. Nowhere did raw earth show. Everything was covered in vegetation, from tiny maiden-hair and gold-back ferns to towering redwood and Douglas fir trees. These massive trees even grew out from the walls of the hole. Some leaned over at angles as steep as forty-five degrees, although most shot straight up from the soft and almost vertical earthen walls.

It was a perfect hiding-place. No one ever came there, not even the village boys of Glen Ellen. Had this hole existed in the bed of a canyon a mile long, or several miles long, it would have been well known. But this was no canyon. From beginning to end the length of the stream was no more than five hundred yards. Three hundred yards above the hole the stream took its rise in a spring at the foot of a flat meadow. A hundred yards below the hole the stream ran out into open country, joining the main stream and flowing across rolling and grass-covered land.

It was the perfect hiding place. No one ever went there, not even the village boys from Glen Ellen. If this spot had been at the bottom of a canyon a mile long, or even several miles long, it would have been well-known. But this wasn’t a canyon. The entire length of the stream was no more than five hundred yards. Three hundred yards above the hiding spot, the stream began at a spring at the edge of a flat meadow. A hundred yards below the hiding spot, the stream flowed out into open land, joining the main stream and running across rolling, grassy terrain.

My companion took a turn of the rope around a tree, and with me fast on the other end lowered away. In no time I was on the bottom. And in but a short while he had carried all the articles from the cache and lowered them down to me. He hauled the rope up and hid it, and before he went away called down to me a cheerful parting.

My friend wrapped a rope around a tree, and with me on the other end, he lowered me down. In no time, I was at the bottom. Soon after, he brought all the items from the stash and lowered them to me. He pulled the rope back up and hid it, and before he left, he called down to me with a cheerful goodbye.

Before I go on I want to say a word for this comrade, John Carlson, a humble figure of the Revolution, one of the countless faithful ones in the ranks. He worked for Wickson, in the stables near the hunting lodge. In fact, it was on Wickson’s horses that we had ridden over Sonoma Mountain. For nearly twenty years now John Carlson has been custodian of the refuge. No thought of disloyalty, I am sure, has ever entered his mind during all that time. To betray his trust would have been in his mind a thing undreamed. He was phlegmatic, stolid to such a degree that one could not but wonder how the Revolution had any meaning to him at all. And yet love of freedom glowed sombrely and steadily in his dim soul. In ways it was indeed good that he was not flighty and imaginative. He never lost his head. He could obey orders, and he was neither curious nor garrulous. Once I asked how it was that he was a revolutionist.

Before I continue, I want to say a few words about this comrade, John Carlson, a modest figure of the Revolution, one of the countless loyal supporters in our ranks. He worked for Wickson in the stables near the hunting lodge. In fact, it was on Wickson’s horses that we rode over Sonoma Mountain. For almost twenty years, John Carlson has been the caretaker of the refuge. I’m sure no thought of disloyalty has ever crossed his mind during all that time. Betraying his trust would have been unimaginable to him. He was calm and stoic to such a degree that one couldn’t help but wonder how the Revolution had any significance for him at all. Yet, a quiet love of freedom burned steadily in his dim soul. In some ways, it was a good thing he wasn’t impulsive or imaginative. He never lost his composure. He could follow orders, and he was neither nosy nor talkative. Once I asked him how he became a revolutionist.

“When I was a young man I was a soldier,” was his answer. “It was in Germany. There all young men must be in the army. So I was in the army. There was another soldier there, a young man, too. His father was what you call an agitator, and his father was in jail for lese majesty—what you call speaking the truth about the Emperor. And the young man, the son, talked with me much about people, and work, and the robbery of the people by the capitalists. He made me see things in new ways, and I became a socialist. His talk was very true and good, and I have never forgotten. When I came to the United States I hunted up the socialists. I became a member of a section—that was in the day of the S. L. P. Then later, when the split came, I joined the local of the S. P. I was working in a livery stable in San Francisco then. That was before the Earthquake. I have paid my dues for twenty-two years. I am yet a member, and I yet pay my dues, though it is very secret now. I will always pay my dues, and when the cooperative commonwealth comes, I will be glad.”

“When I was young, I was a soldier,” he replied. “It was in Germany. There, all young men have to serve in the army. So, I was in the army. There was another soldier there, a young man like me. His father was what you’d call an agitator, and his dad was in jail for lese majesty—what you call speaking the truth about the Emperor. The young man, his son, talked to me a lot about people, work, and how the capitalists were robbing everyone. He helped me see things differently, and I became a socialist. His words were very true and meaningful, and I’ve never forgotten them. When I came to the United States, I searched for the socialists. I became a member of a section—that was back in the days of the S.L.P. Then later, when the split happened, I joined the local of the S.P. I was working in a livery stable in San Francisco at the time. That was before the earthquake. I’ve been paying my dues for twenty-two years. I’m still a member, and I still pay my dues, even though it’s very secret now. I will always pay my dues, and when the cooperative commonwealth arrives, I will be happy.”

Left to myself, I proceeded to cook breakfast on the oil stove and to prepare my home. Often, in the early morning, or in the evening after dark, Carlson would steal down to the refuge and work for a couple of hours. At first my home was the tarpaulin. Later, a small tent was put up. And still later, when we became assured of the perfect security of the place, a small house was erected. This house was completely hidden from any chance eye that might peer down from the edge of the hole. The lush vegetation of that sheltered spot make a natural shield. Also, the house was built against the perpendicular wall; and in the wall itself, shored by strong timbers, well drained and ventilated, we excavated two small rooms. Oh, believe me, we had many comforts. When Biedenbach, the German terrorist, hid with us some time later, he installed a smoke-consuming device that enabled us to sit by crackling wood fires on winter nights.

Left to my own devices, I started cooking breakfast on the oil stove and getting my home ready. Often, in the early morning or after dark in the evening, Carlson would sneak down to the refuge and work for a couple of hours. At first, my home was just a tarpaulin. Later, a small tent was put up. And even later, when we felt completely secure in the place, we built a small house. This house was totally hidden from any curious eyes that might look down from the edge of the hole. The thick vegetation in that secluded spot acted as a natural shield. Plus, the house was built against the steep wall; and in the wall itself, supported by strong beams, well-drained and ventilated, we dug out two small rooms. Oh, trust me, we had plenty of comforts. When Biedenbach, the German terrorist, hid with us a little later, he set up a smoke-consuming device that let us enjoy crackling wood fires on winter nights.

And here I must say a word for that gentle-souled terrorist, than whom there is no comrade in the Revolution more fearfully misunderstood. Comrade Biedenbach did not betray the Cause. Nor was he executed by the comrades as is commonly supposed. This canard was circulated by the creatures of the Oligarchy. Comrade Biedenbach was absent-minded, forgetful. He was shot by one of our lookouts at the cave-refuge at Carmel, through failure on his part to remember the secret signals. It was all a sad mistake. And that he betrayed his Fighting Group is an absolute lie. No truer, more loyal man ever labored for the Cause.[4]

And here I have to say a word for that kind-hearted terrorist, who is more misunderstood than any comrade in the Revolution. Comrade Biedenbach did not betray the Cause. He wasn't executed by the comrades, as is commonly believed. This rumor was spread by the agents of the Oligarchy. Comrade Biedenbach was absent-minded and forgetful. He was shot by one of our lookouts at the cave-refuge at Carmel because he failed to remember the secret signals. It was all a tragic mistake. The idea that he betrayed his Fighting Group is an absolute lie. No one more true and loyal ever worked for the Cause.[4]

[4] Search as we may through all the material of those times that has come down to us, we can find no clew to the Biedenbach here referred to. No mention is made of him anywhere save in the Everhard Manuscript.

[4] No matter how much we search through all the materials from that time that have survived, we can find no hint of the Biedenbach mentioned here. He is mentioned nowhere else except in the Everhard Manuscript.

For nineteen years now the refuge that I selected had been almost continuously occupied, and in all that time, with one exception, it has never been discovered by an outsider. And yet it was only a quarter of a mile from Wickson’s hunting-lodge, and a short mile from the village of Glen Ellen. I was able, always, to hear the morning and evening trains arrive and depart, and I used to set my watch by the whistle at the brickyards.[5]

For nineteen years, the refuge I chose had been almost constantly occupied, and during that entire time, with one exception, it has never been found by anyone outside. Yet it was only a quarter of a mile from Wickson’s hunting lodge and just a mile from the village of Glen Ellen. I was always able to hear the morning and evening trains arriving and leaving, and I used to set my watch by the whistle at the brickyards.[5]

[5] If the curious traveller will turn south from Glen Ellen, he will find himself on a boulevard that is identical with the old country road seven centuries ago. A quarter of a mile from Glen Ellen, after the second bridge is passed, to the right will be noticed a barranca that runs like a scar across the rolling land toward a group of wooded knolls. The barranca is the site of the ancient right of way that in the time of private property in land ran across the holding of one Chauvet, a French pioneer of California who came from his native country in the fabled days of gold. The wooded knolls are the same knolls referred to by Avis Everhard.
    The Great Earthquake of 2368 A.D. broke off the side of one of these knolls and toppled it into the hole where the Everhards made their refuge. Since the finding of the Manuscript excavations have been made, and the house, the two cave rooms, and all the accumulated rubbish of long occupancy have been brought to light. Many valuable relics have been found, among which, curious to relate, is the smoke-consuming device of Biedenbach’s mentioned in the narrative. Students interested in such matters should read the brochure of Arnold Bentham soon to be published.
    A mile northwest from the wooded knolls brings one to the site of Wake Robin Lodge at the junction of Wild-Water and Sonoma Creeks. It may be noticed, in passing, that Wild- Water was originally called Graham Creek and was so named on the early local maps. But the later name sticks. It was at Wake Robin Lodge that Avis Everhard later lived for short periods, when, disguised as an agent-provocateur of the Iron Heel, she was enabled to play with impunity her part among men and events. The official permission to occupy Wake Robin Lodge is still on the records, signed by no less a man than Wickson, the minor oligarch of the Manuscript.

[5] If the curious traveler heads south from Glen Ellen, they'll find themselves on a boulevard that's just like the old country road from seven centuries ago. A quarter of a mile from Glen Ellen, after crossing the second bridge, to the right is a barranca that cuts through the rolling land toward a group of wooded hills. The barranca marks the ancient right of way that, during the era of private land ownership, passed through the property of a man named Chauvet, a French pioneer who came to California during the legendary gold rush. The wooded hills are the same ones mentioned by Avis Everhard.
The Great Earthquake of 2368 A.D. caused part of one of these hills to break off and fall into the cave where the Everhards took refuge. Since the discovery of the Manuscript, excavations have uncovered the house, two cave rooms, and a lot of debris from long-term occupancy. Many valuable artifacts have been found, including a smoke-consuming device from Biedenbach mentioned in the narrative. Students interested in these topics should check out the brochure by Arnold Bentham that will be published soon.
A mile northwest from the wooded hills leads to the site of Wake Robin Lodge at the junction of Wild-Water and Sonoma Creeks. It's worth noting that Wild-Water was originally named Graham Creek on early local maps. However, the later name has stuck. It was at Wake Robin Lodge that Avis Everhard lived for brief periods when she, disguised as an agent-provocateur of the Iron Heel, was able to operate freely among men and events. The official permission to occupy Wake Robin Lodge is still recorded, signed by no less than Wickson, the minor oligarch of the Manuscript.

CHAPTER XIX.
TRANSFORMATION

“You must make yourself over again,” Ernest wrote to me. “You must cease to be. You must become another woman—and not merely in the clothes you wear, but inside your skin under the clothes. You must make yourself over again so that even I would not know you—your voice, your gestures, your mannerisms, your carriage, your walk, everything.”

“You need to completely reinvent yourself,” Ernest wrote to me. “You have to stop being who you are. You need to become a different woman—and not just in the clothes you wear, but deep down inside, beneath those clothes. You must transform yourself so that even I wouldn’t recognize you—your voice, your gestures, your mannerisms, your posture, your walk, everything.”

This command I obeyed. Every day I practised for hours in burying forever the old Avis Everhard beneath the skin of another woman whom I may call my other self. It was only by long practice that such results could be obtained. In the mere detail of voice intonation I practised almost perpetually till the voice of my new self became fixed, automatic. It was this automatic assumption of a rôle that was considered imperative. One must become so adept as to deceive oneself. It was like learning a new language, say the French. At first speech in French is self-conscious, a matter of the will. The student thinks in English and then transmutes into French, or reads in French but transmutes into English before he can understand. Then later, becoming firmly grounded, automatic, the student reads, writes, and thinks in French, without any recourse to English at all.

I followed this command. Every day I practiced for hours to bury the old Avis Everhard under the skin of another woman whom I can call my other self. It took a lot of practice to achieve such results. I worked almost nonstop on the details of voice intonation until the voice of my new self became fixed and automatic. This automatic take on a role was seen as essential. You have to become so skilled that you can trick yourself. It was like learning a new language, like French. At first, speaking French feels awkward and is a matter of will. The student thinks in English first and then translates into French, or reads in French but translates into English to understand it. Eventually, after getting the hang of it, the student reads, writes, and thinks in French, without needing English at all.

And so with our disguises. It was necessary for us to practise until our assumed roles became real; until to be our original selves would require a watchful and strong exercise of will. Of course, at first, much was mere blundering experiment. We were creating a new art, and we had much to discover. But the work was going on everywhere; masters in the art were developing, and a fund of tricks and expedients was being accumulated. This fund became a sort of text-book that was passed on, a part of the curriculum, as it were, of the school of Revolution.[1]

And so with our disguises. We had to practice until our roles felt genuine; until being our true selves would require a lot of effort and self-control. At first, we were mostly just stumbling through it. We were creating a new art form, and there was a lot we needed to figure out. But the work was happening everywhere; skilled practitioners were emerging, and a collection of tricks and strategies was being built up. This collection became a kind of textbook that was shared, a part of the curriculum, so to speak, of the school of Revolution.[1]

[1] Disguise did become a veritable art during that period. The revolutionists maintained schools of acting in all their refuges. They scorned accessories, such as wigs and beards, false eyebrows, and such aids of the theatrical actors. The game of revolution was a game of life and death, and mere accessories were traps. Disguise had to be fundamental, intrinsic, part and parcel of one’s being, second nature. The Red Virgin is reported to have been one of the most adept in the art, to which must be ascribed her long and successful career.

[1] Disguise became a genuine art during that time. The revolutionaries set up acting schools in all their hideouts. They rejected props like wigs, beards, and fake eyebrows, viewing them as mere theatrical tools. The revolution was a matter of life and death, and superficial accessories could lead to disaster. Disguise had to be fundamental, ingrained, and second nature. The Red Virgin is said to have been one of the most skilled practitioners of this art, which contributed to her long and successful career.

It was at this time that my father disappeared. His letters, which had come to me regularly, ceased. He no longer appeared at our Pell Street quarters. Our comrades sought him everywhere. Through our secret service we ransacked every prison in the land. But he was lost as completely as if the earth had swallowed him up, and to this day no clew to his end has been discovered.[2]

It was at this time that my father vanished. His letters, which had come to me regularly, stopped. He no longer showed up at our Pell Street place. Our friends looked for him everywhere. Through our secret service, we searched every prison in the country. But he was gone as if the earth had swallowed him, and to this day, no clue to his fate has been found.[2]

[2] Disappearance was one of the horrors of the time. As a motif, in song and story, it constantly crops up. It was an inevitable concomitant of the subterranean warfare that raged through those three centuries. This phenomenon was almost as common in the oligarch class and the labor castes, as it was in the ranks of the revolutionists. Without warning, without trace, men and women, and even children, disappeared and were seen no more, their end shrouded in mystery.

[2] Disappearance was one of the horrors of the time. As a theme, it frequently appeared in songs and stories. It was an inevitable part of the underground warfare that lasted for those three centuries. This phenomenon was nearly as common in the wealthy elite and the working class as it was among the revolutionaries. Without warning, without a trace, men, women, and even children vanished and were never seen again, their fate wrapped in mystery.

Six lonely months I spent in the refuge, but they were not idle months. Our organization went on apace, and there were mountains of work always waiting to be done. Ernest and his fellow-leaders, from their prisons, decided what should be done; and it remained for us on the outside to do it. There was the organization of the mouth-to-mouth propaganda; the organization, with all its ramifications, of our spy system; the establishment of our secret printing-presses; and the establishment of our underground railways, which meant the knitting together of all our myriads of places of refuge, and the formation of new refuges where links were missing in the chains we ran over all the land.

I spent six lonely months in the refuge, but they weren't idle months. Our organization kept moving forward, and there was always a ton of work waiting to be done. Ernest and the other leaders, from their prisons, decided what needed to happen; it was up to us on the outside to carry it out. We organized the word-of-mouth propaganda; set up our spy network with all its complexities; established secret printing presses; and created our underground railways, which meant connecting all our countless places of refuge and forming new ones where there were gaps in the chains we ran across the country.

So I say, the work was never done. At the end of six months my loneliness was broken by the arrival of two comrades. They were young girls, brave souls and passionate lovers of liberty: Lora Peterson, who disappeared in 1922, and Kate Bierce, who later married Du Bois,[3] and who is still with us with eyes lifted to to-morrow’s sun, that heralds in the new age.

So I say, the work was never finished. After six months, my loneliness was interrupted by the arrival of two friends. They were young women, courageous spirits and passionate lovers of freedom: Lora Peterson, who went missing in 1922, and Kate Bierce, who later married Du Bois,[3] and who is still here, with her eyes raised to tomorrow’s sun, welcoming the new age.

[3] Du Bois, the present librarian of Ardis, is a lineal descendant of this revolutionary pair.

[3] Du Bois, the current librarian of Ardis, is a direct descendant of this revolutionary couple.

The two girls arrived in a flurry of excitement, danger, and sudden death. In the crew of the fishing boat that conveyed them across San Pablo Bay was a spy. A creature of the Iron Heel, he had successfully masqueraded as a revolutionist and penetrated deep into the secrets of our organization. Without doubt he was on my trail, for we had long since learned that my disappearance had been cause of deep concern to the secret service of the Oligarchy. Luckily, as the outcome proved, he had not divulged his discoveries to any one. He had evidently delayed reporting, preferring to wait until he had brought things to a successful conclusion by discovering my hiding-place and capturing me. His information died with him. Under some pretext, after the girls had landed at Petaluma Creek and taken to the horses, he managed to get away from the boat.

The two girls arrived full of excitement, danger, and impending doom. Among the crew of the fishing boat that brought them across San Pablo Bay was a spy. A pawn of the Iron Heel, he had successfully disguised himself as a revolutionary and had infiltrated our organization’s secrets. There was no doubt he was after me, as we had learned that my disappearance was creating serious issues for the secret service of the Oligarchy. Fortunately, as it turned out, he hadn't shared what he found with anyone. He clearly chose to hold off on reporting, wanting to wait until he figured out where I was hiding and could capture me. His information died with him. After the girls disembarked at Petaluma Creek and mounted their horses, he found a way to slip away from the boat under some excuse.

Part way up Sonoma Mountain, John Carlson let the girls go on, leading his horse, while he went back on foot. His suspicions had been aroused. He captured the spy, and as to what then happened, Carlson gave us a fair idea.

Partway up Sonoma Mountain, John Carlson let the girls continue on, leading his horse, while he went back on foot. His suspicions had been raised. He caught the spy, and as for what happened next, Carlson gave us a good idea.

“I fixed him,” was Carlson’s unimaginative way of describing the affair. “I fixed him,” he repeated, while a sombre light burnt in his eyes, and his huge, toil-distorted hands opened and closed eloquently. “He made no noise. I hid him, and tonight I will go back and bury him deep.”

“I took care of him,” was Carlson’s straightforward way of describing the situation. “I took care of him,” he repeated, while a dark light burned in his eyes, and his large, work-worn hands opened and closed expressively. “He didn’t make a sound. I hid him, and tonight I’ll go back and bury him deep.”

During that period I used to marvel at my own metamorphosis. At times it seemed impossible, either that I had ever lived a placid, peaceful life in a college town, or else that I had become a revolutionist inured to scenes of violence and death. One or the other could not be. One was real, the other was a dream, but which was which? Was this present life of a revolutionist, hiding in a hole, a nightmare? or was I a revolutionist who had somewhere, somehow, dreamed that in some former existence I have lived in Berkeley and never known of life more violent than teas and dances, debating societies, and lecture rooms? But then I suppose this was a common experience of all of us who had rallied under the red banner of the brotherhood of man.

During that time, I used to be amazed by my own transformation. Sometimes it felt impossible that I had ever lived a calm, peaceful life in a college town or that I had become a revolutionary accustomed to scenes of violence and death. One couldn’t be true without the other being false. One was real, the other was just a dream, but which was which? Was my current life as a revolutionary, hiding away, a nightmare? Or was I a revolutionary who had somehow, somewhere, dreamed that in a past life I lived in Berkeley, never knowing a reality more chaotic than social gatherings, dances, debating clubs, and classrooms? But then again, I guess this was a shared experience for all of us who had come together under the red banner of humanity.

I often remembered figures from that other life, and, curiously enough, they appeared and disappeared, now and again, in my new life. There was Bishop Morehouse. In vain we searched for him after our organization had developed. He had been transferred from asylum to asylum. We traced him from the state hospital for the insane at Napa to the one in Stockton, and from there to the one in the Santa Clara Valley called Agnews, and there the trail ceased. There was no record of his death. In some way he must have escaped. Little did I dream of the awful manner in which I was to see him once again—the fleeting glimpse of him in the whirlwind carnage of the Chicago Commune.

I often thought about people from that other life, and interestingly enough, they would sometimes show up and then disappear again in my new life. There was Bishop Morehouse. We searched for him in vain after our organization had grown. He had been moved from one asylum to another. We tracked him from the state hospital for the insane in Napa to the one in Stockton, and then to the one in the Santa Clara Valley called Agnews, but that's where the trail ended. There was no record of his death. Somehow, he must have escaped. I had no idea of the horrific way I would see him again—the brief glimpse of him amidst the chaos of the Chicago Commune.

Jackson, who had lost his arm in the Sierra Mills and who had been the cause of my own conversion into a revolutionist, I never saw again; but we all knew what he did before he died. He never joined the revolutionists. Embittered by his fate, brooding over his wrongs, he became an anarchist—not a philosophic anarchist, but a mere animal, mad with hate and lust for revenge. And well he revenged himself. Evading the guards, in the nighttime while all were asleep, he blew the Pertonwaithe palace into atoms. Not a soul escaped, not even the guards. And in prison, while awaiting trial, he suffocated himself under his blankets.

Jackson, who lost his arm in the Sierra Mills and was the reason I became a revolutionary, I never saw again; but we all knew what he did before he died. He never joined the revolutionaries. Bitter about his fate, stewing over his grievances, he turned into an anarchist—not a thoughtful one, but a wild animal, consumed by hate and a desire for revenge. And he got his revenge in a big way. Sneaking past the guards while everyone was asleep, he blew the Pertonwaithe palace to pieces. No one survived, not even the guards. And in prison, while waiting for his trial, he suffocated himself under his blankets.

Dr. Hammerfield and Dr. Ballingford achieved quite different fates from that of Jackson. They have been faithful to their salt, and they have been correspondingly rewarded with ecclesiastical palaces wherein they dwell at peace with the world. Both are apologists for the Oligarchy. Both have grown very fat. “Dr. Hammerfield,” as Ernest once said, “has succeeded in modifying his metaphysics so as to give God’s sanction to the Iron Heel, and also to include much worship of beauty and to reduce to an invisible wraith the gaseous vertebrate described by Haeckel—the difference between Dr. Hammerfield and Dr. Ballingford being that the latter has made the God of the oligarchs a little more gaseous and a little less vertebrate.”

Dr. Hammerfield and Dr. Ballingford took very different paths than Jackson. They have remained loyal to their values, and because of that, they enjoy lavish lives in grand ecclesiastical buildings, living peacefully with the world. Both are defenders of the Oligarchy. Both have become quite overweight. “Dr. Hammerfield,” as Ernest once pointed out, “has managed to reshape his beliefs to justify the Iron Heel with divine approval, while also focusing on the worship of beauty and downplaying the concept of the gaseous vertebrate described by Haeckel—the difference between Dr. Hammerfield and Dr. Ballingford is that the latter has made the oligarchs' God a bit more abstract and a bit less concrete.”

Peter Donnelly, the scab foreman at the Sierra Mills whom I encountered while investigating the case of Jackson, was a surprise to all of us. In 1918 I was present at a meeting of the ’Frisco Reds. Of all our Fighting Groups this one was the most formidable, ferocious, and merciless. It was really not a part of our organization. Its members were fanatics, madmen. We dared not encourage such a spirit. On the other hand, though they did not belong to us, we remained on friendly terms with them. It was a matter of vital importance that brought me there that night. I, alone in the midst of a score of men, was the only person unmasked. After the business that brought me there was transacted, I was led away by one of them. In a dark passage this guide struck a match, and, holding it close to his face, slipped back his mask. For a moment I gazed upon the passion-wrought features of Peter Donnelly. Then the match went out.

Peter Donnelly, the scab foreman at Sierra Mills whom I met while looking into Jackson's case, surprised all of us. In 1918, I attended a meeting of the ’Frisco Reds. Of all our Fighting Groups, this one was the toughest, most intense, and ruthless. It wasn’t actually part of our organization. Its members were fanatics, crazies. We didn’t dare encourage that kind of thinking. However, even though they weren’t part of us, we still maintained a friendly relationship with them. I went there that night for something of vital importance. I was the only one without a mask in a room full of men. After the matter that brought me there was settled, one of them led me away. In a dark hallway, this guide lit a match, held it close to his face, and pulled back his mask. For a moment, I looked at the intense features of Peter Donnelly. Then the match went out.

“I just wanted you to know it was me,” he said in the darkness. “D’you remember Dallas, the superintendent?”

“I just wanted you to know it was me,” he said in the dark. “Do you remember Dallas, the superintendent?”

I nodded at recollection of the vulpine-faced superintendent of the Sierra Mills.

I nodded at the memory of the fox-faced superintendent of the Sierra Mills.

“Well, I got him first,” Donnelly said with pride. “’Twas after that I joined the Reds.”

“Well, I got him first,” Donnelly said proudly. “That’s when I joined the Reds.”

“But how comes it that you are here?” I queried. “Your wife and children?”

“But how did you end up here?” I asked. “What about your wife and kids?”

“Dead,” he answered. “That’s why. No,” he went on hastily, “’tis not revenge for them. They died easily in their beds—sickness, you see, one time and another. They tied my arms while they lived. And now that they’re gone, ’tis revenge for my blasted manhood I’m after. I was once Peter Donnelly, the scab foreman. But to-night I’m Number 27 of the ’Frisco Reds. Come on now, and I’ll get you out of this.”

“Dead,” he replied. “That’s why. No,” he continued quickly, “it’s not revenge for them. They passed away peacefully in their beds—just from sickness, you know, time and again. They held me back while they were alive. And now that they’re gone, I’m seeking revenge for my lost manhood. I used to be Peter Donnelly, the scab foreman. But tonight, I’m Number 27 of the ’Frisco Reds. Come on now, and I’ll help you escape from this.”

More I heard of him afterward. In his own way he had told the truth when he said all were dead. But one lived, Timothy, and him his father considered dead because he had taken service with the Iron Heel in the Mercenaries.[4] A member of the ’Frisco Reds pledged himself to twelve annual executions. The penalty for failure was death. A member who failed to complete his number committed suicide. These executions were not haphazard. This group of madmen met frequently and passed wholesale judgments upon offending members and servitors of the Oligarchy. The executions were afterward apportioned by lot.

More I heard about him later. In his own way, he had been honest when he said everyone was dead. But one person survived, Timothy, and his father thought he was dead because he had joined the Iron Heel as a Mercenary. A member of the ’Frisco Reds committed to carry out twelve executions each year. The punishment for not completing this was death. A member who didn’t finish their share often took their own life. These executions weren't random. This group of extremists met often and made sweeping judgments on offending members and followers of the Oligarchy. The executions were then assigned by lottery.

[4] In addition to the labor castes, there arose another caste, the military. A standing army of professional soldiers was created, officered by members of the Oligarchy and known as the Mercenaries. This institution took the place of the militia, which had proved impracticable under the new regime. Outside the regular secret service of the Iron Heel, there was further established a secret service of the Mercenaries, this latter forming a connecting link between the police and the military.

[4] In addition to the labor castes, another caste emerged: the military. A professional standing army was formed, led by members of the Oligarchy and known as the Mercenaries. This organization replaced the militia, which had become unworkable under the new regime. Beyond the regular secret service of the Iron Heel, a separate secret service for the Mercenaries was established, creating a link between the police and the military.

In fact, the business that brought me there the night of my visit was such a trial. One of our own comrades, who for years had successfully maintained himself in a clerical position in the local bureau of the secret service of the Iron Heel, had fallen under the ban of the ’Frisco Reds and was being tried. Of course he was not present, and of course his judges did not know that he was one of our men. My mission had been to testify to his identity and loyalty. It may be wondered how we came to know of the affair at all. The explanation is simple. One of our secret agents was a member of the ’Frisco Reds. It was necessary for us to keep an eye on friend as well as foe, and this group of madmen was not too unimportant to escape our surveillance.

Honestly, the reason I was there that night was quite a challenge. One of our comrades, who had managed to hold a clerical job at the local secret service bureau of the Iron Heel for years, had fallen out of favor with the ’Frisco Reds and was on trial. Naturally, he wasn't there, and of course, his judges had no idea he was one of us. My job was to confirm his identity and loyalty. You might wonder how we found out about this whole situation. The answer is straightforward. One of our undercover agents was part of the ’Frisco Reds. It was crucial for us to keep tabs on both friends and enemies, and we couldn’t afford to overlook this group of lunatics.

But to return to Peter Donnelly and his son. All went well with Donnelly until, in the following year, he found among the sheaf of executions that fell to him the name of Timothy Donnelly. Then it was that that clannishness, which was his to so extraordinary a degree, asserted itself. To save his son, he betrayed his comrades. In this he was partially blocked, but a dozen of the ’Frisco Reds were executed, and the group was well-nigh destroyed. In retaliation, the survivors meted out to Donnelly the death he had earned by his treason.

But let's go back to Peter Donnelly and his son. Everything was going well for Donnelly until, the following year, he came across the name Timothy Donnelly in the stack of executions that came his way. That's when his strong sense of loyalty to his group really showed. To protect his son, he turned against his comrades. Although he faced some obstacles, a dozen of the ’Frisco Reds were executed, and the group was almost wiped out. In retaliation, the survivors delivered the punishment to Donnelly that he deserved for his betrayal.

Nor did Timothy Donnelly long survive. The ’Frisco Reds pledged themselves to his execution. Every effort was made by the Oligarchy to save him. He was transferred from one part of the country to another. Three of the Reds lost their lives in vain efforts to get him. The Group was composed only of men. In the end they fell back on a woman, one of our comrades, and none other than Anna Roylston. Our Inner Circle forbade her, but she had ever a will of her own and disdained discipline. Furthermore, she was a genius and lovable, and we could never discipline her anyway. She is in a class by herself and not amenable to the ordinary standards of the revolutionists.

Nor did Timothy Donnelly last long. The ’Frisco Reds committed to his execution. The Oligarchy made every effort to save him. He was moved from one part of the country to another. Three of the Reds died in vain trying to rescue him. The Group was made up solely of men. In the end, they turned to a woman, one of our comrades, Anna Roylston. Our Inner Circle prohibited her, but she always had a mind of her own and ignored discipline. Besides, she was a genius and lovable, and we could never really discipline her anyway. She is in a league of her own and not subject to the usual standards of revolutionaries.

Despite our refusal to grant permission to do the deed, she went on with it. Now Anna Roylston was a fascinating woman. All she had to do was to beckon a man to her. She broke the hearts of scores of our young comrades, and scores of others she captured, and by their heart-strings led into our organization. Yet she steadfastly refused to marry. She dearly loved children, but she held that a child of her own would claim her from the Cause, and that it was the Cause to which her life was devoted.

Despite our refusal to give permission to go through with it, she did it anyway. Now Anna Roylston was an intriguing woman. All she had to do was wave a man over to her. She broke the hearts of many of our young friends, and many others she captured, leading them into our organization by their heartstrings. Yet she firmly refused to get married. She loved children dearly, but she believed that having her own would pull her away from the Cause, and it was the Cause to which her life was committed.

It was an easy task for Anna Roylston to win Timothy Donnelly. Her conscience did not trouble her, for at that very time occurred the Nashville Massacre, when the Mercenaries, Donnelly in command, literally murdered eight hundred weavers of that city. But she did not kill Donnelly. She turned him over, a prisoner, to the ’Frisco Reds. This happened only last year, and now she had been renamed. The revolutionists everywhere are calling her the “Red Virgin.”[5]

It was easy for Anna Roylston to win over Timothy Donnelly. She had no guilt about it, especially since at that very moment, the Nashville Massacre was happening, when the Mercenaries, led by Donnelly, brutally killed eight hundred weavers in that city. But she didn’t kill Donnelly. She handed him over as a prisoner to the ’Frisco Reds. This took place just last year, and now she had received a new name. Revolutionaries everywhere are calling her the “Red Virgin.”[5]

[5] It was not until the Second Revolt was crushed, that the ’Frisco Reds flourished again. And for two generations the Group flourished. Then an agent of the Iron Heel managed to become a member, penetrated all its secrets, and brought about its total annihilation. This occurred in 2002 A.D. The members were executed one at a time, at intervals of three weeks, and their bodies exposed in the labor-ghetto of San Francisco.

[5] It wasn't until the Second Revolt was defeated that the ’Frisco Reds thrived again. For two generations, the Group prospered. Then, an agent of the Iron Heel infiltrated it, uncovered all its secrets, and led to its complete destruction. This happened in 2002 A.D. The members were executed one by one, every three weeks, and their bodies were displayed in the labor-ghetto of San Francisco.

Colonel Ingram and Colonel Van Gilbert are two more familiar figures that I was later to encounter. Colonel Ingram rose high in the Oligarchy and became Minister to Germany. He was cordially detested by the proletariat of both countries. It was in Berlin that I met him, where, as an accredited international spy of the Iron Heel, I was received by him and afforded much assistance. Incidentally, I may state that in my dual rôle I managed a few important things for the Revolution.

Colonel Ingram and Colonel Van Gilbert are two more familiar figures I would later run into. Colonel Ingram climbed the ranks in the Oligarchy and became the Minister to Germany. He was widely hated by the working class in both countries. It was in Berlin that I met him, where, as a recognized international spy for the Iron Heel, he welcomed me and provided a lot of help. By the way, I should mention that in my dual role, I accomplished several important tasks for the Revolution.

Colonel Van Gilbert became known as “Snarling” Van Gilbert. His important part was played in drafting the new code after the Chicago Commune. But before that, as trial judge, he had earned sentence of death by his fiendish malignancy. I was one of those that tried him and passed sentence upon him. Anna Roylston carried out the execution.

Colonel Van Gilbert became known as “Snarling” Van Gilbert. He played a key role in drafting the new code after the Chicago Commune. But before that, as a trial judge, he had earned a death sentence due to his wickedness. I was one of those who tried him and passed sentence on him. Anna Roylston carried out the execution.

Still another figure arises out of the old life—Jackson’s lawyer. Least of all would I have expected again to meet this man, Joseph Hurd. It was a strange meeting. Late at night, two years after the Chicago Commune, Ernest and I arrived together at the Benton Harbor refuge. This was in Michigan, across the lake from Chicago. We arrived just at the conclusion of the trial of a spy. Sentence of death had been passed, and he was being led away. Such was the scene as we came upon it. The next moment the wretched man had wrenched free from his captors and flung himself at my feet, his arms clutching me about the knees in a vicelike grip as he prayed in a frenzy for mercy. As he turned his agonized face up to me, I recognized him as Joseph Hurd. Of all the terrible things I have witnessed, never have I been so unnerved as by this frantic creature’s pleading for life. He was mad for life. It was pitiable. He refused to let go of me, despite the hands of a dozen comrades. And when at last he was dragged shrieking away, I sank down fainting upon the floor. It is far easier to see brave men die than to hear a coward beg for life.[6]

Still another figure comes out of the old life—Jackson’s lawyer. I never expected to see this man again, Joseph Hurd. It was a strange encounter. Late at night, two years after the Chicago Commune, Ernest and I arrived together at the Benton Harbor refuge. This was in Michigan, across the lake from Chicago. We arrived just as the trial of a spy was ending. A death sentence had been given, and he was being taken away. That was the scene as we walked in. The next moment, the miserable man broke free from his captors and threw himself at my feet, gripping my knees desperately as he begged for mercy. When he lifted his tortured face to me, I realized he was Joseph Hurd. Out of all the awful things I’ve seen, nothing has shaken me more than this frantic man pleading for his life. He was desperate to live. It was heartbreaking. He wouldn’t let go of me, even with a dozen comrades trying to pull him away. And when he was finally dragged away screaming, I collapsed to the floor, fainting. It’s much easier to watch brave men die than to hear a coward beg for life.[6]

[6] The Benton Harbor refuge was a catacomb, the entrance of which was cunningly contrived by way of a well. It has been maintained in a fair state of preservation, and the curious visitor may to-day tread its labyrinths to the assembly hall, where, without doubt, occurred the scene described by Avis Everhard. Farther on are the cells where the prisoners were confined, and the death chamber where the executions took place. Beyond is the cemetery—long, winding galleries hewn out of the solid rock, with recesses on either hand, wherein, tier above tier, lie the revolutionists just as they were laid away by their comrades long years agone.

[6] The Benton Harbor refuge was like a hidden underground maze, with its entrance cleverly disguised as a well. It has been kept pretty intact, and today, curious visitors can explore its winding paths leading to the assembly hall, where the scene described by Avis Everhard certainly took place. Further along are the cells where prisoners were held, and the execution chamber where they were put to death. Beyond that is the cemetery—long, winding corridors carved out of solid rock, with recesses on either side, where the revolutionaries lie, stacked tier upon tier, just as their comrades laid them to rest long ago.

CHAPTER XX.
A LOST OLIGARCH

But in remembering the old life I have run ahead of my story into the new life. The wholesale jail delivery did not occur until well along into 1915. Complicated as it was, it was carried through without a hitch, and as a very creditable achievement it cheered us on in our work. From Cuba to California, out of scores of jails, military prisons, and fortresses, in a single night, we delivered fifty-one of our fifty-two Congressmen, and in addition over three hundred other leaders. There was not a single instance of miscarriage. Not only did they escape, but every one of them won to the refuges as planned. The one comrade Congressman we did not get was Arthur Simpson, and he had already died in Cabañas after cruel tortures.

But as I think back on the old life, I've jumped ahead in my story to the new one. The massive prison break didn’t happen until well into 1915. Complicated as it was, it went off smoothly, and as a notable achievement, it motivated us in our efforts. From Cuba to California, in one night, we freed fifty-one of our fifty-two Congressmen, plus over three hundred other leaders, from various jails, military prisons, and fortresses. Not a single escape went wrong. Not only did they break free, but every one of them made it to the safe zones as planned. The only Congressman we couldn't rescue was Arthur Simpson, who had already died in Cabañas after enduring cruel torture.

The eighteen months that followed was perhaps the happiest of my life with Ernest. During that time we were never apart. Later, when we went back into the world, we were separated much. Not more impatiently do I await the flame of to-morrow’s revolt than did I that night await the coming of Ernest. I had not seen him for so long, and the thought of a possible hitch or error in our plans that would keep him still in his island prison almost drove me mad. The hours passed like ages. I was all alone. Biedenbach, and three young men who had been living in the refuge, were out and over the mountain, heavily armed and prepared for anything. The refuges all over the land were quite empty, I imagine, of comrades that night.

The eighteen months that followed were probably the happiest of my life with Ernest. During that time, we were never apart. Later, when we returned to the outside world, we were often separated. I waited just as impatiently for the spark of tomorrow’s rebellion as I did that night for Ernest to arrive. I hadn’t seen him in so long, and the thought of any delay or mistake in our plans that would keep him stuck in his island prison almost drove me crazy. The hours felt like ages. I was completely alone. Biedenbach and three young men who had been staying in the refuge were out over the mountain, heavily armed and ready for anything. I imagine the refuges all over the country were completely empty of comrades that night.

Just as the sky paled with the first warning of dawn, I heard the signal from above and gave the answer. In the darkness I almost embraced Biedenbach, who came down first; but the next moment I was in Ernest’s arms. And in that moment, so complete had been my transformation, I discovered it was only by an effort of will that I could be the old Avis Everhard, with the old mannerisms and smiles, phrases and intonations of voice. It was by strong effort only that I was able to maintain my old identity; I could not allow myself to forget for an instant, so automatically imperative had become the new personality I had created.

Just as the sky lightened with the first hint of dawn, I heard the signal from above and responded. In the darkness, I almost hugged Biedenbach, who came down first; but the next moment, I was in Ernest’s arms. In that moment, my transformation was so complete that I realized I could only be the old Avis Everhard—complete with her old habits, smiles, phrases, and tone of voice—through sheer willpower. It took a lot of effort just to maintain my old identity; I couldn’t let myself forget for a second, as the new personality I had created had become so instinctively dominant.

Once inside the little cabin, I saw Ernest’s face in the light. With the exception of the prison pallor, there was no change in him—at least, not much. He was my same lover-husband and hero. And yet there was a certain ascetic lengthening of the lines of his face. But he could well stand it, for it seemed to add a certain nobility of refinement to the riotous excess of life that had always marked his features. He might have been a trifle graver than of yore, but the glint of laughter still was in his eyes. He was twenty pounds lighter, but in splendid physical condition. He had kept up exercise during the whole period of confinement, and his muscles were like iron. In truth, he was in better condition than when he had entered prison. Hours passed before his head touched pillow and I had soothed him off to sleep. But there was no sleep for me. I was too happy, and the fatigue of jail-breaking and riding horseback had not been mine.

Once I got inside the small cabin, I saw Ernest’s face in the light. Aside from the prison pallor, he hadn't changed much—at least not significantly. He was still my same lover-husband and hero. However, there was a certain ascetic sharpness to the lines of his face. But he could handle it, as it seemed to add a touch of noble refinement to the wildness that had always characterized his features. He might have seemed a bit more serious than before, but the sparkle of laughter was still in his eyes. He had lost twenty pounds, but he was in great physical shape. He had kept up with exercise throughout his time in confinement, and his muscles were like iron. In fact, he was in better shape than he was when he first went to prison. Hours went by before his head finally hit the pillow, and I had gently lulled him to sleep. But there was no sleep for me. I was too happy, and I hadn’t experienced the fatigue of breaking him out and riding horseback.

While Ernest slept, I changed my dress, arranged my hair differently, and came back to my new automatic self. Then, when Biedenbach and the other comrades awoke, with their aid I concocted a little conspiracy. All was ready, and we were in the cave-room that served for kitchen and dining room when Ernest opened the door and entered. At that moment Biedenbach addressed me as Mary, and I turned and answered him. Then I glanced at Ernest with curious interest, such as any young comrade might betray on seeing for the first time so noted a hero of the Revolution. But Ernest’s glance took me in and questioned impatiently past and around the room. The next moment I was being introduced to him as Mary Holmes.

While Ernest was sleeping, I changed my clothes, styled my hair differently, and returned to my new automatic self. Then, when Biedenbach and the other comrades woke up, I came up with a little scheme with their help. Everything was ready, and we were in the cave-room that served as both kitchen and dining room when Ernest opened the door and walked in. At that moment, Biedenbach called me Mary, and I turned to answer him. Then I glanced at Ernest with curious interest, like any young comrade might show upon meeting such a prominent hero of the Revolution for the first time. But Ernest’s gaze took me in and impatiently scanned the room. The next moment, I was being introduced to him as Mary Holmes.

To complete the deception, an extra plate was laid, and when we sat down to table one chair was not occupied. I could have cried with joy as I noted Ernest’s increasing uneasiness and impatience. Finally he could stand it no longer.

To finish the deception, an extra plate was set, and when we sat down at the table, one chair was empty. I could have cried with joy as I watched Ernest's growing uneasiness and impatience. Eventually, he couldn't take it anymore.

“Where’s my wife?” he demanded bluntly.

“Where’s my wife?” he asked straightforwardly.

“She is still asleep,” I answered.

"She's still sleeping," I replied.

It was the crucial moment. But my voice was a strange voice, and in it he recognized nothing familiar. The meal went on. I talked a great deal, and enthusiastically, as a hero-worshipper might talk, and it was obvious that he was my hero. I rose to a climax of enthusiasm and worship, and, before he could guess my intention, threw my arms around his neck and kissed him on the lips. He held me from him at arm’s length and stared about in annoyance and perplexity. The four men greeted him with roars of laughter, and explanations were made. At first he was sceptical. He scrutinized me keenly and was half convinced, then shook his head and would not believe. It was not until I became the old Avis Everhard and whispered secrets in his ear that none knew but he and Avis Everhard, that he accepted me as his really, truly wife.

It was the pivotal moment. But my voice sounded strange, and he recognized nothing familiar in it. The meal continued. I talked a lot, enthusiastically, like a devoted fan might, and it was clear he was my idol. I reached a peak of excitement and admiration, and before he could figure out what I was up to, I threw my arms around his neck and kissed him on the lips. He held me away at arm’s length and looked around, annoyed and confused. The four men erupted in laughter, and there were explanations. At first, he was skeptical. He studied me closely and was partially convinced, then shook his head, refusing to believe. It wasn't until I became the old Avis Everhard and whispered secrets in his ear that only he and Avis Everhard knew, that he truly accepted me as his wife.

It was later in the day that he took me in his arms, manifesting great embarrassment and claiming polygamous emotions.

It was later in the day that he held me close, showing a lot of embarrassment and expressing his mixed feelings about relationships.

“You are my Avis,” he said, “and you are also some one else. You are two women, and therefore you are my harem. At any rate, we are safe now. If the United States becomes too hot for us, why I have qualified for citizenship in Turkey.”[1]

“You're my Avis,” he said, “and you're also someone else. You're two women, which makes you my harem. Either way, we're safe now. If things get too crazy for us in the United States, I’ve got citizenship in Turkey.”[1]

[1] At that time polygamy was still practised in Turkey.

[1] Back then, polygamy was still common in Turkey.

Life became for me very happy in the refuge. It is true, we worked hard and for long hours; but we worked together. We had each other for eighteen precious months, and we were not lonely, for there was always a coming and going of leaders and comrades—strange voices from the under-world of intrigue and revolution, bringing stranger tales of strife and war from all our battle-line. And there was much fun and delight. We were not mere gloomy conspirators. We toiled hard and suffered greatly, filled the gaps in our ranks and went on, and through all the labour and the play and interplay of life and death we found time to laugh and love. There were artists, scientists, scholars, musicians, and poets among us; and in that hole in the ground culture was higher and finer than in the palaces of wonder-cities of the oligarchs. In truth, many of our comrades toiled at making beautiful those same palaces and wonder-cities.[2]

Life became very happy for me in the refuge. It's true, we worked hard and long hours, but we did it together. We had each other for eighteen precious months, and we weren't lonely because there was always a flow of leaders and comrades—strange voices from the underground world of intrigue and revolution, bringing weird stories of conflict and war from our entire front. There was also a lot of fun and joy. We weren't just gloomy conspirators. We worked hard and endured a lot, filled the gaps in our ranks, and kept going. Through all the hard work, play, and the mix of life and death, we found time to laugh and love. Among us were artists, scientists, scholars, musicians, and poets; in that hole in the ground, our culture was richer and more refined than in the wonder-cities of the oligarchs. In fact, many of our comrades spent their time making those same palaces and wonder-cities beautiful.

[2] This is not braggadocio on the part of Avis Everhard. The flower of the artistic and intellectual world were revolutionists. With the exception of a few of the musicians and singers, and of a few of the oligarchs, all the great creators of the period whose names have come down to us, were revolutionists.

[2] Avis Everhard isn’t boasting. The brightest minds in art and intellect were revolutionaries. Aside from a handful of musicians, singers, and a few oligarchs, nearly all the major creators from that era whose names we still recognize were revolutionaries.

Nor were we confined to the refuge itself. Often at night we rode over the mountains for exercise, and we rode on Wickson’s horses. If only he knew how many revolutionists his horses have carried! We even went on picnics to isolated spots we knew, where we remained all day, going before daylight and returning after dark. Also, we used Wickson’s cream and butter,[3] and Ernest was not above shooting Wickson’s quail and rabbits, and, on occasion, his young bucks.

Nor were we limited to just the refuge itself. Often at night, we rode over the mountains for exercise, using Wickson’s horses. If only he knew how many revolutionaries his horses have carried! We even went on picnics to remote spots we knew, where we stayed all day, leaving before dawn and coming back after dark. We also used Wickson’s cream and butter, and Ernest wasn’t above shooting Wickson’s quail and rabbits, and occasionally, his young bucks.

[3] Even as late as that period, cream and butter were still crudely extracted from cow’s milk. The laboratory preparation of foods had not yet begun.

[3] Even at that time, cream and butter were still roughly taken from cow's milk. The lab-made food process hadn't started yet.

Indeed, it was a safe refuge. I have said that it was discovered only once, and this brings me to the clearing up of the mystery of the disappearance of young Wickson. Now that he is dead, I am free to speak. There was a nook on the bottom of the great hole where the sun shone for several hours and which was hidden from above. Here we had carried many loads of gravel from the creek-bed, so that it was dry and warm, a pleasant basking place; and here, one afternoon, I was drowsing, half asleep, over a volume of Mendenhall.[4] I was so comfortable and secure that even his flaming lyrics failed to stir me.

Indeed, it was a safe haven. I mentioned that it was discovered only once, and this leads me to clarify the mystery of young Wickson's disappearance. Now that he is gone, I can speak freely. There was a spot at the bottom of the great hole where the sun shone for several hours and was hidden from above. We had hauled many loads of gravel from the creek-bed to make it dry and warm, a nice place to relax; and here, one afternoon, I was dozing, half asleep, over a book by Mendenhall.[4] I felt so comfortable and secure that even his intense verses couldn't wake me.

[4] In all the extant literature and documents of that period, continual reference is made to the poems of Rudolph Mendenhall. By his comrades he was called “The Flame.” He was undoubtedly a great genius; yet, beyond weird and haunting fragments of his verse, quoted in the writings of others, nothing of his has come down to us. He was executed by the Iron Heel in 1928 A.D.

[4] In all the existing literature and documents from that time, there are constant references to the poems of Rudolph Mendenhall. His friends called him “The Flame.” He was undoubtedly a true genius; however, apart from strange and haunting pieces of his poetry, cited in the works of others, nothing of his has survived. He was executed by the Iron Heel in 1928.

I was aroused by a clod of earth striking at my feet. Then from above, I heard a sound of scrambling. The next moment a young man, with a final slide down the crumbling wall, alighted at my feet. It was Philip Wickson, though I did not know him at the time. He looked at me coolly and uttered a low whistle of surprise.

I was jolted awake by a clump of dirt hitting my feet. Then from above, I heard someone scrambling around. The next moment, a young man slid down the crumbling wall and landed at my feet. It was Philip Wickson, although I didn't know him then. He looked at me calmly and let out a low whistle of surprise.

“Well,” he said; and the next moment, cap in hand, he was saying, “I beg your pardon. I did not expect to find any one here.”

“Okay,” he said; and in the next moment, with his cap in hand, he added, “I’m sorry. I didn’t expect to see anyone here.”

I was not so cool. I was still a tyro so far as concerned knowing how to behave in desperate circumstances. Later on, when I was an international spy, I should have been less clumsy, I am sure. As it was, I scrambled to my feet and cried out the danger call.

I wasn't very cool. I was still a rookie when it came to knowing how to act in tough situations. Later, when I became an international spy, I would have definitely been more graceful. But at that moment, I got to my feet and shouted the danger signal.

“Why did you do that?” he asked, looking at me searchingly.

“Why did you do that?” he asked, looking at me intently.

It was evident that he had no suspicion of our presence when making the descent. I recognized this with relief.

It was clear that he had no idea we were there while he was coming down. I felt a sense of relief about this.

“For what purpose do you think I did it?” I countered. I was indeed clumsy in those days.

“For what purpose do you think I did it?” I replied. I was really clumsy back then.

“I don’t know,” he answered, shaking his head. “Unless you’ve got friends about. Anyway, you’ve got some explanations to make. I don’t like the look of it. You are trespassing. This is my father’s land, and—”

“I don’t know,” he said, shaking his head. “Unless you have friends around. Either way, you need to explain yourself. I don’t like how this looks. You’re trespassing. This is my dad’s land, and—”

But at that moment, Biedenbach, ever polite and gentle, said from behind him in a low voice, “Hands up, my young sir.”

But at that moment, Biedenbach, always polite and gentle, said from behind him in a low voice, “Hands up, my young sir.”

Young Wickson put his hands up first, then turned to confront Biedenbach, who held a thirty-thirty automatic rifle on him. Wickson was imperturbable.

Young Wickson raised his hands first, then faced Biedenbach, who was aiming a .30-30 automatic rifle at him. Wickson remained unfazed.

“Oh, ho,” he said, “a nest of revolutionists—and quite a hornet’s nest it would seem. Well, you won’t abide here long, I can tell you.”

“Oh, wow,” he said, “a group of revolutionaries—and quite the troublemaker's den it looks like. Well, you won’t be sticking around here for long, that’s for sure.”

“Maybe you’ll abide here long enough to reconsider that statement,” Biedenbach said quietly. “And in the meanwhile I must ask you to come inside with me.”

“Maybe you'll stay here long enough to rethink that statement,” Biedenbach said softly. “And in the meantime, I need to ask you to come inside with me.”

“Inside?” The young man was genuinely astonished. “Have you a catacomb here? I have heard of such things.”

“Inside?” The young man was truly shocked. “Do you have a catacomb here? I've heard about those.”

“Come and see,” Biedenbach answered with his adorable accent.

“Come and see,” Biedenbach replied with his charming accent.

“But it is unlawful,” was the protest.

"But that's illegal," was the protest.

“Yes, by your law,” the terrorist replied significantly. “But by our law, believe me, it is quite lawful. You must accustom yourself to the fact that you are in another world than the one of oppression and brutality in which you have lived.”

“Yes, by your law,” the terrorist replied meaningfully. “But by our law, trust me, it's perfectly legal. You need to get used to the idea that you’re in a different world than the one of oppression and brutality that you've lived in.”

“There is room for argument there,” Wickson muttered.

“There’s room for debate there,” Wickson muttered.

“Then stay with us and discuss it.”

“Then stay with us and talk about it.”

The young fellow laughed and followed his captor into the house. He was led into the inner cave-room, and one of the young comrades left to guard him, while we discussed the situation in the kitchen.

The young guy laughed and followed his captor into the house. He was taken into the inner cave-room, and one of the young friends stayed to watch him while we talked about the situation in the kitchen.

Biedenbach, with tears in his eyes, held that Wickson must die, and was quite relieved when we outvoted him and his horrible proposition. On the other hand, we could not dream of allowing the young oligarch to depart.

Biedenbach, with tears in his eyes, insisted that Wickson must die, and felt a sense of relief when we outvoted him and his awful suggestion. On the other hand, we couldn’t even think about letting the young oligarch go.

“I’ll tell you what to do,” Ernest said. “We’ll keep him and give him an education.”

“I’ll tell you what to do,” Ernest said. “We’ll keep him and educate him.”

“I bespeak the privilege, then, of enlightening him in jurisprudence,” Biedenbach cried.

“I ask for the chance to enlighten him in law,” Biedenbach exclaimed.

And so a decision was laughingly reached. We would keep Philip Wickson a prisoner and educate him in our ethics and sociology. But in the meantime there was work to be done. All trace of the young oligarch must be obliterated. There were the marks he had left when descending the crumbling wall of the hole. This task fell to Biedenbach, and, slung on a rope from above, he toiled cunningly for the rest of the day till no sign remained. Back up the canyon from the lip of the hole all marks were likewise removed. Then, at twilight, came John Carlson, who demanded Wickson’s shoes.

And so a decision was jokingly made. We would keep Philip Wickson captive and teach him our ethics and sociology. But in the meantime, there was work to do. We had to erase any trace of the young oligarch. There were the marks he had left while climbing down the crumbling wall of the pit. This job was assigned to Biedenbach, who, harnessed to a rope from above, worked skillfully for the rest of the day until no sign remained. Back up the canyon from the edge of the pit, all traces were similarly removed. Then, at dusk, John Carlson arrived and asked for Wickson’s shoes.

The young man did not want to give up his shoes, and even offered to fight for them, till he felt the horseshoer’s strength in Ernest’s hands. Carlson afterward reported several blisters and much grievous loss of skin due to the smallness of the shoes, but he succeeded in doing gallant work with them. Back from the lip of the hole, where ended the young man’s obliterated trial, Carlson put on the shoes and walked away to the left. He walked for miles, around knolls, over ridges and through canyons, and finally covered the trail in the running water of a creek-bed. Here he removed the shoes, and, still hiding trail for a distance, at last put on his own shoes. A week later Wickson got back his shoes.

The young man didn't want to give up his shoes, even offering to fight for them until he felt the horseshoer's strength in Ernest’s hands. Carlson later reported several blisters and a lot of painful skin loss due to the small size of the shoes, but he managed to do impressive work with them. Stepping back from the edge of the hole, where the young man's quest ended, Carlson put on the shoes and walked away to the left. He walked for miles, around hills, over ridges, and through canyons, eventually covering the trail in the flowing water of a creek bed. Here, he took off the shoes and, still concealing the trail for a distance, finally put on his own shoes. A week later, Wickson got his shoes back.

That night the hounds were out, and there was little sleep in the refuge. Next day, time and again, the baying hounds came down the canyon, plunged off to the left on the trail Carlson had made for them, and were lost to ear in the farther canyons high up the mountain. And all the time our men waited in the refuge, weapons in hand—automatic revolvers and rifles, to say nothing of half a dozen infernal machines of Biedenbach’s manufacture. A more surprised party of rescuers could not be imagined, had they ventured down into our hiding-place.

That night the hounds were out, and there was hardly any sleep in the shelter. The next day, over and over, the howling hounds came down the canyon, veered left along the path that Carlson had made for them, and vanished from earshot in the higher canyons up the mountain. Meanwhile, our men stayed in the shelter, weapons ready—automatic revolvers and rifles, not to mention half a dozen deadly devices made by Biedenbach. You couldn't imagine a more surprised group of rescuers had they dared to come into our hiding spot.

I have now given the true disappearance of Philip Wickson, one-time oligarch, and, later, comrade in the Revolution. For we converted him in the end. His mind was fresh and plastic, and by nature he was very ethical. Several months later we rode him, on one of his father’s horses, over Sonoma Mountains to Petaluma Creek and embarked him in a small fishing-launch. By easy stages we smuggled him along our underground railway to the Carmel refuge.

I have now revealed the real disappearance of Philip Wickson, a former oligarch and later, a fellow revolutionary. In the end, we managed to convert him. His mind was open and adaptable, and he was inherently very ethical. A few months later, we took him on one of his dad’s horses over the Sonoma Mountains to Petaluma Creek and put him on a small fishing launch. Gradually, we smuggled him through our underground network to the refuge in Carmel.

There he remained eight months, at the end of which time, for two reasons, he was loath to leave us. One reason was that he had fallen in love with Anna Roylston, and the other was that he had become one of us. It was not until he became convinced of the hopelessness of his love affair that he acceded to our wishes and went back to his father. Ostensibly an oligarch until his death, he was in reality one of the most valuable of our agents. Often and often has the Iron Heel been dumbfounded by the miscarriage of its plans and operations against us. If it but knew the number of its own members who are our agents, it would understand. Young Wickson never wavered in his loyalty to the Cause. In truth, his very death was incurred by his devotion to duty. In the great storm of 1927, while attending a meeting of our leaders, he contracted the pneumonia of which he died.[5]

There he stayed for eight months, at the end of which he was reluctant to leave us for two reasons. One reason was that he had fallen in love with Anna Roylston, and the other was that he had become one of us. It wasn't until he realized the hopelessness of his love that he agreed to our wishes and returned to his father. Officially an oligarch until his death, he was actually one of our most valuable agents. Time and again, the Iron Heel was baffled by the failure of its plans and operations against us. If it only knew how many of its own members were our agents, it would understand. Young Wickson never wavered in his loyalty to the Cause. In fact, his very death was a result of his dedication to duty. During the great storm of 1927, while attending a meeting of our leaders, he caught the pneumonia that ultimately led to his death.[5]

[5] The case of this young man was not unusual. Many young men of the Oligarchy, impelled by sense of right conduct, or their imaginations captured by the glory of the Revolution, ethically or romantically devoted their lives to it. In similar way, many sons of the Russian nobility played their parts in the earlier and protracted revolution in that country.

[5] This young man's story was not unique. Many young men from the Oligarchy, driven by a sense of what’s right or inspired by the glory of the Revolution, dedicated their lives to it, either out of ethical commitment or romantic idealism. Similarly, many sons of the Russian nobility contributed to the earlier and lengthy revolution in their country.

CHAPTER XXI.
THE ROARING ABYSMAL BEAST

During the long period of our stay in the refuge, we were kept closely in touch with what was happening in the world without, and we were learning thoroughly the strength of the Oligarchy with which we were at war. Out of the flux of transition the new institutions were forming more definitely and taking on the appearance and attributes of permanence. The oligarchs had succeeded in devising a governmental machine, as intricate as it was vast, that worked—and this despite all our efforts to clog and hamper.

During our extended time in the refuge, we stayed well-informed about what was happening in the world outside, and we were gaining a clear understanding of the power of the Oligarchy we were fighting against. Amid the chaos of change, new institutions were taking shape more clearly and starting to look and feel permanent. The oligarchs had managed to create a complex but effective government system that continued to function, even with all our attempts to obstruct it.

This was a surprise to many of the revolutionists. They had not conceived it possible. Nevertheless the work of the country went on. The men toiled in the mines and fields—perforce they were no more than slaves. As for the vital industries, everything prospered. The members of the great labor castes were contented and worked on merrily. For the first time in their lives they knew industrial peace. No more were they worried by slack times, strike and lockout, and the union label. They lived in more comfortable homes and in delightful cities of their own—delightful compared with the slums and ghettos in which they had formerly dwelt. They had better food to eat, less hours of labor, more holidays, and a greater amount and variety of interests and pleasures. And for their less fortunate brothers and sisters, the unfavored laborers, the driven people of the abyss, they cared nothing. An age of selfishness was dawning upon mankind. And yet this is not altogether true. The labor castes were honeycombed by our agents—men whose eyes saw, beyond the belly-need, the radiant figure of liberty and brotherhood.

This surprised many of the revolutionaries. They hadn't thought it was possible. Still, the work in the country continued. The men worked in the mines and fields—essentially, they were just slaves. As for the key industries, everything thrived. The members of the large labor classes were content and worked happily. For the first time in their lives, they experienced industrial peace. They no longer had to worry about slow periods, strikes, or union issues. They lived in more comfortable homes and enjoyable cities—much better than the slums and ghettos they had lived in before. They had better food, shorter work hours, more holidays, and a wider variety of interests and pleasures. And for their less fortunate brothers and sisters, the unfortunate laborers, the oppressed people at the bottom, they didn’t care at all. A time of selfishness was beginning for humanity. Yet, this isn’t entirely true. The labor classes were infiltrated by our agents—people who looked beyond basic needs and saw the bright promise of freedom and brotherhood.

Another great institution that had taken form and was working smoothly was the Mercenaries. This body of soldiers had been evolved out of the old regular army and was now a million strong, to say nothing of the colonial forces. The Mercenaries constituted a race apart. They dwelt in cities of their own which were practically self-governed, and they were granted many privileges. By them a large portion of the perplexing surplus was consumed. They were losing all touch and sympathy with the rest of the people, and, in fact, were developing their own class morality and consciousness. And yet we had thousands of our agents among them.[1]

Another significant organization that had formed and was functioning well was the Mercenaries. This group of soldiers had evolved from the old regular army and now numbered a million strong, not including the colonial forces. The Mercenaries were a separate breed. They lived in their own cities, which were almost self-governing, and were granted many privileges. They consumed a large portion of the complicated surplus. They were losing all connection and empathy with the rest of the population and were, in fact, developing their own class morality and awareness. And yet, we had thousands of our agents among them.[1]

[1] The Mercenaries, in the last days of the Iron Heel, played an important rôle. They constituted the balance of power in the struggles between the labor castes and the oligarchs, and now to one side and now to the other, threw their strength according to the play of intrigue and conspiracy.

[1] The Mercenaries, during the final days of the Iron Heel, played a crucial role. They were the deciding factor in the conflicts between the labor classes and the oligarchs, shifting their support from one side to the other based on the unfolding intrigue and conspiracy.

The oligarchs themselves were going through a remarkable and, it must be confessed, unexpected development. As a class, they disciplined themselves. Every member had his work to do in the world, and this work he was compelled to do. There were no more idle-rich young men. Their strength was used to give united strength to the Oligarchy. They served as leaders of troops and as lieutenants and captains of industry. They found careers in applied science, and many of them became great engineers. They went into the multitudinous divisions of the government, took service in the colonial possessions, and by tens of thousands went into the various secret services. They were, I may say, apprenticed to education, to art, to the church, to science, to literature; and in those fields they served the important function of moulding the thought-processes of the nation in the direction of the perpetuity of the Oligarchy.

The oligarchs were experiencing a significant and, it has to be said, surprising shift. As a group, they held each other accountable. Every member had a role in society that they had to fulfill. There were no more idle rich young men. Their collective energy was channeled to strengthen the Oligarchy. They took on roles as military leaders and as managers in business. Many pursued careers in applied science and became notable engineers. They entered various government sectors, served in colonial territories, and tens of thousands joined different secret services. They were, I should mention, committed to education, the arts, the church, science, and literature; and in these areas, they played a crucial role in shaping the nation's mindset to ensure the Oligarchy's continued existence.

They were taught, and later they in turn taught, that what they were doing was right. They assimilated the aristocratic idea from the moment they began, as children, to receive impressions of the world. The aristocratic idea was woven into the making of them until it became bone of them and flesh of them. They looked upon themselves as wild-animal trainers, rulers of beasts. From beneath their feet rose always the subterranean rumbles of revolt. Violent death ever stalked in their midst; bomb and knife and bullet were looked upon as so many fangs of the roaring abysmal beast they must dominate if humanity were to persist. They were the saviours of humanity, and they regarded themselves as heroic and sacrificing laborers for the highest good.

They were taught, and later taught others, that what they were doing was right. They absorbed the aristocratic idea from the moment they began, as kids, to take in impressions of the world. The aristocratic idea was woven into their development until it became a fundamental part of who they were. They saw themselves as trainers of wild animals, rulers of beasts. Under their feet, there was always the underground rumble of rebellion. Violent death constantly lurked among them; bombs, knives, and bullets were seen as just more fangs of the terrifying beast they had to control if humanity was to survive. They considered themselves the saviors of humanity, viewing themselves as heroic and selfless workers for the greater good.

They, as a class, believed that they alone maintained civilization. It was their belief that if ever they weakened, the great beast would ingulf them and everything of beauty and wonder and joy and good in its cavernous and slime-dripping maw. Without them, anarchy would reign and humanity would drop backward into the primitive night out of which it had so painfully emerged. The horrid picture of anarchy was held always before their child’s eyes until they, in turn, obsessed by this cultivated fear, held the picture of anarchy before the eyes of the children that followed them. This was the beast to be stamped upon, and the highest duty of the aristocrat was to stamp upon it. In short, they alone, by their unremitting toil and sacrifice, stood between weak humanity and the all-devouring beast; and they believed it, firmly believed it.

They believed, as a group, that only they kept civilization going. They thought that if they ever weakened, the great beast would swallow them and everything beautiful, wonderful, joyful, and good in its gaping, slimy mouth. Without them, chaos would take over, and humanity would fall back into the primitive darkness from which it had so painfully emerged. The terrifying image of chaos was always kept in front of their children's eyes until they, too, became obsessed with this fear and showed the same image of chaos to the children who came after them. This was the beast to be conquered, and the highest duty of the aristocrat was to conquer it. In short, only they, through their relentless hard work and sacrifice, stood between fragile humanity and the all-consuming beast; and they believed it, firmly believed it.

I cannot lay too great stress upon this high ethical righteousness of the whole oligarch class. This has been the strength of the Iron Heel, and too many of the comrades have been slow or loath to realize it. Many of them have ascribed the strength of the Iron Heel to its system of reward and punishment. This is a mistake. Heaven and hell may be the prime factors of zeal in the religion of a fanatic; but for the great majority of the religious, heaven and hell are incidental to right and wrong. Love of the right, desire for the right, unhappiness with anything less than the right—in short, right conduct, is the prime factor of religion. And so with the Oligarchy. Prisons, banishment and degradation, honors and palaces and wonder-cities, are all incidental. The great driving force of the oligarchs is the belief that they are doing right. Never mind the exceptions, and never mind the oppression and injustice in which the Iron Heel was conceived. All is granted. The point is that the strength of the Oligarchy today lies in its satisfied conception of its own righteousness.[2]

I can't emphasize enough the high moral integrity of the entire oligarch class. This has been the foundation of the Iron Heel, and too many of our comrades have been slow or unwilling to see it. Many believe the Iron Heel's power comes from its system of rewards and punishments. That's a mistake. For fanatics, heaven and hell might be the main motivators in their faith, but for most religious people, heaven and hell are secondary to what is right and wrong. A love for what is right, a desire to do what is right, and dissatisfaction with anything less than right—these are the true driving forces behind morality. The same goes for the Oligarchy. Prisons, exile, and humiliation, along with honors, palaces, and magnificent cities, are all just side notes. The real motivation for the oligarchs is their belief that they are doing what is right. Forget the exceptions, and forget the oppression and injustice that gave rise to the Iron Heel. That's all acknowledged. The key point is that the strength of the Oligarchy today resides in its comfortable belief in its own righteousness.[2]

[2] Out of the ethical incoherency and inconsistency of capitalism, the oligarchs emerged with a new ethics, coherent and definite, sharp and severe as steel, the most absurd and unscientific and at the same time the most potent ever possessed by any tyrant class. The oligarchs believed their ethics, in spite of the fact that biology and evolution gave them the lie; and, because of their faith, for three centuries they were able to hold back the mighty tide of human progress—a spectacle, profound, tremendous, puzzling to the metaphysical moralist, and one that to the materialist is the cause of many doubts and reconsiderations.

[2] From the ethical contradictions and inconsistencies of capitalism, the oligarchs arose with a new set of ethics, clear and rigid, sharp and unyielding like steel—absurd, unscientific, and yet the most powerful ever held by any tyrant class. The oligarchs truly believed in their ethics, even though biology and evolution contradicted them; and because of their belief, they managed to block the significant wave of human progress for three centuries—a situation that is profound, immense, and confusing to the metaphysical moralist, and one that causes many doubts and re-evaluations for the materialist.

For that matter, the strength of the Revolution, during these frightful twenty years, has resided in nothing else than the sense of righteousness. In no other way can be explained our sacrifices and martyrdoms. For no other reason did Rudolph Mendenhall flame out his soul for the Cause and sing his wild swan-song that last night of life. For no other reason did Hurlbert die under torture, refusing to the last to betray his comrades. For no other reason has Anna Roylston refused blessed motherhood. For no other reason has John Carlson been the faithful and unrewarded custodian of the Glen Ellen Refuge. It does not matter, young or old, man or woman, high or low, genius or clod, go where one will among the comrades of the Revolution, the motor-force will be found to be a great and abiding desire for the right.

For that matter, the strength of the Revolution, during these terrifying twenty years, has come from nothing other than the sense of righteousness. Our sacrifices and martyrdoms can only be explained this way. It’s the reason Rudolph Mendenhall poured out his soul for the Cause and sang his wild swan-song that last night of his life. It’s the reason Hurlbert died under torture, refusing to betray his comrades until the end. It’s the reason Anna Roylston chose to forgo motherhood. It’s the reason John Carlson has been the loyal and unrecognized caretaker of the Glen Ellen Refuge. It doesn’t matter if someone is young or old, man or woman, high or low, genius or fool; wherever one goes among the comrades of the Revolution, the driving force will always be a deep and lasting desire for what is right.

But I have run away from my narrative. Ernest and I well understood, before we left the refuge, how the strength of the Iron Heel was developing. The labor castes, the Mercenaries, and the great hordes of secret agents and police of various sorts were all pledged to the Oligarchy. In the main, and ignoring the loss of liberty, they were better off than they had been. On the other hand, the great helpless mass of the population, the people of the abyss, was sinking into a brutish apathy of content with misery. Whenever strong proletarians asserted their strength in the midst of the mass, they were drawn away from the mass by the oligarchs and given better conditions by being made members of the labor castes or of the Mercenaries. Thus discontent was lulled and the proletariat robbed of its natural leaders.

But I’ve strayed from my story. Ernest and I understood, before we left the refuge, how the Iron Heel's power was growing. The labor castes, the Mercenaries, and the large groups of secret agents and various kinds of police were all loyal to the Oligarchy. Overall, and aside from losing their freedom, they were better off than they had been. Meanwhile, the large, helpless segment of the population, the people at the bottom, was descending into a dull acceptance of their suffering. Whenever strong workers tried to assert their strength among the masses, the oligarchs would pull them away and offer them better conditions in exchange for joining the labor castes or the Mercenaries. This way, discontent was quieted, and the working class was deprived of its natural leaders.

The condition of the people of the abyss was pitiable. Common school education, so far as they were concerned, had ceased. They lived like beasts in great squalid labor-ghettos, festering in misery and degradation. All their old liberties were gone. They were labor-slaves. Choice of work was denied them. Likewise was denied them the right to move from place to place, or the right to bear or possess arms. They were not land serfs like the farmers. They were machine-serfs and labor-serfs. When unusual needs arose for them, such as the building of the great highways and air-lines, of canals, tunnels, subways, and fortifications, levies were made on the labor-ghettos, and tens of thousands of serfs, willy-nilly, were transported to the scene of operations. Great armies of them are toiling now at the building of Ardis, housed in wretched barracks where family life cannot exist, and where decency is displaced by dull bestiality. In all truth, there in the labor-ghettos is the roaring abysmal beast the oligarchs fear so dreadfully—but it is the beast of their own making. In it they will not let the ape and tiger die.

The condition of the people in the abyss was tragic. Basic education for them had come to a halt. They lived like animals in filthy labor camps, soaked in misery and degradation. All their previous freedoms were stripped away. They were slaves to labor. They had no choice in what work they did. They were also denied the right to move freely or to own or carry weapons. They weren’t like the land serfs who worked the farms. They were serfs tied to machines and labor. When there was a need for them to help with projects like building highways, air routes, canals, tunnels, subways, and fortifications, labor was demanded from the labor camps, and tens of thousands of workers were forced to the sites. Huge groups of them are working now on the construction of Ardis, living in terrible barracks where family life is impossible, and where dignity is replaced by brutal behavior. Truly, in the labor camps is the roaring beast that the oligarchs fear so much—but it is a beast of their own creation. In it, they refuse to let go of the savage instincts.

And just now the word has gone forth that new levies are being imposed for the building of Asgard, the projected wonder-city that will far exceed Ardis when the latter is completed.[3] We of the Revolution will go on with that great work, but it will not be done by the miserable serfs. The walls and towers and shafts of that fair city will arise to the sound of singing, and into its beauty and wonder will be woven, not sighs and groans, but music and laughter.

And just now the news has spread that new taxes are being enforced for the construction of Asgard, the planned wonder-city that will far surpass Ardis once it’s finished.[3] We of the Revolution will continue with that great project, but it won’t be built by the miserable serfs. The walls, towers, and spires of that beautiful city will rise to the sound of singing, and its beauty and wonder will be filled with music and laughter, not sighs and groans.

[3] Ardis was completed in 1942 A.D., Asgard was not completed until 1984 A.D. It was fifty-two years in the building, during which time a permanent army of half a million serfs was employed. At times these numbers swelled to over a million—without any account being taken of the hundreds of thousands of the labor castes and the artists.

[3] Ardis was finished in 1942, while Asgard wasn't completed until 1984. It took fifty-two years to build, during which a permanent workforce of half a million serfs was employed. At times, this number grew to over a million—without counting the hundreds of thousands of laborers and artists.

Ernest was madly impatient to be out in the world and doing, for our ill-fated First Revolt, that had miscarried in the Chicago Commune, was ripening fast. Yet he possessed his soul with patience, and during this time of his torment, when Hadly, who had been brought for the purpose from Illinois, made him over into another man[4] he revolved great plans in his head for the organization of the learned proletariat, and for the maintenance of at least the rudiments of education amongst the people of the abyss—all this of course in the event of the First Revolt being a failure.

Ernest was incredibly impatient to get out into the world and take action, as our doomed First Revolt, which had failed in the Chicago Commune, was progressing quickly. Yet he kept himself composed, and during this time of his struggle, when Hadly had been brought in from Illinois to transform him into a different person[4] he developed ambitious plans in his mind for organizing the educated working class and for ensuring that at least some basic education was available to the people at the bottom—this was all, of course, in case the First Revolt ended up being a failure.

[4] Among the Revolutionists were many surgeons, and in vivisection they attained marvellous proficiency. In Avis Everhard’s words, they could literally make a man over. To them the elimination of scars and disfigurements was a trivial detail. They changed the features with such microscopic care that no traces were left of their handiwork. The nose was a favorite organ to work upon. Skin-grafting and hair-transplanting were among their commonest devices. The changes in expression they accomplished were wizard-like. Eyes and eyebrows, lips, mouths, and ears, were radically altered. By cunning operations on tongue, throat, larynx, and nasal cavities a man’s whole enunciation and manner of speech could be changed. Desperate times give need for desperate remedies, and the surgeons of the Revolution rose to the need. Among other things, they could increase an adult’s stature by as much as four or five inches and decrease it by one or two inches. What they did is to-day a lost art. We have no need for it.

[4] Among the Revolutionists were many surgeons, and in vivisection, they became incredibly skilled. In Avis Everhard’s words, they could literally reshape a person. For them, removing scars and imperfections was just a minor detail. They altered features with such precision that no signs of their work remained. The nose was a common focus for their procedures. Skin grafting and hair transplanting were among their most frequent techniques. The changes in expression they achieved were almost magical. Eyes and eyebrows, lips, mouths, and ears were dramatically transformed. Through clever procedures on the tongue, throat, larynx, and nasal passages, a person’s entire way of speaking could be changed. Desperate times call for desperate measures, and the surgeons of the Revolution responded to the need. Among other things, they could increase an adult’s height by four to five inches and reduce it by one to two inches. What they did is now a lost art. We have no need for it.

It was not until January, 1917, that we left the refuge. All had been arranged. We took our place at once as agents-provocateurs in the scheme of the Iron Heel. I was supposed to be Ernest’s sister. By oligarchs and comrades on the inside who were high in authority, place had been made for us, we were in possession of all necessary documents, and our pasts were accounted for. With help on the inside, this was not difficult, for in that shadow-world of secret service identity was nebulous. Like ghosts the agents came and went, obeying commands, fulfilling duties, following clews, making their reports often to officers they never saw or cooperating with other agents they had never seen before and would never see again.

It wasn't until January 1917 that we left the safe house. Everything had been arranged. We quickly assumed our roles as provocateurs in the Iron Heel scheme. I was meant to be Ernest’s sister. Those in power among the oligarchs and comrades on the inside had made space for us; we had all the necessary documents, and our backgrounds were covered. With inside help, this wasn’t hard, because in that shadowy world of secret services, identities were fluid. Agents moved in and out like ghosts, following orders, completing tasks, tracking leads, often reporting to officers they never met or working with other agents they had never encountered before and would never see again.

CHAPTER XXII.
THE CHICAGO COMMUNE

As agents-provocateurs, not alone were we able to travel a great deal, but our very work threw us in contact with the proletariat and with our comrades, the revolutionists. Thus we were in both camps at the same time, ostensibly serving the Iron Heel and secretly working with all our might for the Cause. There were many of us in the various secret services of the Oligarchy, and despite the shakings-up and reorganizations the secret services have undergone, they have never been able to weed all of us out.

As agents provocateurs, not only were we able to travel a lot, but our work also put us in touch with the working class and our fellow revolutionaries. So, we were part of both sides at the same time, publicly serving the Iron Heel while secretly putting all our effort into the Cause. Many of us were in different secret services of the Oligarchy, and despite all the shake-ups and reorganizations the secret services have gone through, they have never managed to root all of us out.

Ernest had largely planned the First Revolt, and the date set had been somewhere early in the spring of 1918. In the fall of 1917 we were not ready; much remained to be done, and when the Revolt was precipitated, of course it was doomed to failure. The plot of necessity was frightfully intricate, and anything premature was sure to destroy it. This the Iron Heel foresaw and laid its schemes accordingly.

Ernest had mostly organized the First Revolt, and it was set for early spring 1918. By fall 1917, we weren't prepared; there was still a lot to finish, and when the Revolt happened prematurely, it was destined to fail. The plan was extremely complicated, and any early action was bound to ruin it. The Iron Heel anticipated this and devised its plans accordingly.

We had planned to strike our first blow at the nervous system of the Oligarchy. The latter had remembered the general strike, and had guarded against the defection of the telegraphers by installing wireless stations, in the control of the Mercenaries. We, in turn, had countered this move. When the signal was given, from every refuge, all over the land, and from the cities, and towns, and barracks, devoted comrades were to go forth and blow up the wireless stations. Thus at the first shock would the Iron Heel be brought to earth and lie practically dismembered.

We had planned to launch our first attack on the Oligarchy's nervous system. They had recalled the general strike and had taken precautions against the telegraphers abandoning them by setting up wireless stations controlled by the Mercenaries. We, in response, had countered this strategy. When the signal was given, from every hiding place across the country, and from the cities, towns, and barracks, dedicated comrades were to emerge and destroy the wireless stations. This would be the moment when the Iron Heel would be brought down and left practically dismantled.

At the same moment, other comrades were to blow up the bridges and tunnels and disrupt the whole network of railroads. Still further, other groups of comrades, at the signal, were to seize the officers of the Mercenaries and the police, as well as all Oligarchs of unusual ability or who held executive positions. Thus would the leaders of the enemy be removed from the field of the local battles that would inevitably be fought all over the land.

At the same time, other team members were set to blow up the bridges and tunnels, disrupting the entire railroad network. Additionally, other groups were to take action at the signal, capturing the officers of the Mercenaries and the police, along with any skilled Oligarchs or those in leadership roles. This way, the enemy’s leaders would be taken out of the picture during the local battles that would surely take place across the country.

Many things were to occur simultaneously when the signal went forth. The Canadian and Mexican patriots, who were far stronger than the Iron Heel dreamed, were to duplicate our tactics. Then there were comrades (these were the women, for the men would be busy elsewhere) who were to post the proclamations from our secret presses. Those of us in the higher employ of the Iron Heel were to proceed immediately to make confusion and anarchy in all our departments. Inside the Mercenaries were thousands of our comrades. Their work was to blow up the magazines and to destroy the delicate mechanism of all the war machinery. In the cities of the Mercenaries and of the labor castes similar programmes of disruption were to be carried out.

Many things were set to happen at the same time when the signal was given. The Canadian and Mexican patriots, who were much stronger than the Iron Heel anticipated, were going to copy our tactics. Then there were the comrades (the women, since the men would be occupied elsewhere) who were going to post the proclamations from our secret printing presses. Those of us in higher positions within the Iron Heel were to immediately create confusion and chaos in all our departments. Inside the Mercenaries, there were thousands of our comrades. Their job was to blow up the munitions and to dismantle the intricate workings of all the war machinery. In the cities controlled by the Mercenaries and the labor castes, similar plans for disruption were set to be carried out.

In short, a sudden, colossal, stunning blow was to be struck. Before the paralyzed Oligarchy could recover itself, its end would have come. It would have meant terrible times and great loss of life, but no revolutionist hesitates at such things. Why, we even depended much, in our plan, on the unorganized people of the abyss. They were to be loosed on the palaces and cities of the masters. Never mind the destruction of life and property. Let the abysmal brute roar and the police and Mercenaries slay. The abysmal brute would roar anyway, and the police and Mercenaries would slay anyway. It would merely mean that various dangers to us were harmlessly destroying one another. In the meantime we would be doing our own work, largely unhampered, and gaining control of all the machinery of society.

In short, a sudden, massive, shocking blow was about to be dealt. Before the paralyzed Oligarchy could regroup, it would meet its end. This would mean devastating times and significant loss of life, but no revolutionary hesitates at such outcomes. In fact, our plan heavily relied on the disorganized masses from the depths. They were meant to be unleashed on the palaces and cities of the elite. Forget about the destruction of life and property. Let the chaotic masses roar while the police and mercenaries act violently. The chaotic masses would roar regardless, and the police and mercenaries would act violently no matter what. It would simply mean that various threats to us were innocently taking each other out. Meanwhile, we would be going about our work, largely unimpeded, and gaining control of all the machinery of society.

Such was our plan, every detail of which had to be worked out in secret, and, as the day drew near, communicated to more and more comrades. This was the danger point, the stretching of the conspiracy. But that danger-point was never reached. Through its spy-system the Iron Heel got wind of the Revolt and prepared to teach us another of its bloody lessons. Chicago was the devoted city selected for the instruction, and well were we instructed.

Such was our plan, every detail of which had to be worked out in secret, and, as the day approached, shared with more and more comrades. This was the risky moment, the expansion of the conspiracy. But that risk was never realized. Through its spy network, the Iron Heel caught wind of the Revolt and got ready to teach us another bloody lesson. Chicago was the chosen city for this lesson, and we learned it well.

Chicago[1] was the ripest of all—Chicago which of old time was the city of blood and which was to earn anew its name. There the revolutionary spirit was strong. Too many bitter strikes had been curbed there in the days of capitalism for the workers to forget and forgive. Even the labor castes of the city were alive with revolt. Too many heads had been broken in the early strikes. Despite their changed and favorable conditions, their hatred for the master class had not died. This spirit had infected the Mercenaries, of which three regiments in particular were ready to come over to us en masse.

Chicago[1] was the most intense of all—Chicago, which once was the city of blood and would earn that name again. The revolutionary spirit was strong there. Too many bitter strikes had been suppressed during the days of capitalism for the workers to forget and forgive. Even the labor groups in the city were buzzing with unrest. Too many people had been hurt in the early strikes. Despite their changed and better circumstances, their hatred for the ruling class had not faded. This spirit had spread to the Mercenaries, and three regiments in particular were ready to join us en masse.

[1] Chicago was the industrial inferno of the nineteenth century A.D. A curious anecdote has come down to us of John Burns, a great English labor leader and one time member of the British Cabinet. In Chicago, while on a visit to the United States, he was asked by a newspaper reporter for his opinion of that city. “Chicago,” he answered, “is a pocket edition of hell.” Some time later, as he was going aboard his steamer to sail to England, he was approached by another reporter, who wanted to know if he had changed his opinion of Chicago. “Yes, I have,” was his reply. “My present opinion is that hell is a pocket edition of Chicago.”

[1] Chicago was the industrial hub of the nineteenth century. A curious story has come down to us about John Burns, a prominent English labor leader and former member of the British Cabinet. While visiting the United States, a newspaper reporter asked him what he thought of Chicago. “Chicago,” he replied, “is a small version of hell.” Some time later, as he was getting on his ship to return to England, another reporter approached him to see if he had changed his mind about Chicago. “Yes, I have,” he said. “My current opinion is that hell is a small version of Chicago.”

Chicago had always been the storm-centre of the conflict between labor and capital, a city of street-battles and violent death, with a class-conscious capitalist organization and a class-conscious workman organization, where, in the old days, the very school-teachers were formed into labor unions and affiliated with the hod-carriers and brick-layers in the American Federation of Labor. And Chicago became the storm-centre of the premature First Revolt.

Chicago had always been the focal point of the struggle between labor and capital, a city of street fights and violent deaths, with a class-aware capitalist group and a class-aware workers' group, where, back in the day, even the school teachers were organized into labor unions and teamed up with hod carriers and bricklayers in the American Federation of Labor. And Chicago became the epicenter of the early First Revolt.

The trouble was precipitated by the Iron Heel. It was cleverly done. The whole population, including the favored labor castes, was given a course of outrageous treatment. Promises and agreements were broken, and most drastic punishments visited upon even petty offenders. The people of the abyss were tormented out of their apathy. In fact, the Iron Heel was preparing to make the abysmal beast roar. And hand in hand with this, in all precautionary measures in Chicago, the Iron Heel was inconceivably careless. Discipline was relaxed among the Mercenaries that remained, while many regiments had been withdrawn and sent to various parts of the country.

The trouble was caused by the Iron Heel. It was done in a clever way. The entire population, including the privileged labor classes, was subjected to outrageous treatment. Promises and agreements were broken, and severe punishments were imposed on even minor offenders. The people at the bottom were pushed out of their indifference. In fact, the Iron Heel was getting ready to make the downtrodden rise up. At the same time, in all precautionary measures in Chicago, the Iron Heel was surprisingly reckless. Discipline was loosened among the Mercenaries that stayed, while many regiments were pulled back and sent to different parts of the country.

It did not take long to carry out this programme—only several weeks. We of the Revolution caught vague rumors of the state of affairs, but had nothing definite enough for an understanding. In fact, we thought it was a spontaneous spirit of revolt that would require careful curbing on our part, and never dreamed that it was deliberately manufactured—and it had been manufactured so secretly, from the very innermost circle of the Iron Heel, that we had got no inkling. The counter-plot was an able achievement, and ably carried out.

It didn't take long to implement this plan—only a few weeks. We, the Revolutionaries, heard vague rumors about what was happening, but nothing clear enough to truly understand. In fact, we believed it was a spontaneous uprising that would need careful management on our part, and we never imagined it was being intentionally orchestrated—and it had been orchestrated so secretly, right from the innermost circle of the Iron Heel, that we had no clue. The counter-plot was a skillful accomplishment, and it was executed effectively.

I was in New York when I received the order to proceed immediately to Chicago. The man who gave me the order was one of the oligarchs, I could tell that by his speech, though I did not know his name nor see his face. His instructions were too clear for me to make a mistake. Plainly I read between the lines that our plot had been discovered, that we had been countermined. The explosion was ready for the flash of powder, and countless agents of the Iron Heel, including me, either on the ground or being sent there, were to supply that flash. I flatter myself that I maintained my composure under the keen eye of the oligarch, but my heart was beating madly. I could almost have shrieked and flown at his throat with my naked hands before his final, cold-blooded instructions were given.

I was in New York when I got the order to head straight to Chicago. The guy who gave me the order was one of the oligarchs; I could tell by how he spoke, even though I didn't know his name or see his face. His instructions were too clear for me to misunderstand. I clearly understood that our plan had been discovered and that we had been sabotaged. The explosion was ready to go off at any moment, and countless agents of the Iron Heel, including me, either already there or being sent, were supposed to provide that trigger. I like to think that I kept my cool under the sharp gaze of the oligarch, but my heart was racing. I could have almost screamed and lunged at him with my bare hands before he delivered his final, cold-blooded orders.

Once out of his presence, I calculated the time. I had just the moments to spare, if I were lucky, to get in touch with some local leader before catching my train. Guarding against being trailed, I made a rush of it for the Emergency Hospital. Luck was with me, and I gained access at once to comrade Galvin, the surgeon-in-chief. I started to gasp out my information, but he stopped me.

Once I was out of his sight, I checked the time. I barely had a few moments, if I was lucky, to reach out to a local leader before I had to catch my train. To avoid being followed, I hurried to the Emergency Hospital. I got lucky and was able to see comrade Galvin, the head surgeon, right away. I began to quickly share my information, but he interrupted me.

“I already know,” he said quietly, though his Irish eyes were flashing. “I knew what you had come for. I got the word fifteen minutes ago, and I have already passed it along. Everything shall be done here to keep the comrades quiet. Chicago is to be sacrificed, but it shall be Chicago alone.”

“I already know,” he said quietly, though his Irish eyes were flashing. “I knew what you were here for. I got the message fifteen minutes ago, and I’ve already passed it along. Everything will be done here to keep the comrades quiet. Chicago is to be sacrificed, but it will only be Chicago.”

“Have you tried to get word to Chicago?” I asked.

“Have you tried to send a message to Chicago?” I asked.

He shook his head. “No telegraphic communication. Chicago is shut off. It’s going to be hell there.”

He shook his head. “No telegraph communication. Chicago is cut off. It’s going to be a nightmare there.”

He paused a moment, and I saw his white hands clinch. Then he burst out:

He paused for a moment, and I noticed his white hands clench. Then he exclaimed:

“By God! I wish I were going to be there!”

“By God! I wish I could be there!”

“There is yet a chance to stop it,” I said, “if nothing happens to the train and I can get there in time. Or if some of the other secret-service comrades who have learned the truth can get there in time.”

“There’s still a chance to stop it,” I said, “if nothing happens to the train and I can get there in time. Or if some of the other secret-service members who know the truth can make it there in time.”

“You on the inside were caught napping this time,” he said.

“You on the inside were caught sleeping this time,” he said.

I nodded my head humbly.

I nodded my head.

“It was very secret,” I answered. “Only the inner chiefs could have known up to to-day. We haven’t yet penetrated that far, so we couldn’t escape being kept in the dark. If only Ernest were here. Maybe he is in Chicago now, and all is well.”

“It was really confidential,” I replied. “Only the top leaders could have known until now. We haven’t gotten that far yet, so we couldn’t avoid being left in the dark. If only Ernest were here. Maybe he’s in Chicago right now, and everything is okay.”

Dr. Galvin shook his head. “The last news I heard of him was that he had been sent to Boston or New Haven. This secret service for the enemy must hamper him a lot, but it’s better than lying in a refuge.”

Dr. Galvin shook his head. “The last I heard about him was that he was sent to Boston or New Haven. This secret service for the enemy must be a real hassle for him, but it’s better than just hiding out.”

I started to go, and Galvin wrung my hand.

I started to leave, and Galvin shook my hand.

“Keep a stout heart,” were his parting words. “What if the First Revolt is lost? There will be a second, and we will be wiser then. Good-by and good luck. I don’t know whether I’ll ever see you again. It’s going to be hell there, but I’d give ten years of my life for your chance to be in it.”

“Stay strong,” were his last words. “So what if the First Revolt doesn’t succeed? There will be a second, and we’ll learn from this. Goodbye and good luck. I don’t know if I’ll ever see you again. It’s going to be tough there, but I’d trade ten years of my life for your opportunity to be a part of it.”

The Twentieth Century[2] left New York at six in the evening, and was supposed to arrive at Chicago at seven next morning. But it lost time that night. We were running behind another train. Among the travellers in my Pullman was comrade Hartman, like myself in the secret service of the Iron Heel. He it was who told me of the train that immediately preceded us. It was an exact duplicate of our train, though it contained no passengers. The idea was that the empty train should receive the disaster were an attempt made to blow up the Twentieth Century. For that matter there were very few people on the train—only a baker’s dozen in our car.

The Twentieth Century[2] left New York at six in the evening and was expected to arrive in Chicago at seven the next morning. However, we lost time that night because we were trailing another train. Among the passengers in my Pullman was my colleague Hartman, who, like me, worked in the secret service of the Iron Heel. He informed me about the train that had just left before us. It was an exact replica of our train, but it had no passengers. The plan was for the empty train to take the impact in case there was an attempt to blow up the Twentieth Century. In fact, there were very few people on our train—only about a dozen in our car.

[2] This was reputed to be the fastest train in the world then. It was quite a famous train.

[2] This was said to be the fastest train in the world at that time. It was quite a famous train.

“There must be some big men on board,” Hartman concluded. “I noticed a private car on the rear.”

“There must be some important people on board,” Hartman concluded. “I saw a private car at the back.”

Night had fallen when we made our first change of engine, and I walked down the platform for a breath of fresh air and to see what I could see. Through the windows of the private car I caught a glimpse of three men whom I recognized. Hartman was right. One of the men was General Altendorff; and the other two were Mason and Vanderbold, the brains of the inner circle of the Oligarchy’s secret service.

Night had set in when we made our first engine switch, and I strolled down the platform for some fresh air and to see what I could find. Through the windows of the private car, I spotted three men I recognized. Hartman was right. One of them was General Altendorff, and the other two were Mason and Vanderbold, the masterminds of the inner circle of the Oligarchy’s secret service.

It was a quiet moonlight night, but I tossed restlessly and could not sleep. At five in the morning I dressed and abandoned my bed.

It was a calm night under the moonlight, but I tossed and turned, unable to sleep. At five in the morning, I got dressed and left my bed.

I asked the maid in the dressing-room how late the train was, and she told me two hours. She was a mulatto woman, and I noticed that her face was haggard, with great circles under the eyes, while the eyes themselves were wide with some haunting fear.

I asked the maid in the dressing room how late the train was, and she told me it was two hours late. She was a mixed-race woman, and I noticed her face looked worn out, with dark circles under her eyes, while her eyes themselves were wide with some lingering fear.

“What is the matter?” I asked.

"What's going on?" I asked.

“Nothing, miss; I didn’t sleep well, I guess,” was her reply.

“Nothing, miss; I guess I just didn’t sleep well,” was her reply.

I looked at her closely, and tried her with one of our signals. She responded, and I made sure of her.

I stared at her intently and used one of our signals. She reacted, and I confirmed it.

“Something terrible is going to happen in Chicago,” she said. “There’s that fake[3] train in front of us. That and the troop-trains have made us late.”

“Something bad is going to happen in Chicago,” she said. “There’s that fake[3] train in front of us. That and the troop trains have made us late.”

[3] False.

False.

“Troop-trains?” I queried.

"Troop trains?" I asked.

She nodded her head. “The line is thick with them. We’ve been passing them all night. And they’re all heading for Chicago. And bringing them over the air-line—that means business.

She nodded. “The line is full of them. We’ve been passing them all night. And they’re all going to Chicago. And bringing them over the air-line—that means business.

“I’ve a lover in Chicago,” she added apologetically. “He’s one of us, and he’s in the Mercenaries, and I’m afraid for him.”

“I have a partner in Chicago,” she said, sounding sorry. “He’s one of us, in the Mercenaries, and I’m worried about him.”

Poor girl. Her lover was in one of the three disloyal regiments.

Poor girl. Her boyfriend was in one of the three treacherous regiments.

Hartman and I had breakfast together in the dining car, and I forced myself to eat. The sky had clouded, and the train rushed on like a sullen thunderbolt through the gray pall of advancing day. The very negroes that waited on us knew that something terrible was impending. Oppression sat heavily upon them; the lightness of their natures had ebbed out of them; they were slack and absent-minded in their service, and they whispered gloomily to one another in the far end of the car next to the kitchen. Hartman was hopeless over the situation.

Hartman and I had breakfast together in the dining car, and I forced myself to eat. The sky had turned cloudy, and the train rushed on like a dark thunderbolt through the gray blanket of morning. The waitstaff knew that something awful was coming. A heaviness weighed on them; their usual light spirits had faded away; they were sluggish and distracted in their service, whispering sadly to each other at the far end of the car next to the kitchen. Hartman felt hopeless about the situation.

“What can we do?” he demanded for the twentieth time, with a helpless shrug of the shoulders.

“What can we do?” he asked for the twentieth time, shrugging his shoulders in frustration.

He pointed out of the window. “See, all is ready. You can depend upon it that they’re holding them like this, thirty or forty miles outside the city, on every road.”

He pointed out the window. “Look, everything is set. You can count on it that they’re holding them like this, thirty or forty miles outside the city, on every road.”

He had reference to troop-trains on the side-track. The soldiers were cooking their breakfasts over fires built on the ground beside the track, and they looked up curiously at us as we thundered past without slackening our terrific speed.

He was referring to troop trains on the side track. The soldiers were cooking their breakfasts over fires on the ground next to the track, and they looked up at us with curiosity as we raced past without slowing down.

All was quiet as we entered Chicago. It was evident nothing had happened yet. In the suburbs the morning papers came on board the train. There was nothing in them, and yet there was much in them for those skilled in reading between the lines that it was intended the ordinary reader should read into the text. The fine hand of the Iron Heel was apparent in every column. Glimmerings of weakness in the armor of the Oligarchy were given. Of course, there was nothing definite. It was intended that the reader should feel his way to these glimmerings. It was cleverly done. As fiction, those morning papers of October 27th were masterpieces.

All was quiet as we entered Chicago. It was clear that nothing had happened yet. In the suburbs, the morning papers were brought on board the train. There was nothing significant in them, but for those skilled at reading between the lines, there was a lot beneath the surface that the average reader was meant to miss. The influence of the Iron Heel was visible in every column. There were hints of weakness in the Oligarchy's armor. Of course, nothing was concrete. It was meant for the reader to navigate these hints. It was done cleverly. As fiction, those morning papers from October 27th were masterpieces.

The local news was missing. This in itself was a masterstroke. It shrouded Chicago in mystery, and it suggested to the average Chicago reader that the Oligarchy did not dare give the local news. Hints that were untrue, of course, were given of insubordination all over the land, crudely disguised with complacent references to punitive measures to be taken. There were reports of numerous wireless stations that had been blown up, with heavy rewards offered for the detection of the perpetrators. Of course no wireless stations had been blown up. Many similar outrages, that dovetailed with the plot of the revolutionists, were given. The impression to be made on the minds of the Chicago comrades was that the general Revolt was beginning, albeit with a confusing miscarriage in many details. It was impossible for one uninformed to escape the vague yet certain feeling that all the land was ripe for the revolt that had already begun to break out.

The local news was absent. This alone was a brilliant move. It wrapped Chicago in mystery and suggested to the average reader there that the Oligarchy was too afraid to share the local news. Hints that were false, of course, were thrown out about insubordination everywhere, clumsily masked with self-satisfied mentions of punishment to come. There were reports of multiple wireless stations being destroyed, with hefty rewards offered for catching those responsible. Naturally, no wireless stations had actually been destroyed. Many other similar incidents, which aligned with the revolutionaries' agenda, were reported. The goal was to create the impression among the Chicago comrades that a widespread Revolt was starting, even though many details were confusingly wrong. It was impossible for someone who wasn't in the know to avoid the vague yet strong sense that the whole country was ready for the revolt that was already starting to unfold.

It was reported that the defection of the Mercenaries in California had become so serious that half a dozen regiments had been disbanded and broken, and that their members with their families had been driven from their own city and on into the labor-ghettos. And the California Mercenaries were in reality the most faithful of all to their salt! But how was Chicago, shut off from the rest of the world, to know? Then there was a ragged telegram describing an outbreak of the populace in New York City, in which the labor castes were joining, concluding with the statement (intended to be accepted as a bluff[4]) that the troops had the situation in hand.

It was reported that the desertion of the Mercenaries in California had become so severe that six regiments had been disbanded and broken up, forcing their members and families to flee from their own city into the labor ghettos. Yet the California Mercenaries were actually the most loyal of all to their cause! But how was Chicago, cut off from the rest of the world, to know? Then there was a tattered telegram describing an uprising of the public in New York City, in which the labor class was joining, concluding with the statement (meant to be taken as a bluff[4]) that the troops had the situation under control.

[4] A lie.

A falsehood.

And as the oligarchs had done with the morning papers, so had they done in a thousand other ways. These we learned afterward, as, for example, the secret messages of the oligarchs, sent with the express purpose of leaking to the ears of the revolutionists, that had come over the wires, now and again, during the first part of the night.

And just like the oligarchs handled the morning papers, they manipulated many other things too. We discovered these later, such as the secret messages from the oligarchs, sent specifically to be leaked to the revolutionists, which had come through the wires occasionally during the early part of the night.

“I guess the Iron Heel won’t need our services,” Hartman remarked, putting down the paper he had been reading, when the train pulled into the central depot. “They wasted their time sending us here. Their plans have evidently prospered better than they expected. Hell will break loose any second now.”

“I guess the Iron Heel won’t need our services,” Hartman said, putting down the paper he had been reading as the train pulled into the central depot. “They wasted their time sending us here. Their plans have clearly gone better than they expected. Hell is about to break loose any second now.”

He turned and looked down the train as we alighted.

He turned and looked down the train as we got off.

“I thought so,” he muttered. “They dropped that private car when the papers came aboard.”

“I thought so,” he muttered. “They got rid of that private car when the papers came on board.”

Hartman was hopelessly depressed. I tried to cheer him up, but he ignored my effort and suddenly began talking very hurriedly, in a low voice, as we passed through the station. At first I could not understand.

Hartman was feeling really down. I tried to lift his spirits, but he brushed me off and suddenly started speaking very quickly, in a quiet voice, as we walked through the station. At first, I couldn't make sense of what he was saying.

“I have not been sure,” he was saying, “and I have told no one. I have been working on it for weeks, and I cannot make sure. Watch out for Knowlton. I suspect him. He knows the secrets of a score of our refuges. He carries the lives of hundreds of us in his hands, and I think he is a traitor. It’s more a feeling on my part than anything else. But I thought I marked a change in him a short while back. There is the danger that he has sold us out, or is going to sell us out. I am almost sure of it. I wouldn’t whisper my suspicions to a soul, but, somehow, I don’t think I’ll leave Chicago alive. Keep your eye on Knowlton. Trap him. Find out. I don’t know anything more. It is only an intuition, and so far I have failed to find the slightest clew.” We were just stepping out upon the sidewalk. “Remember,” Hartman concluded earnestly. “Keep your eyes upon Knowlton.”

“I haven’t been sure,” he was saying, “and I haven’t told anyone. I’ve been working on it for weeks, and I can’t be certain. Watch out for Knowlton. I suspect him. He knows the secrets of a number of our safe havens. He holds the lives of hundreds of us in his hands, and I think he’s a traitor. It’s more of a feeling I have than anything concrete. But I thought I noticed a change in him not long ago. There’s the risk that he has betrayed us or is planning to betray us. I’m almost certain of it. I wouldn’t share my suspicions with anyone, but somehow, I don’t think I’ll leave Chicago alive. Keep an eye on Knowlton. Set a trap for him. Find out. I don’t know anything more. It’s just an intuition, and so far I haven’t found the slightest clue.” We were just stepping out onto the sidewalk. “Remember,” Hartman concluded earnestly. “Keep your eyes on Knowlton.”

And Hartman was right. Before a month went by Knowlton paid for his treason with his life. He was formally executed by the comrades in Milwaukee.

And Hartman was right. Within a month, Knowlton paid for his betrayal with his life. He was officially executed by his comrades in Milwaukee.

All was quiet on the streets—too quiet. Chicago lay dead. There was no roar and rumble of traffic. There were not even cabs on the streets. The surface cars and the elevated were not running. Only occasionally, on the sidewalks, were there stray pedestrians, and these pedestrians did not loiter. They went their ways with great haste and definiteness, withal there was a curious indecision in their movements, as though they expected the buildings to topple over on them or the sidewalks to sink under their feet or fly up in the air. A few gamins, however, were around, in their eyes a suppressed eagerness in anticipation of wonderful and exciting things to happen.

All was quiet on the streets—too quiet. Chicago was lifeless. There was no roar or rumble of traffic. There weren't even any cabs on the streets. The surface cars and the elevated trains weren’t running. Only occasionally were there a few pedestrians on the sidewalks, and they didn’t linger. They hurried along with determination, yet there was a strange uncertainty in their movements, as if they expected the buildings to collapse on them or the sidewalks to sink beneath their feet or fly up into the air. A few kids were around, their eyes filled with a suppressed eagerness as they anticipated wonderful and exciting things to happen.

From somewhere, far to the south, the dull sound of an explosion came to our ears. That was all. Then quiet again, though the gamins had startled and listened, like young deer, at the sound. The doorways to all the buildings were closed; the shutters to the shops were up. But there were many police and watchmen in evidence, and now and again automobile patrols of the Mercenaries slipped swiftly past.

From somewhere far to the south, we heard a dull explosion. That was it. Then silence returned, though the kids jumped and listened, like young deer, to the noise. All the building doors were shut; the shop shutters were closed. But there were plenty of police and security guards around, and every now and then, patrol cars from the Mercenaries zoomed by.

Hartman and I agreed that it was useless to report ourselves to the local chiefs of the secret service. Our failure so to report would be excused, we knew, in the light of subsequent events. So we headed for the great labor-ghetto on the South Side in the hope of getting in contact with some of the comrades. Too late! We knew it. But we could not stand still and do nothing in those ghastly, silent streets. Where was Ernest? I was wondering. What was happening in the cities of the labor castes and Mercenaries? In the fortresses?

Hartman and I agreed that it was pointless to report to the local secret service chiefs. We knew our decision not to report would be justified by what happened later. So, we made our way to the large labor ghetto on the South Side, hoping to connect with some of our comrades. Too late! We realized that. But we couldn't just stand there and do nothing in those eerie, empty streets. Where was Ernest? I wondered. What was going on in the cities of the labor class and Mercenaries? In the fortresses?

As if in answer, a great screaming roar went up, dim with distance, punctuated with detonation after detonation.

As if in reply, a loud, distant roar erupted, filled with explosions one after another.

“It’s the fortresses,” Hartman said. “God pity those three regiments!”

“It’s the fortresses,” Hartman said. “God help those three regiments!”

At a crossing we noticed, in the direction of the stockyards, a gigantic pillar of smoke. At the next crossing several similar smoke pillars were rising skyward in the direction of the West Side. Over the city of the Mercenaries we saw a great captive war-balloon that burst even as we looked at it, and fell in flaming wreckage toward the earth. There was no clew to that tragedy of the air. We could not determine whether the balloon had been manned by comrades or enemies. A vague sound came to our ears, like the bubbling of a gigantic caldron a long way off, and Hartman said it was machine-guns and automatic rifles.

At an intersection, we spotted a huge plume of smoke rising in the direction of the stockyards. At the next intersection, we saw several more smoke columns going up toward the West Side. Over the city of the Mercenaries, we witnessed a large captive war balloon burst right before our eyes, crashing down in a blaze of wreckage. There was no clue to explain that airborne tragedy. We couldn't tell if the balloon was occupied by friends or foes. A distant sound reached us, like the bubbling of a giant cauldron, and Hartman said it was machine guns and automatic rifles.

And still we walked in immediate quietude. Nothing was happening where we were. The police and the automobile patrols went by, and once half a dozen fire-engines, returning evidently from some conflagration. A question was called to the fireman by an officer in an automobile, and we heard one shout in reply: “No water! They’ve blown up the mains!”

And still we walked in complete silence. Nothing was happening around us. The police and car patrols passed by, and at one point, a group of fire trucks drove past, clearly coming back from some fire. An officer in a car shouted a question to one of the firefighters, and we heard him shout back, “No water! They’ve blown up the mains!”

“We’ve smashed the water supply,” Hartman cried excitedly to me. “If we can do all this in a premature, isolated, abortive attempt, what can’t we do in a concerted, ripened effort all over the land?”

“We’ve broken the water supply,” Hartman exclaimed eagerly to me. “If we can achieve all this in a hasty, isolated, half-hearted attempt, what can’t we accomplish with a coordinated, fully-developed effort nationwide?”

The automobile containing the officer who had asked the question darted on. Suddenly there was a deafening roar. The machine, with its human freight, lifted in an upburst of smoke, and sank down a mass of wreckage and death.

The car with the officer who had asked the question sped away. Suddenly, there was a deafening roar. The vehicle, with its human passengers, erupted in a cloud of smoke and crashed down as a heap of wreckage and death.

Hartman was jubilant. “Well done! well done!” he was repeating, over and over, in a whisper. “The proletariat gets its lesson to-day, but it gives one, too.”

Hartman was ecstatic. “Great job! Great job!” he kept saying in a whisper, again and again. “The working class learns its lesson today, but it teaches one too.”

Police were running for the spot. Also, another patrol machine had halted. As for myself, I was in a daze. The suddenness of it was stunning. How had it happened? I knew not how, and yet I had been looking directly at it. So dazed was I for the moment that I was scarcely aware of the fact that we were being held up by the police. I abruptly saw that a policeman was in the act of shooting Hartman. But Hartman was cool and was giving the proper passwords. I saw the levelled revolver hesitate, then sink down, and heard the disgusted grunt of the policeman. He was very angry, and was cursing the whole secret service. It was always in the way, he was averring, while Hartman was talking back to him and with fitting secret-service pride explaining to him the clumsiness of the police.

Police were rushing to the scene. Another patrol car had also stopped. As for me, I was in a daze. The suddenness of it was shocking. How did it happen? I had no idea how, even though I had been looking right at it. I was so stunned in that moment that I barely realized we were being held up by the police. Then I suddenly saw a policeman aiming at Hartman. But Hartman remained calm and was giving the right passwords. I saw the aimed revolver hesitate, then drop, and I heard the annoyed grunt from the policeman. He was really angry, cursing the whole secret service. He kept saying it was always in the way, while Hartman was responding and explaining to him with appropriate secret-service pride how clumsy the police were.

The next moment I knew how it had happened. There was quite a group about the wreck, and two men were just lifting up the wounded officer to carry him to the other machine. A panic seized all of them, and they scattered in every direction, running in blind terror, the wounded officer, roughly dropped, being left behind. The cursing policeman alongside of me also ran, and Hartman and I ran, too, we knew not why, obsessed with the same blind terror to get away from that particular spot.

The next moment, I realized what had happened. A large crowd had gathered around the wreck, and two men were lifting the injured officer to carry him to the other vehicle. Suddenly, a panic hit everyone, and they all scattered in every direction, running in sheer terror, leaving the injured officer roughly dropped behind. The cursing cop next to me also took off, and Hartman and I ran too, not knowing why, consumed by the same blind fear to get away from that particular place.

Nothing really happened then, but everything was explained. The flying men were sheepishly coming back, but all the while their eyes were raised apprehensively to the many-windowed, lofty buildings that towered like the sheer walls of a canyon on each side of the street. From one of those countless windows the bomb had been thrown, but which window? There had been no second bomb, only a fear of one.

Nothing much happened then, but everything was made clear. The flying men were returning awkwardly, but all the while their eyes were nervously fixed on the numerous tall buildings that loomed like the steep walls of a canyon on either side of the street. From one of those countless windows the bomb had been thrown, but which window? There hadn’t been a second bomb, just a fear of one.

Thereafter we looked with speculative comprehension at the windows. Any of them contained possible death. Each building was a possible ambuscade. This was warfare in that modern jungle, a great city. Every street was a canyon, every building a mountain. We had not changed much from primitive man, despite the war automobiles that were sliding by.

After that, we looked at the windows with a mix of curiosity and understanding. Each one held the possibility of danger. Every building was a potential trap. This was the battlefield in that contemporary jungle, a big city. Every street felt like a canyon, and every building was a mountain. Even with the fancy cars speeding by, we hadn't strayed far from our primitive roots.

Turning a corner, we came upon a woman. She was lying on the pavement, in a pool of blood. Hartman bent over and examined her. As for myself, I turned deathly sick. I was to see many dead that day, but the total carnage was not to affect me as did this first forlorn body lying there at my feet abandoned on the pavement. “Shot in the breast,” was Hartman’s report. Clasped in the hollow of her arm, as a child might be clasped, was a bundle of printed matter. Even in death she seemed loath to part with that which had caused her death; for when Hartman had succeeded in withdrawing the bundle, we found that it consisted of large printed sheets, the proclamations of the revolutionists.

Turning a corner, we found a woman lying on the pavement in a pool of blood. Hartman leaned over to check on her. I, on the other hand, felt a wave of nausea wash over me. I was going to see many dead that day, but nothing would hit me as hard as this first abandoned body at my feet. “Shot in the chest,” was Hartman’s observation. Clutched in the crook of her arm, like a child, was a bundle of printed papers. Even in death, she seemed unwilling to let go of what had led to her demise; when Hartman managed to pull it away, we discovered it was a collection of large printed sheets—the proclamations of the revolutionaries.

“A comrade,” I said.

"A friend," I said.

But Hartman only cursed the Iron Heel, and we passed on. Often we were halted by the police and patrols, but our passwords enabled us to proceed. No more bombs fell from the windows, the last pedestrians seemed to have vanished from the streets, and our immediate quietude grew more profound; though the gigantic caldron continued to bubble in the distance, dull roars of explosions came to us from all directions, and the smoke-pillars were towering more ominously in the heavens.

But Hartman just cursed the Iron Heel, and we moved on. We were often stopped by the police and patrols, but our passwords allowed us to keep going. There were no more bombs dropping from the windows, the last pedestrians seemed to have disappeared from the streets, and our immediate silence became more intense; even though the massive cauldron kept bubbling in the distance, we could hear the dull roars of explosions coming from all directions, and the smoke pillars were rising more ominously into the sky.

CHAPTER XXIII.
THE PEOPLE OF THE ABYSS

Suddenly a change came over the face of things. A tingle of excitement ran along the air. Automobiles fled past, two, three, a dozen, and from them warnings were shouted to us. One of the machines swerved wildly at high speed half a block down, and the next moment, already left well behind it, the pavement was torn into a great hole by a bursting bomb. We saw the police disappearing down the cross-streets on the run, and knew that something terrible was coming. We could hear the rising roar of it.

Suddenly, everything changed. A buzz of excitement filled the air. Cars zoomed by—two, three, a dozen—and voices shouted warnings to us from inside them. One car swerved wildly at high speed half a block away, and in the next moment, the pavement was shattered into a massive hole by a bomb explosion, already left far behind. We watched the police rushing down the side streets and knew something disastrous was on its way. The sound of it was growing louder.

“Our brave comrades are coming,” Hartman said.

“Our brave friends are coming,” Hartman said.

We could see the front of their column filling the street from gutter to gutter, as the last war-automobile fled past. The machine stopped for a moment just abreast of us. A soldier leaped from it, carrying something carefully in his hands. This, with the same care, he deposited in the gutter. Then he leaped back to his seat and the machine dashed on, took the turn at the corner, and was gone from sight. Hartman ran to the gutter and stooped over the object.

We could see the front of their column filling the street from one side to the other as the last war vehicle sped by. The vehicle stopped for a moment right next to us. A soldier jumped out, holding something carefully in his hands. With the same care, he placed it in the gutter. Then he jumped back into his seat, and the vehicle took off, turned the corner, and disappeared from view. Hartman ran to the gutter and bent over the object.

“Keep back,” he warned me.

"Stay back," he warned me.

I could see he was working rapidly with his hands. When he returned to me the sweat was heavy on his forehead.

I could see he was moving quickly with his hands. When he came back to me, sweat was dripping down his forehead.

“I disconnected it,” he said, “and just in the nick of time. The soldier was clumsy. He intended it for our comrades, but he didn’t give it enough time. It would have exploded prematurely. Now it won’t explode at all.”

“I unplugged it,” he said, “and just in time. The soldier was careless. He meant it for our friends, but he didn’t give it enough time. It would have gone off too early. Now it won’t explode at all.”

Everything was happening rapidly now. Across the street and half a block down, high up in a building, I could see heads peering out. I had just pointed them out to Hartman, when a sheet of flame and smoke ran along that portion of the face of the building where the heads had appeared, and the air was shaken by the explosion. In places the stone facing of the building was torn away, exposing the iron construction beneath. The next moment similar sheets of flame and smoke smote the front of the building across the street opposite it. Between the explosions we could hear the rattle of the automatic pistols and rifles. For several minutes this mid-air battle continued, then died out. It was patent that our comrades were in one building, that Mercenaries were in the other, and that they were fighting across the street. But we could not tell which was which—which building contained our comrades and which the Mercenaries.

Everything was happening quickly now. Across the street and half a block down, high up in a building, I could see heads peering out. I had just pointed them out to Hartman when a sheet of flame and smoke raced along the side of the building where the heads had appeared, and the explosion shook the air. In some places, the stone facade of the building was ripped away, exposing the iron framework underneath. The next moment, similar sheets of flame and smoke hit the front of the building across the street. Between the explosions, we could hear the sound of automatic pistols and rifles. This mid-air battle continued for several minutes before fading out. It was obvious that our comrades were in one building, and the Mercenaries were in the other, and they were fighting across the street. But we couldn't tell which building held our comrades and which had the Mercenaries.

By this time the column on the street was almost on us. As the front of it passed under the warring buildings, both went into action again—one building dropping bombs into the street, being attacked from across the street, and in return replying to that attack. Thus we learned which building was held by our comrades, and they did good work, saving those in the street from the bombs of the enemy.

By this time, the column on the street was almost upon us. As the front of it passed beneath the battling buildings, both sprang into action again—one building dropping bombs into the street, being attacked from across the way, and responding to that attack. This is how we figured out which building was occupied by our allies, and they did a great job, protecting those in the street from the enemy's bombs.

Hartman gripped my arm and dragged me into a wide entrance.

Hartman grabbed my arm and pulled me into a large entrance.

“They’re not our comrades,” he shouted in my ear.

“They're not our friends,” he shouted in my ear.

The inner doors to the entrance were locked and bolted. We could not escape. The next moment the front of the column went by. It was not a column, but a mob, an awful river that filled the street, the people of the abyss, mad with drink and wrong, up at last and roaring for the blood of their masters. I had seen the people of the abyss before, gone through its ghettos, and thought I knew it; but I found that I was now looking on it for the first time. Dumb apathy had vanished. It was now dynamic—a fascinating spectacle of dread. It surged past my vision in concrete waves of wrath, snarling and growling, carnivorous, drunk with whiskey from pillaged warehouses, drunk with hatred, drunk with lust for blood—men, women, and children, in rags and tatters, dim ferocious intelligences with all the godlike blotted from their features and all the fiendlike stamped in, apes and tigers, anaemic consumptives and great hairy beasts of burden, wan faces from which vampire society had sucked the juice of life, bloated forms swollen with physical grossness and corruption, withered hags and death’s-heads bearded like patriarchs, festering youth and festering age, faces of fiends, crooked, twisted, misshapen monsters blasted with the ravages of disease and all the horrors of chronic innutrition—the refuse and the scum of life, a raging, screaming, screeching, demoniacal horde.

The inner doors to the entrance were locked and bolted. We couldn't escape. The next moment, the front of the column passed by. It wasn't a column, but a mob, a terrifying river that filled the street, the people from the depths, furious from drink and wrongs, finally up and roaring for the blood of their masters. I had seen the people from the depths before, walked through its ghettos, and thought I knew it; but I realized that I was now seeing it for the first time. Silent apathy had vanished. It was now alive—a captivating display of fear. It surged past my view in solid waves of rage, snarling and growling, carnivorous, intoxicated with whiskey from looted warehouses, filled with hatred, drunk with bloodlust—men, women, and children in rags and tatters, dimly ferocious beings with all the divine erased from their faces and all the monstrous pressed in, apes and tigers, pale consumptives and massive hairy beasts of burden, drawn faces from which society had drained the life, bloated figures swollen with physical decay and corruption, withered old women and skull-like heads bearded like patriarchs, rotting youth and decaying age, faces of demons, crooked, twisted, misshapen monsters ravaged by disease and all the horrors of chronic malnutrition—the refuse and the scum of life, a raging, screaming, screeching, demonic horde.

And why not? The people of the abyss had nothing to lose but the misery and pain of living. And to gain?—nothing, save one final, awful glut of vengeance. And as I looked the thought came to me that in that rushing stream of human lava were men, comrades and heroes, whose mission had been to rouse the abysmal beast and to keep the enemy occupied in coping with it.

And why not? The people of the abyss had nothing to lose except the suffering and pain of living. And to gain?—nothing, except one final, terrible outburst of revenge. As I thought about it, I realized that in that rushing wave of humanity were men, comrades, and heroes, whose mission had been to awaken the dreadful beast and to keep the enemy busy dealing with it.

And now a strange thing happened to me. A transformation came over me. The fear of death, for myself and for others, left me. I was strangely exalted, another being in another life. Nothing mattered. The Cause for this one time was lost, but the Cause would be here to-morrow, the same Cause, ever fresh and ever burning. And thereafter, in the orgy of horror that raged through the succeeding hours, I was able to take a calm interest. Death meant nothing, life meant nothing. I was an interested spectator of events, and, sometimes swept on by the rush, was myself a curious participant. For my mind had leaped to a star-cool altitude and grasped a passionless transvaluation of values. Had it not done this, I know that I should have died.

And then something strange happened to me. I went through a transformation. The fear of death, both for myself and for others, faded away. I felt strangely uplifted, like a different person living a different life. Nothing mattered anymore. The Cause was lost this time, but it would return tomorrow, the same Cause, always new and alive. In the chaos and horror that followed, I found I could take a calm interest. Death didn’t mean anything, and neither did life. I became an interested observer of what was happening, and sometimes, caught up in the moment, I even became a curious participant. My mind had risen to a cool altitude and developed a detached way of looking at things. If it hadn’t, I know I would have died.

Half a mile of the mob had swept by when we were discovered. A woman in fantastic rags, with cheeks cavernously hollow and with narrow black eyes like burning gimlets, caught a glimpse of Hartman and me. She let out a shrill shriek and bore in upon us. A section of the mob tore itself loose and surged in after her. I can see her now, as I write these lines, a leap in advance, her gray hair flying in thin tangled strings, the blood dripping down her forehead from some wound in the scalp, in her right hand a hatchet, her left hand, lean and wrinkled, a yellow talon, gripping the air convulsively. Hartman sprang in front of me. This was no time for explanations. We were well dressed, and that was enough. His fist shot out, striking the woman between her burning eyes. The impact of the blow drove her backward, but she struck the wall of her on-coming fellows and bounced forward again, dazed and helpless, the brandished hatchet falling feebly on Hartman’s shoulder.

Half a mile of the crowd had rushed past when we were spotted. A woman in tattered rags, with sunken cheeks and narrow black eyes like burning spikes, caught sight of Hartman and me. She let out a sharp scream and charged toward us. A section of the crowd broke away and surged in after her. I can still picture her now as I write these words, leaping forward, her gray hair flying in tangled strands, blood dripping down her forehead from a scalp wound, a hatchet in her right hand, and her left hand, thin and wrinkled like a yellow claw, clutching at the air wildly. Hartman stepped in front of me. There was no time for explanations. We were well dressed, and that was all that mattered. His fist shot out, hitting the woman between her intense eyes. The force of the blow pushed her backward, but she collided with the wall of her advancing companions and bounced back forward, dazed and vulnerable, her raised hatchet falling weakly onto Hartman’s shoulder.

The next moment I knew not what was happening. I was overborne by the crowd. The confined space was filled with shrieks and yells and curses. Blows were falling on me. Hands were ripping and tearing at my flesh and garments. I felt that I was being torn to pieces. I was being borne down, suffocated. Some strong hand gripped my shoulder in the thick of the press and was dragging fiercely at me. Between pain and pressure I fainted. Hartman never came out of that entrance. He had shielded me and received the first brunt of the attack. This had saved me, for the jam had quickly become too dense for anything more than the mad gripping and tearing of hands.

The next moment, I had no idea what was going on. I was overwhelmed by the crowd. The cramped space was filled with screams, shouts, and curses. I was getting hit. Hands were ripping and tearing at my skin and clothes. I felt like I was being pulled apart. I was being pushed down, suffocated. A strong hand grabbed my shoulder in the chaos and was pulling me hard. Between the pain and pressure, I fainted. Hartman never made it out of that entrance. He protected me and took the initial hit of the attack. This saved me because the crowd quickly became too packed for anything other than the frenzied grabbing and tearing of hands.

I came to in the midst of wild movement. All about me was the same movement. I had been caught up in a monstrous flood that was sweeping me I knew not whither. Fresh air was on my cheek and biting sweetly in my lungs. Faint and dizzy, I was vaguely aware of a strong arm around my body under the arms, and half-lifting me and dragging me along. Feebly my own limbs were helping me. In front of me I could see the moving back of a man’s coat. It had been slit from top to bottom along the centre seam, and it pulsed rhythmically, the slit opening and closing regularly with every leap of the wearer. This phenomenon fascinated me for a time, while my senses were coming back to me. Next I became aware of stinging cheeks and nose, and could feel blood dripping on my face. My hat was gone. My hair was down and flying, and from the stinging of the scalp I managed to recollect a hand in the press of the entrance that had torn at my hair. My chest and arms were bruised and aching in a score of places.

I came to in the middle of chaotic movement. All around me was the same hustle. I had been caught up in a huge flood that was sweeping me away without a clue where to. Fresh air brushed my cheek and stung sweetly in my lungs. Feeling faint and dizzy, I vaguely noticed a strong arm around my body, half-lifting me and dragging me along. My own limbs were weakly helping. In front of me, I could see the moving back of a man’s coat. It had been split open from top to bottom along the center seam, and it pulsed rhythmically, the slit opening and closing with every leap of the wearer. I was fascinated by this for a while, as my senses started to return. Then I became aware of my stinging cheeks and nose, and I could feel blood dripping on my face. My hat was gone. My hair was down and flying, and from the stinging on my scalp, I remembered a hand in the crowd at the entrance that had pulled at my hair. My chest and arms were bruised and aching in several places.

My brain grew clearer, and I turned as I ran and looked at the man who was holding me up. He it was who had dragged me out and saved me. He noticed my movement.

My mind became clearer as I turned while I ran and looked at the man who was holding me up. He was the one who had pulled me out and saved me. He noticed my movement.

“It’s all right!” he shouted hoarsely. “I knew you on the instant.”

“It’s all good!” he shouted hoarsely. “I recognized you right away.”

I failed to recognize him, but before I could speak I trod upon something that was alive and that squirmed under my foot. I was swept on by those behind and could not look down and see, and yet I knew that it was a woman who had fallen and who was being trampled into the pavement by thousands of successive feet.

I didn’t recognize him, but before I could say anything, I stepped on something alive that wriggled under my foot. I was pushed forward by the crowd behind me and couldn’t look down to see, but I knew it was a woman who had fallen and was being trampled into the pavement by thousands of feet.

“It’s all right,” he repeated. “I’m Garthwaite.”

“It’s fine,” he said again. “I’m Garthwaite.”

He was bearded and gaunt and dirty, but I succeeded in remembering him as the stalwart youth that had spent several months in our Glen Ellen refuge three years before. He passed me the signals of the Iron Heel’s secret service, in token that he, too, was in its employ.

He was bearded, thin, and unkempt, but I managed to recall him as the strong young man who had spent several months in our Glen Ellen shelter three years ago. He passed me the signals of the Iron Heel’s secret service, indicating that he was also working for them.

“I’ll get you out of this as soon as I can get a chance,” he assured me. “But watch your footing. On your life don’t stumble and go down.”

“I’ll get you out of this as soon as I get the chance,” he assured me. “But be careful where you step. Seriously, don’t stumble and fall.”

All things happened abruptly on that day, and with an abruptness that was sickening the mob checked itself. I came in violent collision with a large woman in front of me (the man with the split coat had vanished), while those behind collided against me. A devilish pandemonium reigned,—shrieks, curses, and cries of death, while above all rose the churning rattle of machine-guns and the put-a-put, put-a-put of rifles. At first I could make out nothing. People were falling about me right and left. The woman in front doubled up and went down, her hands on her abdomen in a frenzied clutch. A man was quivering against my legs in a death-struggle.

Everything happened suddenly that day, and it was so sudden that it was almost sickening. The crowd came to a halt. I bumped into a large woman in front of me (the man with the torn coat had disappeared), while those behind me crashed into me. Chaos reigned—screams, curses, and cries of death, while above it all was the deafening sound of machine-guns and the rhythmic pop, pop of rifles. At first, I couldn't grasp what was happening. People were collapsing around me. The woman in front doubled over and fell, clutching her stomach in a panic. A man was trembling against my legs in a struggle for his life.

It came to me that we were at the head of the column. Half a mile of it had disappeared—where or how I never learned. To this day I do not know what became of that half-mile of humanity—whether it was blotted out by some frightful bolt of war, whether it was scattered and destroyed piecemeal, or whether it escaped. But there we were, at the head of the column instead of in its middle, and we were being swept out of life by a torrent of shrieking lead.

It struck me that we were at the front of the column. Half a mile of it had vanished—where or how I never found out. To this day, I still don’t know what happened to that half-mile of people—whether it was wiped out by some terrifying strike of war, whether it was scattered and taken down bit by bit, or whether it made it out. But there we were, at the front of the column instead of in the middle, and we were being swept away by a wave of screaming bullets.

As soon as death had thinned the jam, Garthwaite, still grasping my arm, led a rush of survivors into the wide entrance of an office building. Here, at the rear, against the doors, we were pressed by a panting, gasping mass of creatures. For some time we remained in this position without a change in the situation.

As soon as death cleared the crowd, Garthwaite, still holding onto my arm, guided a swarm of survivors into the large entrance of an office building. Here, at the back, pressed against the doors, we were squeezed by a panting, gasping mass of people. We stayed in this position for a while without any change in the situation.

“I did it beautifully,” Garthwaite was lamenting to me. “Ran you right into a trap. We had a gambler’s chance in the street, but in here there is no chance at all. It’s all over but the shouting. Vive la Revolution!”

“I did it beautifully,” Garthwaite was saying to me. “Led you straight into a trap. We had a slim chance out in the street, but in here there’s no chance at all. It’s all over but the shouting. Long live the Revolution!”

Then, what he expected, began. The Mercenaries were killing without quarter. At first, the surge back upon us was crushing, but as the killing continued the pressure was eased. The dead and dying went down and made room. Garthwaite put his mouth to my ear and shouted, but in the frightful din I could not catch what he said. He did not wait. He seized me and threw me down. Next he dragged a dying woman over on top of me, and, with much squeezing and shoving, crawled in beside me and partly over me. A mound of dead and dying began to pile up over us, and over this mound, pawing and moaning, crept those that still survived. But these, too, soon ceased, and a semi-silence settled down, broken by groans and sobs and sounds of strangulation.

Then, what he expected began. The Mercenaries were killing without mercy. At first, the rush back towards us was overwhelming, but as the killing continued, the pressure eased. The dead and dying fell and made space. Garthwaite put his mouth to my ear and shouted, but in the horrific noise, I couldn’t catch what he said. He didn’t wait. He grabbed me and threw me down. Then he pulled a dying woman over on top of me, and with a lot of squeezing and pushing, crawled in next to me and partly over me. A pile of dead and dying started to build up over us, and over this pile, those who were still alive crawled and moaned. But they, too, soon stopped, and a quiet settled in, broken by groans, sobs, and sounds of choking.

I should have been crushed had it not been for Garthwaite. As it was, it seemed inconceivable that I could bear the weight I did and live. And yet, outside of pain, the only feeling I possessed was one of curiosity. How was it going to end? What would death be like? Thus did I receive my red baptism in that Chicago shambles. Prior to that, death to me had been a theory; but ever afterward death has been a simple fact that does not matter, it is so easy.

I would have been overwhelmed if it weren't for Garthwaite. As it was, it felt unbelievable that I could handle the weight I was under and still be alive. Yet, apart from the pain, the only emotion I had was curiosity. How was it going to end? What would death feel like? That was how I experienced my initiation in that chaotic place in Chicago. Before that, death was just a concept to me; but since then, death has been a straightforward reality that doesn’t mean much—it’s so simple.

But the Mercenaries were not content with what they had done. They invaded the entrance, killing the wounded and searching out the unhurt that, like ourselves, were playing dead. I remember one man they dragged out of a heap, who pleaded abjectly until a revolver shot cut him short. Then there was a woman who charged from a heap, snarling and shooting. She fired six shots before they got her, though what damage she did we could not know. We could follow these tragedies only by the sound. Every little while flurries like this occurred, each flurry culminating in the revolver shot that put an end to it. In the intervals we could hear the soldiers talking and swearing as they rummaged among the carcasses, urged on by their officers to hurry up.

But the Mercenaries weren’t satisfied with what they had done. They stormed the entrance, killing the injured and hunting down the unhurt who, like us, were playing dead. I remember one man they pulled out of a pile, who begged pitifully until a gunshot silenced him. Then there was a woman who charged out from a heap, snarling and shooting. She fired six shots before they got her, though we couldn’t tell what damage she caused. We could only follow these tragedies by sound. Every little while, flurries like this happened, each ending with a gunshot that brought it to a close. During the quiet moments, we could hear the soldiers talking and cursing as they sifted through the bodies, urged on by their officers to hurry up.

At last they went to work on our heap, and we could feel the pressure diminish as they dragged away the dead and wounded. Garthwaite began uttering aloud the signals. At first he was not heard. Then he raised his voice.

At last, they started working on our pile, and we could feel the pressure lift as they took away the dead and wounded. Garthwaite began calling out the signals. At first, he wasn't heard. Then he raised his voice.

“Listen to that,” we heard a soldier say. And next the sharp voice of an officer. “Hold on there! Careful as you go!”

“Listen to that,” we heard a soldier say. And then the sharp voice of an officer. “Hold on there! Be careful as you go!”

Oh, that first breath of air as we were dragged out! Garthwaite did the talking at first, but I was compelled to undergo a brief examination to prove service with the Iron Heel.

Oh, that first breath of fresh air as we were pulled out! Garthwaite did the talking at first, but I had to go through a quick check to prove I had been with the Iron Heel.

“Agents-provocateurs all right,” was the officer’s conclusion. He was a beardless young fellow, a cadet, evidently, of some great oligarch family.

“Agent provocateurs, for sure,” was the officer’s conclusion. He was a clean-shaven young guy, clearly a cadet from some prominent oligarch family.

“It’s a hell of a job,” Garthwaite grumbled. “I’m going to try and resign and get into the army. You fellows have a snap.”

“It’s a tough job,” Garthwaite complained. “I’m going to try to quit and join the army. You guys have it easy.”

“You’ve earned it,” was the young officer’s answer. “I’ve got some pull, and I’ll see if it can be managed. I can tell them how I found you.”

“You’ve earned it,” the young officer replied. “I have some influence, and I'll see if it can be arranged. I can explain how I found you.”

He took Garthwaite’s name and number, then turned to me.

He wrote down Garthwaite’s name and number, then faced me.

“And you?”

"And you?"

“Oh, I’m going to be married,” I answered lightly, “and then I’ll be out of it all.”

“Oh, I’m getting married,” I replied casually, “and then I’ll be done with all of it.”

And so we talked, while the killing of the wounded went on. It is all a dream, now, as I look back on it; but at the time it was the most natural thing in the world. Garthwaite and the young officer fell into an animated conversation over the difference between so-called modern warfare and the present street-fighting and sky-scraper fighting that was taking place all over the city. I followed them intently, fixing up my hair at the same time and pinning together my torn skirts. And all the time the killing of the wounded went on. Sometimes the revolver shots drowned the voices of Garthwaite and the officer, and they were compelled to repeat what they had been saying.

And so we talked while the wounded were being killed. It all feels like a dream now as I look back on it; but at the time, it felt completely normal. Garthwaite and the young officer got into a lively discussion about the difference between so-called modern warfare and the street and skyscraper fighting happening all over the city. I listened closely, fixing my hair and pinning my torn skirt at the same time. And all the while, the killing of the wounded continued. Sometimes the gunshots drowned out what Garthwaite and the officer were saying, and they had to repeat themselves.

I lived through three days of the Chicago Commune, and the vastness of it and of the slaughter may be imagined when I say that in all that time I saw practically nothing outside the killing of the people of the abyss and the mid-air fighting between sky-scrapers. I really saw nothing of the heroic work done by the comrades. I could hear the explosions of their mines and bombs, and see the smoke of their conflagrations, and that was all. The mid-air part of one great deed I saw, however, and that was the balloon attacks made by our comrades on the fortresses. That was on the second day. The three disloyal regiments had been destroyed in the fortresses to the last man. The fortresses were crowded with Mercenaries, the wind blew in the right direction, and up went our balloons from one of the office buildings in the city.

I experienced three days of the Chicago Commune, and you can get a sense of its scale and the violence when I say that during that time, I hardly saw anything beyond the slaughter of the people in the depths and the aerial battles between the skyscrapers. I didn’t witness any of the heroic efforts made by my comrades. I could hear the blasts from their mines and bombs and see the smoke from their fires, and that was it. However, I did see part of one major event, which was the balloon attacks launched by our comrades on the fortresses. This happened on the second day. The three traitorous regiments had been wiped out in the fortresses to the last person. The fortresses were packed with Mercenaries, the wind was blowing in our favor, and our balloons ascended from one of the office buildings in the city.

Now Biedenbach, after he left Glen Ellen, had invented a most powerful explosive—“expedite” he called it. This was the weapon the balloons used. They were only hot-air balloons, clumsily and hastily made, but they did the work. I saw it all from the top of an office building. The first balloon missed the fortresses completely and disappeared into the country; but we learned about it afterward. Burton and O’Sullivan were in it. As they were descending they swept across a railroad directly over a troop-train that was heading at full speed for Chicago. They dropped their whole supply of expedite upon the locomotive. The resulting wreck tied the line up for days. And the best of it was that, released from the weight of expedite, the balloon shot up into the air and did not come down for half a dozen miles, both heroes escaping unharmed.

Now Biedenbach, after he left Glen Ellen, had created a super powerful explosive—he called it “expedite.” This was the weapon the balloons used. They were just hot-air balloons, poorly and hastily made, but they got the job done. I watched it all from the top of an office building. The first balloon completely missed the fortresses and vanished into the countryside; but we found out about it later. Burton and O’Sullivan were on it. As they were coming down, they flew over a railroad right above a troop train speeding toward Chicago. They dropped their entire supply of expedite onto the locomotive. The resulting wreck blocked the line for days. And the best part was that, freed from the weight of the expedite, the balloon shot up into the air and didn’t come down for six miles, with both heroes escaping unharmed.

The second balloon was a failure. Its flight was lame. It floated too low and was shot full of holes before it could reach the fortresses. Herford and Guinness were in it, and they were blown to pieces along with the field into which they fell. Biedenbach was in despair—we heard all about it afterward—and he went up alone in the third balloon. He, too, made a low flight, but he was in luck, for they failed seriously to puncture his balloon. I can see it now as I did then, from the lofty top of the building—that inflated bag drifting along the air, and that tiny speck of a man clinging on beneath. I could not see the fortress, but those on the roof with me said he was directly over it. I did not see the expedite fall when he cut it loose. But I did see the balloon suddenly leap up into the sky. An appreciable time after that the great column of the explosion towered in the air, and after that, in turn, I heard the roar of it. Biedenbach the gentle had destroyed a fortress. Two other balloons followed at the same time. One was blown to pieces in the air, the expedite exploding, and the shock of it disrupted the second balloon, which fell prettily into the remaining fortress. It couldn’t have been better planned, though the two comrades in it sacrificed their lives.

The second balloon didn’t work out. Its flight was weak. It floated too low and got shot full of holes before it could reach the fortresses. Herford and Guinness were in it, and they were blown to pieces along with the field they landed in. Biedenbach was in despair—we heard all about it later—and he went up alone in the third balloon. He also made a low flight, but he was lucky because they failed to seriously puncture his balloon. I can still picture it from the top of the building— that inflated bag drifting through the air, with that tiny speck of a man clinging underneath. I couldn’t see the fortress, but those on the roof with me said he was directly over it. I didn’t see the expedite fall when he cut it loose. But I did see the balloon suddenly shoot up into the sky. A little while later, the huge column of the explosion rose into the air, and then I heard the roar of it. Biedenbach the gentle had destroyed a fortress. Two other balloons went up at the same time. One was blown to bits in the air when the expedite exploded, and the shock from it disrupted the second balloon, which fell perfectly into the remaining fortress. It couldn’t have been better planned, although the two comrades in it lost their lives.

But to return to the people of the abyss. My experiences were confined to them. They raged and slaughtered and destroyed all over the city proper, and were in turn destroyed; but never once did they succeed in reaching the city of the oligarchs over on the west side. The oligarchs had protected themselves well. No matter what destruction was wreaked in the heart of the city, they, and their womenkind and children, were to escape hurt. I am told that their children played in the parks during those terrible days and that their favorite game was an imitation of their elders stamping upon the proletariat.

But back to the people living in the abyss. My experiences revolved around them. They raged, killed, and tore apart everything in the city, yet they were also destroyed in return; but they never managed to reach the city of the oligarchs on the west side. The oligarchs had made sure to protect themselves well. No matter how much chaos erupted in the center of the city, they and their women and children remained unharmed. I've heard that during those awful days, their children played in the parks, and their favorite game was pretending to be like their elders, stomping on the working class.

But the Mercenaries found it no easy task to cope with the people of the abyss and at the same time fight with the comrades. Chicago was true to her traditions, and though a generation of revolutionists was wiped out, it took along with it pretty close to a generation of its enemies. Of course, the Iron Heel kept the figures secret, but, at a very conservative estimate, at least one hundred and thirty thousand Mercenaries were slain. But the comrades had no chance. Instead of the whole country being hand in hand in revolt, they were all alone, and the total strength of the Oligarchy could have been directed against them if necessary. As it was, hour after hour, day after day, in endless train-loads, by hundreds of thousands, the Mercenaries were hurled into Chicago.

But the Mercenaries found it really hard to deal with the people of the abyss while also fighting against their comrades. Chicago stuck to its traditions, and even though a generation of revolutionaries was wiped out, it took down almost an equal number of their enemies. Of course, the Iron Heel kept the numbers secret, but at a very conservative estimate, at least one hundred and thirty thousand Mercenaries were killed. But the comrades had no chance. Instead of the whole country joining together in revolt, they were completely alone, and the total power of the Oligarchy could have been turned against them if needed. As it was, hour after hour, day after day, in endless trainloads, by the hundreds of thousands, the Mercenaries were sent into Chicago.

And there were so many of the people of the abyss! Tiring of the slaughter, a great herding movement was begun by the soldiers, the intent of which was to drive the street mobs, like cattle, into Lake Michigan. It was at the beginning of this movement that Garthwaite and I had encountered the young officer. This herding movement was practically a failure, thanks to the splendid work of the comrades. Instead of the great host the Mercenaries had hoped to gather together, they succeeded in driving no more than forty thousand of the wretches into the lake. Time and again, when a mob of them was well in hand and being driven along the streets to the water, the comrades would create a diversion, and the mob would escape through the consequent hole torn in the encircling net.

And there were so many people from the abyss! Tired of the fighting, the soldiers started a major effort to herd the street crowds like cattle into Lake Michigan. It was at the start of this effort that Garthwaite and I encountered the young officer. This herding initiative was mostly a failure, thanks to the amazing work of the comrades. Instead of the large group the Mercenaries had hoped to gather, they managed to force no more than forty thousand of the unfortunate souls into the lake. Time and again, when a crowd was under control and being driven down the streets toward the water, the comrades would create a distraction, allowing the crowd to escape through the gap torn in the surrounding net.

Garthwaite and I saw an example of this shortly after meeting with the young officer. The mob of which we had been a part, and which had been put in retreat, was prevented from escaping to the south and east by strong bodies of troops. The troops we had fallen in with had held it back on the west. The only outlet was north, and north it went toward the lake, driven on from east and west and south by machine-gun fire and automatics. Whether it divined that it was being driven toward the lake, or whether it was merely a blind squirm of the monster, I do not know; but at any rate the mob took a cross street to the west, turned down the next street, and came back upon its track, heading south toward the great ghetto.

Garthwaite and I witnessed an example of this shortly after meeting with the young officer. The crowd we had been part of, which had been pushed back, was blocked from escaping to the south and east by strong military units. The troops we had teamed up with held them back on the west. The only escape route was north, and that’s where it headed toward the lake, forced on from the east, west, and south by machine-gun fire and automatic weapons. I’m not sure if it realized it was being pushed toward the lake, or if it was just a desperate move of the crowd, but either way, the mob took a side street to the west, turned down the next street, and returned to its original path, heading south toward the large ghetto.

Garthwaite and I at that time were trying to make our way westward to get out of the territory of street-fighting, and we were caught right in the thick of it again. As we came to the corner we saw the howling mob bearing down upon us. Garthwaite seized my arm and we were just starting to run, when he dragged me back from in front of the wheels of half a dozen war automobiles, equipped with machine-guns, that were rushing for the spot. Behind them came the soldiers with their automatic rifles. By the time they took position, the mob was upon them, and it looked as though they would be overwhelmed before they could get into action.

Garthwaite and I were trying to head west to escape the area of street fighting, but we found ourselves right in the middle of it again. As we reached the corner, we saw a shouting mob charging towards us. Garthwaite grabbed my arm, and we were just about to run when he pulled me back to avoid getting hit by a bunch of military vehicles equipped with machine guns that were racing towards us. Following closely behind were the soldiers with their automatic rifles. By the time they got into position, the mob was on them, and it seemed like they were going to be overwhelmed before they could react.

Here and there a soldier was discharging his rifle, but this scattered fire had no effect in checking the mob. On it came, bellowing with brute rage. It seemed the machine-guns could not get started. The automobiles on which they were mounted blocked the street, compelling the soldiers to find positions in, between, and on the sidewalks. More and more soldiers were arriving, and in the jam we were unable to get away. Garthwaite held me by the arm, and we pressed close against the front of a building.

Here and there, a soldier was firing his rifle, but this scattered shooting didn't stop the crowd. It came charging forward, roaring with raw anger. It seemed like the machine guns couldn't get going. The vehicles they were mounted on were blocking the street, forcing the soldiers to find spots in between them and on the sidewalks. More and more soldiers were showing up, and in the chaos, we couldn't escape. Garthwaite grabbed my arm, and we pressed close against the front of a building.

The mob was no more than twenty-five feet away when the machine-guns opened up; but before that flaming sheet of death nothing could live. The mob came on, but it could not advance. It piled up in a heap, a mound, a huge and growing wave of dead and dying. Those behind urged on, and the column, from gutter to gutter, telescoped upon itself. Wounded creatures, men and women, were vomited over the top of that awful wave and fell squirming down the face of it till they threshed about under the automobiles and against the legs of the soldiers. The latter bayoneted the struggling wretches, though one I saw who gained his feet and flew at a soldier’s throat with his teeth. Together they went down, soldier and slave, into the welter.

The crowd was only about twenty-five feet away when the machine guns fired; but nothing could survive that deadly barrage. The mob moved forward, but it couldn't make any progress. It stacked up into a heap, a mound, a huge and growing wave of the dead and dying. Those at the back pushed on, and the line, from one side of the street to the other, collapsed in on itself. Wounded individuals, both men and women, were thrown over the top of that horrific wave and fell, thrashing down the slope until they were caught under the cars and against the legs of the soldiers. The soldiers stabbed at the struggling victims, although I saw one who managed to get up and lunged at a soldier’s throat with his teeth. They both fell together, soldier and victim, into the chaos.

The firing ceased. The work was done. The mob had been stopped in its wild attempt to break through. Orders were being given to clear the wheels of the war-machines. They could not advance over that wave of dead, and the idea was to run them down the cross street. The soldiers were dragging the bodies away from the wheels when it happened. We learned afterward how it happened. A block distant a hundred of our comrades had been holding a building. Across roofs and through buildings they made their way, till they found themselves looking down upon the close-packed soldiers. Then it was counter-massacre.

The shooting stopped. The job was finished. The crowd had been held back in its frantic attempt to push through. Orders were being given to clear the wheels of the war machines. They couldn't move forward over that pile of dead, so the plan was to direct them down the side street. The soldiers were pulling the bodies away from the wheels when it happened. We found out later what happened. A block away, a hundred of our comrades had been holding down a building. They made their way across rooftops and through other buildings until they found themselves looking down at the tightly packed soldiers. Then it turned into a counter-massacre.

Without warning, a shower of bombs fell from the top of the building. The automobiles were blown to fragments, along with many soldiers. We, with the survivors, swept back in mad retreat. Half a block down another building opened fire on us. As the soldiers had carpeted the street with dead slaves, so, in turn, did they themselves become carpet. Garthwaite and I bore charmed lives. As we had done before, so again we sought shelter in an entrance. But he was not to be caught napping this time. As the roar of the bombs died away, he began peering out.

Without warning, a barrage of bombs fell from the top of the building. The cars were blown apart, along with many soldiers. The survivors and I retreated in a panic. Half a block down, another building opened fire on us. Just as the soldiers had littered the street with dead slaves, they too became a carpet of casualties. Garthwaite and I somehow managed to stay safe. As we had done before, we sought refuge in an entrance. But this time, he wasn't about to let his guard down. As the sound of the bombs faded, he started looking out.

“The mob’s coming back!” he called to me. “We’ve got to get out of this!”

“The mob is coming back!” he shouted at me. “We need to get out of here!”

We fled, hand in hand, down the bloody pavement, slipping and sliding, and making for the corner. Down the cross street we could see a few soldiers still running. Nothing was happening to them. The way was clear. So we paused a moment and looked back. The mob came on slowly. It was busy arming itself with the rifles of the slain and killing the wounded. We saw the end of the young officer who had rescued us. He painfully lifted himself on his elbow and turned loose with his automatic pistol.

We ran, hand in hand, down the bloody sidewalk, slipping and sliding, heading for the corner. Down the side street, we could see a few soldiers still running. Nothing was happening to them. The way was clear. So we paused for a moment and looked back. The crowd was coming on slowly. It was busy grabbing the rifles from the dead and finishing off the wounded. We saw the young officer who had saved us. He struggled to lift himself on his elbow and started firing his automatic pistol.

“There goes my chance of promotion,” Garthwaite laughed, as a woman bore down on the wounded man, brandishing a butcher’s cleaver. “Come on. It’s the wrong direction, but we’ll get out somehow.”

“There goes my chance of a promotion,” Garthwaite laughed, as a woman rushed toward the injured man, waving a butcher’s cleaver. “Come on. It’s not the right way, but we’ll find a way out somehow.”

And we fled eastward through the quiet streets, prepared at every cross street for anything to happen. To the south a monster conflagration was filling the sky, and we knew that the great ghetto was burning. At last I sank down on the sidewalk. I was exhausted and could go no farther. I was bruised and sore and aching in every limb; yet I could not escape smiling at Garthwaite, who was rolling a cigarette and saying:

And we ran east through the quiet streets, ready for anything at every intersection. To the south, a huge fire lit up the sky, and we realized the big neighborhood was on fire. Finally, I collapsed on the sidewalk. I was drained and couldn’t go any further. I was bruised and sore, aching all over; yet I couldn’t help but smile at Garthwaite, who was rolling a cigarette and saying:

“I know I’m making a mess of rescuing you, but I can’t get head nor tail of the situation. It’s all a mess. Every time we try to break out, something happens and we’re turned back. We’re only a couple of blocks now from where I got you out of that entrance. Friend and foe are all mixed up. It’s chaos. You can’t tell who is in those darned buildings. Try to find out, and you get a bomb on your head. Try to go peaceably on your way, and you run into a mob and are killed by machine-guns, or you run into the Mercenaries and are killed by your own comrades from a roof. And on the top of it all the mob comes along and kills you, too.”

“I know I’m making a mess of rescuing you, but I can’t make sense of the situation. It’s all a disaster. Every time we try to escape, something happens and we get pushed back. We’re only a few blocks away from where I got you out of that entrance. Friends and enemies are all mixed up. It’s complete chaos. You can’t tell who’s in those damn buildings. Try to find out, and you end up with a bomb on your head. Try to peacefully go on your way, and you run into a mob that kills you with machine guns, or you run into the Mercenaries and get taken out by your own comrades from a rooftop. And on top of everything, the mob comes along and kills you too.”

He shook his head dolefully, lighted his cigarette, and sat down beside me.

He shook his head sadly, lit his cigarette, and sat down next to me.

“And I’m that hungry,” he added, “I could eat cobblestones.”

“And I’m that hungry,” he added, “I could eat paving stones.”

The next moment he was on his feet again and out in the street prying up a cobblestone. He came back with it and assaulted the window of a store behind us.

The next moment, he was back on his feet and out in the street lifting up a cobblestone. He returned with it and smashed it against the window of a store behind us.

“It’s ground floor and no good,” he explained as he helped me through the hole he had made; “but it’s the best we can do. You get a nap and I’ll reconnoitre. I’ll finish this rescue all right, but I want time, time, lots of it—and something to eat.”

“It’s the ground floor and not great,” he said as he helped me through the hole he had created; “but it’s the best we can manage. You take a nap and I’ll scout around. I’ll handle this rescue just fine, but I need time, a lot of it—and some food.”

It was a harness store we found ourselves in, and he fixed me up a couch of horse blankets in the private office well to the rear. To add to my wretchedness a splitting headache was coming on, and I was only too glad to close my eyes and try to sleep.

It was a harness store we found ourselves in, and he set me up with a couch made of horse blankets in the private office way in the back. To make things worse, a splitting headache was starting, and I was more than happy to close my eyes and try to sleep.

“I’ll be back,” were his parting words. “I don’t hope to get an auto, but I’ll surely bring some grub,[1] anyway.”

“I’ll be back,” were his parting words. “I don’t expect to get a car, but I’ll definitely bring some food,[1] anyway.”

[1] Food.

Food.

And that was the last I saw of Garthwaite for three years. Instead of coming back, he was carried away to a hospital with a bullet through his lungs and another through the fleshy part of his neck.

And that was the last time I saw Garthwaite for three years. Instead of returning, he was taken to a hospital with a bullet in his lungs and another in the soft part of his neck.

CHAPTER XXIV.
NIGHTMARE

I had not closed my eyes the night before on the Twentieth Century, and what of that and of my exhaustion I slept soundly. When I first awoke, it was night. Garthwaite had not returned. I had lost my watch and had no idea of the time. As I lay with my eyes closed, I heard the same dull sound of distant explosions. The inferno was still raging. I crept through the store to the front. The reflection from the sky of vast conflagrations made the street almost as light as day. One could have read the finest print with ease. From several blocks away came the crackle of small hand-bombs and the churning of machine-guns, and from a long way off came a long series of heavy explosions. I crept back to my horse blankets and slept again.

I hadn’t closed my eyes the night before in the Twentieth Century, and despite that and my exhaustion, I slept soundly. When I first woke up, it was night. Garthwaite hadn’t come back. I had lost my watch and had no idea what time it was. As I lay there with my eyes closed, I heard the same dull sound of distant explosions. The inferno was still going strong. I crept through the store to the front. The reflection from the sky of huge fires made the street almost as bright as day. You could have easily read the smallest print. From several blocks away came the crackle of small hand bombs and the roar of machine guns, and from far off sounded a long series of heavy explosions. I crept back to my horse blankets and fell asleep again.

When next I awoke, a sickly yellow light was filtering in on me. It was dawn of the second day. I crept to the front of the store. A smoke pall, shot through with lurid gleams, filled the sky. Down the opposite side of the street tottered a wretched slave. One hand he held tightly against his side, and behind him he left a bloody trail. His eyes roved everywhere, and they were filled with apprehension and dread. Once he looked straight across at me, and in his face was all the dumb pathos of the wounded and hunted animal. He saw me, but there was no kinship between us, and with him, at least, no sympathy of understanding; for he cowered perceptibly and dragged himself on. He could expect no aid in all God’s world. He was a helot in the great hunt of helots that the masters were making. All he could hope for, all he sought, was some hole to crawl away in and hide like any animal. The sharp clang of a passing ambulance at the corner gave him a start. Ambulances were not for such as he. With a groan of pain he threw himself into a doorway. A minute later he was out again and desperately hobbling on.

When I woke up next, a sickly yellow light was pouring in on me. It was dawn on the second day. I crept to the front of the store. A smoky haze, streaked with bright flashes, filled the sky. On the other side of the street, a miserable slave was staggering along. He pressed one hand tightly to his side, leaving a bloody trail behind him. His eyes darted everywhere, full of fear and dread. Once, he looked directly at me, and his face held the silent sadness of a wounded and hunted animal. He saw me, but there was no connection between us, and at least for him, there was no empathy or understanding; he flinched noticeably and dragged himself onward. He couldn’t expect any help in all of God’s world. He was just a servant in the grand hunt that the masters were conducting. All he could hope for, all he was searching for, was some hole to crawl into and hide like any animal. The sharp sound of a passing ambulance at the corner startled him. Ambulances weren’t for people like him. With a groan of pain, he threw himself into a doorway. A minute later, he was back out again, desperately hobbling on.

I went back to my horse blankets and waited an hour for Garthwaite. My headache had not gone away. On the contrary, it was increasing. It was by an effort of will only that I was able to open my eyes and look at objects. And with the opening of my eyes and the looking came intolerable torment. Also, a great pulse was beating in my brain. Weak and reeling, I went out through the broken window and down the street, seeking to escape, instinctively and gropingly, from the awful shambles. And thereafter I lived nightmare. My memory of what happened in the succeeding hours is the memory one would have of nightmare. Many events are focussed sharply on my brain, but between these indelible pictures I retain are intervals of unconsciousness. What occurred in those intervals I know not, and never shall know.

I went back to my horse blankets and waited an hour for Garthwaite. My headache hadn’t gone away; in fact, it was getting worse. It was only through sheer willpower that I could open my eyes and look at things. But as I opened my eyes and looked, the pain became unbearable. A strong pulse was throbbing in my head. Weak and dizzy, I stumbled through the broken window and down the street, trying to escape, blindly and instinctively, from the terrible mess. After that, I lived through a nightmare. My memory of what happened in the next few hours feels like the kind of memories you have from a bad dream. Certain events are vivid in my mind, but in between those clear images, there are gaps of unconsciousness. I don’t know what happened during those gaps, and I never will.

I remember stumbling at the corner over the legs of a man. It was the poor hunted wretch that had dragged himself past my hiding-place. How distinctly do I remember his poor, pitiful, gnarled hands as he lay there on the pavement—hands that were more hoof and claw than hands, all twisted and distorted by the toil of all his days, with on the palms a horny growth of callous a half inch thick. And as I picked myself up and started on, I looked into the face of the thing and saw that it still lived; for the eyes, dimly intelligent, were looking at me and seeing me.

I remember tripping at the corner over the legs of a man. It was the poor, hunted soul who had dragged himself past my hiding spot. How clearly I remember his sad, twisted hands as he lay there on the pavement—hands that looked more like hooves and claws than actual hands, all gnarled and distorted from years of hard work, with calluses on the palms half an inch thick. And as I picked myself up and moved on, I looked into the face of the man and realized he was still alive; his eyes, dimly aware, were looking at me and recognizing me.

After that came a kindly blank. I knew nothing, saw nothing, merely tottered on in my quest for safety. My next nightmare vision was a quiet street of the dead. I came upon it abruptly, as a wanderer in the country would come upon a flowing stream. Only this stream I gazed upon did not flow. It was congealed in death. From pavement to pavement, and covering the sidewalks, it lay there, spread out quite evenly, with only here and there a lump or mound of bodies to break the surface. Poor driven people of the abyss, hunted helots—they lay there as the rabbits in California after a drive.[1] Up the street and down I looked. There was no movement, no sound. The quiet buildings looked down upon the scene from their many windows. And once, and once only, I saw an arm that moved in that dead stream. I swear I saw it move, with a strange writhing gesture of agony, and with it lifted a head, gory with nameless horror, that gibbered at me and then lay down again and moved no more.

After that, I was in a kind of daze. I didn’t know anything, didn’t see anything, just stumbled forward in my search for safety. My next horrifying vision was a silent street filled with the dead. I stumbled upon it suddenly, like a traveler through the countryside finding a flowing stream. But this stream I was looking at wasn’t flowing. It was frozen in death. From one side of the street to the other, covering the sidewalks, it lay there, spread out evenly, with only an occasional lump or mound of bodies breaking the surface. Poor lost souls of the abyss, hunted and helpless—they lay there like rabbits in California after a drive. Up and down the street I looked. There was no movement, no sound. The silent buildings watched over the scene from their many windows. Then, just once, I saw an arm move in that lifeless stream. I swear I saw it writhing in agony, and with it, a head lifted, covered in unimaginable horror, that cried out at me before lying back down and not moving again.

[1] In those days, so sparsely populated was the land that wild animals often became pests. In California the custom of rabbit-driving obtained. On a given day all the farmers in a locality would assemble and sweep across the country in converging lines, driving the rabbits by scores of thousands into a prepared enclosure, where they were clubbed to death by men and boys.

[1] Back then, the land was so sparsely populated that wild animals frequently became a nuisance. In California, there was a practice known as rabbit-driving. On a designated day, all the farmers in an area would gather and move across the countryside in converging lines, herding thousands of rabbits into a prepared enclosure, where men and boys would club them to death.

I remember another street, with quiet buildings on either side, and the panic that smote me into consciousness as again I saw the people of the abyss, but this time in a stream that flowed and came on. And then I saw there was nothing to fear. The stream moved slowly, while from it arose groans and lamentations, cursings, babblings of senility, hysteria, and insanity; for these were the very young and the very old, the feeble and the sick, the helpless and the hopeless, all the wreckage of the ghetto. The burning of the great ghetto on the South Side had driven them forth into the inferno of the street-fighting, and whither they wended and whatever became of them I did not know and never learned.[2]

I remember a different street, with quiet buildings on both sides, and the panic that jolted me awake as I saw the people from the depths again, but this time in a slow-moving stream. And then I realized there was nothing to be afraid of. The stream moved slowly, filled with groans and cries, curses, ramblings of old age, hysteria, and madness; these were the very young and the very old, the weak and the sick, the helpless and the hopeless, all the remnants of the ghetto. The burning of the huge ghetto on the South Side had pushed them into the chaos of street fights, and where they went and what happened to them I didn’t know and never found out.[2]

[2] It was long a question of debate, whether the burning of the South Side ghetto was accidental, or whether it was done by the Mercenaries; but it is definitely settled now that the ghetto was fired by the Mercenaries under orders from their chiefs.

[2] There was a long debate about whether the fire in the South Side ghetto was accidental or started by the Mercenaries. However, it is now clear that the ghetto was intentionally set on fire by the Mercenaries under the direction of their leaders.

I have faint memories of breaking a window and hiding in some shop to escape a street mob that was pursued by soldiers. Also, a bomb burst near me, once, in some still street, where, look as I would, up and down, I could see no human being. But my next sharp recollection begins with the crack of a rifle and an abrupt becoming aware that I am being fired at by a soldier in an automobile. The shot missed, and the next moment I was screaming and motioning the signals. My memory of riding in the automobile is very hazy, though this ride, in turn, is broken by one vivid picture. The crack of the rifle of the soldier sitting beside me made me open my eyes, and I saw George Milford, whom I had known in the Pell Street days, sinking slowly down to the sidewalk. Even as he sank the soldier fired again, and Milford doubled in, then flung his body out, and fell sprawling. The soldier chuckled, and the automobile sped on.

I have vague memories of breaking a window and hiding in a shop to escape a mob that was being chased by soldiers. Also, there was a time when a bomb exploded nearby on a quiet street, and no matter how hard I looked up and down, I couldn’t see anyone around. But my next clear memory starts with the sound of a gunshot and suddenly realizing that a soldier in a car was shooting at me. The shot missed, and in the next moment, I was screaming and signaling for help. My memory of being in the car is pretty fuzzy, but there is one vivid image. The crack of the soldier’s rifle next to me made me open my eyes, and I saw George Milford, who I had known back in the Pell Street days, slowly collapsing onto the sidewalk. Just as he fell, the soldier shot again, and Milford doubled over, then tossed himself out of the car and fell sprawled on the ground. The soldier laughed, and the car sped away.

The next I knew after that I was awakened out of a sound sleep by a man who walked up and down close beside me. His face was drawn and strained, and the sweat rolled down his nose from his forehead. One hand was clutched tightly against his chest by the other hand, and blood dripped down upon the floor as he walked. He wore the uniform of the Mercenaries. From without, as through thick walls, came the muffled roar of bursting bombs. I was in some building that was locked in combat with some other building.

The next thing I knew, I was jolted awake from a deep sleep by a man pacing right next to me. His face looked haggard and tense, and sweat poured down his nose from his forehead. One hand was tightly pressed to his chest with the other, and blood dripped onto the floor as he walked. He was wearing the uniform of the Mercenaries. From outside, I could hear the distant roar of exploding bombs, like it was coming through thick walls. I was in a building that was locked in a battle with another building.

A surgeon came in to dress the wounded soldier, and I learned that it was two in the afternoon. My headache was no better, and the surgeon paused from his work long enough to give me a powerful drug that would depress the heart and bring relief. I slept again, and the next I knew I was on top of the building. The immediate fighting had ceased, and I was watching the balloon attack on the fortresses. Some one had an arm around me and I was leaning close against him. It came to me quite as a matter of course that this was Ernest, and I found myself wondering how he had got his hair and eyebrows so badly singed.

A surgeon came in to treat the injured soldier, and I realized it was two in the afternoon. My headache hadn’t improved, and the surgeon paused long enough to give me a strong medication that would slow my heart and provide relief. I fell asleep again, and when I woke up, I was on the rooftop. The fighting had stopped, and I was watching the balloon attack on the fortresses. Someone had their arm around me, and I was leaning against him. It occurred to me casually that this was Ernest, and I found myself curious about how he had managed to singe his hair and eyebrows so badly.

It was by the merest chance that we had found each other in that terrible city. He had had no idea that I had left New York, and, coming through the room where I lay asleep, could not at first believe that it was I. Little more I saw of the Chicago Commune. After watching the balloon attack, Ernest took me down into the heart of the building, where I slept the afternoon out and the night. The third day we spent in the building, and on the fourth, Ernest having got permission and an automobile from the authorities, we left Chicago.

It was purely by chance that we found each other in that awful city. He had no clue I had left New York, and when he walked through the room where I was sleeping, he could hardly believe it was me. I didn’t see much more of the Chicago Commune. After watching the balloon attack, Ernest took me deep into the building, where I slept through the afternoon and the night. We stayed in the building for the third day, and on the fourth day, after Ernest got permission and an automobile from the authorities, we left Chicago.

My headache was gone, but, body and soul, I was very tired. I lay back against Ernest in the automobile, and with apathetic eyes watched the soldiers trying to get the machine out of the city. Fighting was still going on, but only in isolated localities. Here and there whole districts were still in possession of the comrades, but such districts were surrounded and guarded by heavy bodies of troops. In a hundred segregated traps were the comrades thus held while the work of subjugating them went on. Subjugation meant death, for no quarter was given, and they fought heroically to the last man.[3]

My headache was gone, but I felt completely drained, both physically and mentally. I leaned back against Ernest in the car and watched with disinterest as the soldiers struggled to get the vehicle out of the city. Fighting was still happening, but only in scattered areas. There were still some districts held by our comrades, but those areas were surrounded and heavily guarded by troops. Our comrades were trapped in a hundred isolated situations while the effort to bring them under control continued. Being subdued meant death, as no mercy was shown, and they fought bravely to the last man.[3]

[3] Numbers of the buildings held out over a week, while one held out eleven days. Each building had to be stormed like a fort, and the Mercenaries fought their way upward floor by floor. It was deadly fighting. Quarter was neither given nor taken, and in the fighting the revolutionists had the advantage of being above. While the revolutionists were wiped out, the loss was not one-sided. The proud Chicago proletariat lived up to its ancient boast. For as many of itself as were killed, it killed that many of the enemy.

[3] The buildings held out for over a week, with one resisting for eleven days. Each building had to be attacked like a fortress, and the Mercenaries fought their way up floor by floor. It was brutal combat. No mercy was given or received, and the revolutionaries had the upper hand by fighting from above. Although the revolutionaries were mostly eliminated, the casualties were not one-sided. The proud Chicago working class lived up to its long-held claim. For every one of their own that was killed, they took out just as many of the enemy.

Whenever we approached such localities, the guards turned us back and sent us around. Once, the only way past two strong positions of the comrades was through a burnt section that lay between. From either side we could hear the rattle and roar of war, while the automobile picked its way through smoking ruins and tottering walls. Often the streets were blocked by mountains of debris that compelled us to go around. We were in a labyrinth of ruin, and our progress was slow.

Whenever we got close to these areas, the guards turned us away and redirected us. Once, the only way to get past two strongholds of our allies was through a burned section in between. On both sides, we could hear the clatter and noise of battle as the car navigated through the smoking ruins and unstable walls. Frequently, the streets were blocked by piles of debris that forced us to detour. We found ourselves in a maze of destruction, and our progress was slow.

The stockyards (ghetto, plant, and everything) were smouldering ruins. Far off to the right a wide smoke haze dimmed the sky,—the town of Pullman, the soldier chauffeur told us, or what had been the town of Pullman, for it was utterly destroyed. He had driven the machine out there, with despatches, on the afternoon of the third day. Some of the heaviest fighting had occurred there, he said, many of the streets being rendered impassable by the heaps of the dead.

The stockyards (ghetto, plant, and everything) were burned-out ruins. Off to the right, a thick haze of smoke darkened the sky—the town of Pullman, the soldier driver told us, or what used to be Pullman, because it was completely destroyed. He had driven out there with important messages on the afternoon of the third day. He mentioned that some of the fiercest fighting had taken place there, with many streets blocked by piles of the dead.

Swinging around the shattered walls of a building, in the stockyards district, the automobile was stopped by a wave of dead. It was for all the world like a wave tossed up by the sea. It was patent to us what had happened. As the mob charged past the corner, it had been swept, at right angles and point-blank range, by the machine-guns drawn up on the cross street. But disaster had come to the soldiers. A chance bomb must have exploded among them, for the mob, checked until its dead and dying formed the wave, had white-capped and flung forward its foam of living, fighting slaves. Soldiers and slaves lay together, torn and mangled, around and over the wreckage of the automobiles and guns.

Swinging around the shattered walls of a building in the stockyards area, the car came to a halt because of a surge of dead bodies. It looked just like a wave thrown up by the sea. It was obvious to us what had happened. As the mob rushed past the corner, it had been caught, at right angles and point-blank range, by the machine guns set up on the cross street. But disaster had struck the soldiers. A random bomb must have exploded among them, because the mob, momentarily stopped until its dead and dying made up the wave, had surged forward with the desperate energy of living, fighting people. Soldiers and enslaved individuals lay together, torn apart and mangled, scattered around the wreckage of the cars and guns.

Ernest sprang out. A familiar pair of shoulders in a cotton shirt and a familiar fringe of white hair had caught his eye. I did not watch him, and it was not until he was back beside me and we were speeding on that he said:

Ernest jumped out. A recognizable pair of shoulders in a cotton shirt and a familiar tuft of white hair caught his attention. I didn't pay attention to him, and it wasn't until he was back next to me and we were speeding along that he said:

“It was Bishop Morehouse.”

“It was Bishop Morehouse.”

Soon we were in the green country, and I took one last glance back at the smoke-filled sky. Faint and far came the low thud of an explosion. Then I turned my face against Ernest’s breast and wept softly for the Cause that was lost. Ernest’s arm about me was eloquent with love.

Soon we were in the countryside, and I took one last look back at the smoke-filled sky. In the distance, I heard the low thud of an explosion. Then I buried my face against Ernest’s chest and cried softly for the Cause that was lost. Ernest’s arm around me spoke volumes of love.

“For this time lost, dear heart,” he said, “but not forever. We have learned. To-morrow the Cause will rise again, strong with wisdom and discipline.”

“For this time lost, dear heart,” he said, “but not forever. We have learned. Tomorrow, the Cause will rise again, strong with wisdom and discipline.”

The automobile drew up at a railroad station. Here we would catch a train to New York. As we waited on the platform, three trains thundered past, bound west to Chicago. They were crowded with ragged, unskilled laborers, people of the abyss.

The car pulled up at a train station. Here, we were going to catch a train to New York. While we waited on the platform, three trains roared by, heading west to Chicago. They were packed with worn-out, unskilled workers, people from the bottom of society.

“Slave-levies for the rebuilding of Chicago,” Ernest said. “You see, the Chicago slaves are all killed.”

“Slave contributions for the rebuilding of Chicago,” Ernest said. “You see, all the slaves in Chicago are dead.”

CHAPTER XXV.
THE TERRORISTS

It was not until Ernest and I were back in New York, and after weeks had elapsed, that we were able to comprehend thoroughly the full sweep of the disaster that had befallen the Cause. The situation was bitter and bloody. In many places, scattered over the country, slave revolts and massacres had occurred. The roll of the martyrs increased mightily. Countless executions took place everywhere. The mountains and waste regions were filled with outlaws and refugees who were being hunted down mercilessly. Our own refuges were packed with comrades who had prices on their heads. Through information furnished by its spies, scores of our refuges were raided by the soldiers of the Iron Heel.

It wasn't until Ernest and I got back to New York, after weeks had passed, that we could fully grasp the extent of the disaster that had hit the Cause. The situation was painful and violent. In many areas across the country, there had been slave uprisings and massacres. The number of martyrs grew significantly. Countless executions took place everywhere. The mountains and desolate areas were filled with outlaws and refugees who were being hunted down relentlessly. Our own safe havens were crowded with comrades who had bounties on their heads. Thanks to information from its spies, many of our safe havens were raided by the soldiers of the Iron Heel.

Many of the comrades were disheartened, and they retaliated with terroristic tactics. The set-back to their hopes made them despairing and desperate. Many terrorist organizations unaffiliated with us sprang into existence and caused us much trouble.[1] These misguided people sacrificed their own lives wantonly, very often made our own plans go astray, and retarded our organization.

Many of the comrades were discouraged, and they responded with violent tactics. The setback to their hopes left them feeling hopeless and desperate. Several terrorist organizations that had no ties to us emerged and created significant problems for us. These misguided individuals recklessly sacrificed their own lives, frequently derailing our plans and hindering our organization.

[1] The annals of this short-lived era of despair make bloody reading. Revenge was the ruling motive, and the members of the terroristic organizations were careless of their own lives and hopeless about the future. The Danites, taking their name from the avenging angels of the Mormon mythology, sprang up in the mountains of the Great West and spread over the Pacific Coast from Panama to Alaska. The Valkyries were women. They were the most terrible of all. No woman was eligible for membership who had not lost near relatives at the hands of the Oligarchy. They were guilty of torturing their prisoners to death. Another famous organization of women was The Widows of War. A companion organization to the Valkyries was the Berserkers. These men placed no value whatever upon their own lives, and it was they who totally destroyed the great Mercenary city of Bellona along with its population of over a hundred thousand souls. The Bedlamites and the Helldamites were twin slave organizations, while a new religious sect that did not flourish long was called The Wrath of God. Among others, to show the whimsicality of their deadly seriousness, may be mentioned the following: The Bleeding Hearts, Sons of the Morning, the Morning Stars, The Flamingoes, The Triple Triangles, The Three Bars, The Rubonics, The Vindicators, The Comanches, and the Erebusites.

[1] The records of this brief era of despair are grim and violent. Revenge was the main motivator, and the members of the terrorist groups were indifferent to their own lives and had no hope for the future. The Danites, named after the avenging angels in Mormon mythology, emerged in the mountains of the West and spread along the Pacific Coast from Panama to Alaska. The Valkyries were women, and they were the most fearsome of all. Only women who had lost close relatives at the hands of the Oligarchy could join. They were known for torturing their prisoners to death. Another well-known group of women was The Widows of War. A counterpart to the Valkyries was the Berserkers. These men had no regard for their own lives, and they completely obliterated the massive Mercenary city of Bellona, along with its population of over a hundred thousand people. The Bedlamites and the Helldamites were twin slave organizations, while a short-lived new religious sect was called The Wrath of God. Other groups, highlighting the bizarre nature of their deadly seriousness, included The Bleeding Hearts, Sons of the Morning, the Morning Stars, The Flamingoes, The Triple Triangles, The Three Bars, The Rubonics, The Vindicators, The Comanches, and the Erebusites.

And through it all moved the Iron Heel, impassive and deliberate, shaking up the whole fabric of the social structure in its search for the comrades, combing out the Mercenaries, the labor castes, and all its secret services, punishing without mercy and without malice, suffering in silence all retaliations that were made upon it, and filling the gaps in its fighting line as fast as they appeared. And hand in hand with this, Ernest and the other leaders were hard at work reorganizing the forces of the Revolution. The magnitude of the task may be understood when it is taken into.[2]

And through it all, the Iron Heel moved forward, unflinching and purposeful, disrupting the entire social structure in its quest for allies, rooting out the Mercenaries, the labor classes, and all its secret agents, punishing without mercy or malice, enduring silently all the attacks against it, and quickly filling any gaps in its ranks as they appeared. Meanwhile, Ernest and the other leaders were busy reorganizing the forces of the Revolution. The scale of the task can be understood when it is considered in.[2]

[2] This is the end of the Everhard Manuscript. It breaks off abruptly in the middle of a sentence. She must have received warning of the coming of the Mercenaries, for she had time safely to hide the Manuscript before she fled or was captured. It is to be regretted that she did not live to complete her narrative, for then, undoubtedly, would have been cleared away the mystery that has shrouded for seven centuries the execution of Ernest Everhard.

[2] This is the end of the Everhard Manuscript. It ends abruptly in the middle of a sentence. She must have received warning about the arrival of the Mercenaries, as she had time to safely hide the Manuscript before she either fled or was captured. It’s unfortunate that she didn’t live to finish her story, as it would have undoubtedly clarified the mystery that has surrounded the execution of Ernest Everhard for seven centuries.


Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!